Post on 26-Jan-2020
The Road to 1944 - the history of the development of education in south
and south west Wales in the lead up to the wartime Education Act, and
its implementation in the years that followed.
Mary-Lyn Patricia Jones, (MPhil, M.A., B. Ed).
Director of Studies: Dr Jeremy Smith,
Second Supervisor: Professor Stephen Parker,
Advisor: Dr Andrew Reynolds.
Submitted to the University of Wales Trinity Saint David in partial fulfilment for the
Degree of Doctor of Philosophy.
University of Wales Trinity Saint David
2016
Abstract
This thesis is principally concerned with the period between the two Education Acts of 1918 and 1944 and as such, builds on and contributes to the history of education in Wales. Although a number of studies1 have examined aspects of Welsh education there has not been a strong focus on its development during the interwar years. This particular period is generally regarded as one ”untouched by significant research.”2 In spite of this neglect, it was an extremely interesting period, and one when the service was faced with grave difficulties: austerity during the depression years, and severe disruption caused by evacuation during the Second World War. The period culminates with the serious negotiations which preluded the Education Act 1944, which was the only major piece of social legislation to be pass onto the statute books during the war years.3 The study is set against overarching national education legislation and considers how this affected implementation in south and south west Wales. The research differs from previous studies in that it focuses on a neglected period in the history of education in Wales. It identifies and documents the way in which two major sources of influences: politics and religion shaped the society which predisposed education provision in south and south west Wales to be modified in specific ways. It draws strongly on the work of Welsh historians to assess the effect of non-conformity in Wales and how society became radicalised after the publication of the Blue Books in 1847. It explores the part that the non-provided sector had in delaying education change and also identifies the considerable differences that developed between education in England and Wales, caused partly by the Welsh Intermediate Education Act of 1889 and partly by the attitudes and influences of Welsh politicians at all levels.
1 Evans, L. W., Studies in Welsh Education: Welsh Educational Structure and Administration 1880 – 1925
(UWP: Cardiff, 1974). Jones, G. E., Controls and Conflicts in Welsh Secondary Education 1889-1994
(UWP: Cardiff, 1982). 2 B. Simon, ‘The History of Education in the 1980s.’ British Journal of Educational Studies, 1982. p. 87 3 C. Chitty, Education Policy in Britain, 2nd Edition (Palgrave Macmillan, 2009.) p. 18. See also
http://www.legislation.gov.uk/1944 which indicates that ten Acts passed into legislation during 1944. The
majority of these were related to the ongoing conflict. For example: Police and Firemen (War Service) Act
1944 (repealed).
Table of Contents.
Page
Chapter 1 – Introduction 1
Chapter 2 – Setting the Scene 33
Chapter 3 – Education in England and Wales 1918-1939 55
Chapter 4 – Evacuation 97
Chapter 5 – Reconstruction 133
Chapter 6 – Implementation 174
Chapter 7 – Conclusions 214
Bibliography 228
Appendices 255
Appendix 1 – Local authorities in south and south west Wales
Appendix 2 - Evacuated schools in south and south west Wales
List of Abbreviations
AAW Archdiocesan Archives Westminster
BRL Library of Birmingham
BodL Bodleian Library
CinWA Church in Wales Archive
CofERC Church of England Record Centre
CAS Carmarthen Archive Service
CCL City of Cardiff Library
IWM Imperial War Museum
GA Glamorgan Archives
KHLC Kent History and Library Centre
LMA London Metropolitan Archives
LRL Llanelly Reference Library
NA National Archives
NLW National Library of Wales
PHM People’s History Museum
TRL Treorchy Reference Library
WGAS West Glamorgan Archive Service
1
Chapter 1 - Introduction
“The duty of the historian of education is to rescue from oblivion those whose voices have not yet been heard and whose stories have not yet been told.”1
This thesis is about education legislation and policy in England and Wales
during the first half of the twentieth century. It will set out the social, political and
religious dynamics which influenced legislation and the way this was implemented
in south and south west Wales. This research will have a specific focus upon the
development of elementary and secondary education from the Education Act 1918
until after the planning for the implementation of the Education Act 1944. Other
aspects of education such as the curriculum, pedagogy, gender issues or Welsh
education will not feature prominently unless these matters occur incidentally during
the research. All are worthy of a detailed examination beyond the scope of this
study.
Despite the importance of this period in terms of education development, it
has previously been subject to limited academic research. The implications of the
Consultative Committee of the Board of Education Reports2 and the effects that the
economic circumstances, together, had on education in England and Wales have
been largely ignored. Similarly, the historiography of Welsh education during the
period fails to provide any in-depth study of the cause and effect of the pivotal
influences of religion and politics on development,3 and the most important
investigation of education during the interwar years makes only passing references
to Wales.4 This thesis will attempt to rectify this by drawing together the threads of
education legislation, political, religious, and socio-economic influences and offer an
interpretation of how these impacted on the development of educational policy in
south and south west Wales. It will examine the complex interplay between the
Board of Education and the local authorities and how this was affected by extrinsic
factors, particularly by religious attitudes and the economics of the period which
proved fundamental to the ongoing development of the service. The research will
also investigate how the education philosophy of the two main political parties:
1 R. Aldrich. Lessons from History of Education: The Selected Works of Richard Aldrich (Routledge:
London, 2005), p. 18. 2 Under the Board of Education Act 1899, a Consultative Committee was set up to advise “on any matter that
may be referred to it by the Committee of the Board.” Board of Education Act 1899 Para 4. 3 See for example G.E. Jones and G. W. Roderick, A History of Education in Wales (UWP: Cardiff, 2003). 4 B. Simon, The Politics of Educational Reform 1920-1940 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1974).
2
Conservative and Labour, influenced the decisions made about the direction and
purpose of education during the period. These were fundamentally significant to the
way education progressed and led directly to the subsequent changes made by
many Local Education Authorities5 immediately after the Education Act 1944. The
history of education for the period appears to put forward a supposition that very
little happened, but this study will suggest that this is something of an unfounded
conclusion. It soon becomes apparent from research that it was a period of tension
with intricate manoeuvrings on the part of the Government and the Board of
Education to covertly manipulate education provision at a local level.
The thesis is divided into historical periods associated both with educational
legislation and the social, economic and political events with influenced the
development of education. Its main aim will be to link the key national developments
with those at local level in south and south west Wales. This geographic area
includes the two counties of Carmarthenshire and Glamorgan; the nine Part III local
authorities within their boundaries and the three county boroughs of Cardiff, Merthyr
Tydfil and Swansea.6 Although these local authorities were closely clustered they
were diverse: economically, socially and politically and this led to fundamental
differences in the way education legislation and recommendations were interpreted.
The scrutiny of primary sources of these local authorities will provide the basis for
an empirical examination of development. This will include an overview of the
political and financial pressures on reform, and the way in which the Board of
Education attempted to coerce LEAs into implementing legislation through the
recommendations of the Consultative Committee of the Board of Education,7 and a
series of non-statutory instructions.8 It will also scrutinise the actions taken by the
some authorities in their attempts to implement legislation and the substantial
barriers to educational change that they encountered.
This thesis will depend almost entirely on primary research for its outcomes
and the lack of secondary sources is more than compensated for by the vast amount
of primary archival material at all levels. Those at local level reflect the pressures
5 From now on abbreviated to LEA. This term should not be confused with the way that the term ‘local
authority’ is used in this research to the term ‘local authority’, This latter provided wider services, for
example, housing and billeting. 6 See Appendix 1. 7 Particularly the Report of the Consultative Committee on The Education of the Adolescent (HMSO: 1927). 8 Through a series of instructions delivered in circular for example: NA ED 22/180, Circular 1397. Raising of
school leaving age and NA ED 110, Secondary Education Fees and Special Places, and LEA Files
3
for change at national level and their wide variety adds interest and variation. The
findings of this research will add considerably to the very limited level of knowledge
and understanding of the history of education during the period at a national, and
most importantly at a local level. It will offer an insight into a number of aspects of
educational change, particularly the ongoing battle between the Welsh LEAs and
Government for devolution of education, and the subtle politically religious
undercurrents which were so influential during the period from 1918 until 1950.
In order to do this the thesis will:
Scrutinise the education legislation and policies of the period in the national
context and its implementation in south and south west Wales.
Establish how the socio-economic situation and political policy influenced
implementation of the various legislation in the area.
Examine the effects that the differences in philosophy of the political parties
had on education legislation and development
Analyse the effect that the non-provided sector had on educational change
Enquire into what effect the claims for the devolution of education powers to
Wales had on development and implementation.
The outcomes, drawn mainly from primary sources, will establish a history of
education in south and south west Wales for the years between the Education Act
1918 until after the period of planning for the implementation of the Education Act
1944. This period will be placed in an historical context by an examination of earlier
education legislation as well as the cultural and religious influences in Wales at the
time. The conclusions will go some way to complete the history of education in
Wales by answering those questions left largely unanswered by other prestigious
writers about the interwar period and the political and religious influences in one part
of the country.
4
Historiography of Education: a general theoretical framework
In terms of the historiography of education the interwar years is somewhat
limited, especially when compared to other periods. Writings about the
establishment of charitable and popular state education9 are numerous, as is the
substantial body of work which refers to comprehensive education.10 Later trends
have considered the various and changing influences on schooling and pedagogy.
Other facets of education, such as the development of the teaching of religious
education,11 and morality and citizenship have all been well researched.12 However,
the interwar period has not attracted the same volume of research. Contemporary
writing is limited partly because state education in Great Britain was still in its
infancy, and as a result, in England and Wales, unlike in Scotland, the history of
education was not generally a taught subject in higher education.13 McCulloch points
out that “before the 1930s, historical studies of education in England were few and
far between”14 and it was rare for writers to link education with other social
influences, religion for example, although he notes that John Adamson15 was an
exception to this. McCulloch believes that Adamson began an analysis of the factors
that influenced education, which were further examined by G.A.N. Lowndes during
the late 1930s16 and later extended to included details of discussions in the
preamble to the Education Act 1944. Dent however, is critical of the fact that
Lowndes tended to concentrate on the quantitative development of provision
although he praises the fact that he included an analysis of nursery provision and a
9 J. Hurt, Education in Evolution, Church, State and Popular Education 1800 – 1870 (Hart-Davis: London,
1971); A. Green, Education and State Formation: The Rise of Education Systems in England, France and the
USA, (Macmillan: London, 1990) for example. 10 G. McCulloch, Education Reconstruction: The 1944 Education Act and the Twenty First Century (Woburn
Press: Essex, 1994); D. Rubenstein and B. Simon, The Evolution of the Comprehensive School 1926-1972
(Routledge and Kegan Paul: 1973). 11 P. Chadwick, Shifting Alliances: Church and State in English Education (Cassell: London, 1997); B.
O’Keefe, Faith, Culture and the Dual System: A Comparative Study of Church and State Schools (The
Falmer Press: Lewis 1886). 12 S. Wright, Morality and Citizenship in English Schools. Secular Approaches 1897-1944, (Palgrave
Macmillan: Basingstoke 2017); R. Freathy. (2007) ‘Ecclesiastical and Religious Factors which Preserved
Christian and Traditional Forms of Education for Citizenship in English Schools, 1934–1944’, Oxford
Review of Education, (2007) 33:3, 367–77; R. J. K. Freathy, The Triumph of Religious Education for
Citizenship in English Schools, 1935–1949, History of Education, (2007) 37:2, 295–316. 13 G. McCulloch, The Struggle for the History of Education, (Routledge: London, 2011) p. 28; G. McCulloch
and W. Richardson, Historical Research in Educational Settings, ( OUP: Buckingham, (2000), p. 34. 14 G. McCulloch, ibid., (2011) p. 28 15 J. W. Adamson, English Education 1789-1902, (Cambridge University Press: Cambridge 1930) in G.
McCulloch, ibid., p 29. 16 G.A.N. Lowndes, The Silent Secret Revolution, (Oxford University Press: London, 1937).
5
“dispassionate summary of the growth of comprehensive education.”17 A second
criticism is that although Lowndes was the Board of Education officer seconded to
the Ministry of Health in the period immediately before evacuation in 1939 he makes
very little reference to this or to the war time conditions in education. His chapter on
the period of the Second World War tends towards the trivial and confirms the
idealistic picture frequently portrayed of evacuated children and their teachers
enjoying an idyllic holiday in the countryside. This is unfortunate because it was a
missed opportunity to have a detailed account of education during war time by an
official who had access to information not have been available elsewhere.
In contrast, Dent’s own writing on the same period is a detailed account of
education during war time and one in which he attempted to “relate educational
trends and changes to the social context.”18 He was very critical about the way that
evacuees were treated in reception areas and asked questions about both the
education system and the social ignorance that was apparent during the period. His
examination is wide ranging and he examines the education spectrum from nursery
to university. He finishes with an examination of the Education Act 1944 and
indicates that although during the early 1940s he had had grave reservations about
the future of education his mind had been changed. He writes with optimism that
“there has been much to encourage, and little to excite new fears and apprehensions … Today I feel I can hear the opening cords of what may prove to be a composition on the grand scale.”19
Although Dent’s writing has substance as an historical record and is of obvious
interest, it is, like the work of many of his contemporaries, Clarke20 and Tawney21
for example, now very dated and staid and his philosophy is very much of the period.
Michael Sadler is perhaps the most important contributors to the history of
education during the interwar years. He offered a detailed view of comparative
17 H. C. Dent, Reviewed Work(s): The Silent Social Revolution: An Account of the Expansion of Public
Education in England and Wales 1895-1965 by G. A. N. Lowndes, British Journal of Educational Studies,
Vol. 18, No. 2 (Jun., 1970), p. 234. 18 H. C. Dent, Education in Transition: A Sociological Study of the impact of war on English Education
(Kegan Paul: London, 1944) p. ix. 19 H. C. Dent, ibid., p. 23. 20 F. Clarke, Education and Social Change: An English Interpretation (The Sheldon Press: London, 1940); F.
Clarke, Educational research in the new setting. British Journal of Educational Psychology, (Vol XIV: 1944),
1-6. 21 R. H. Tawney, Secondary Education for All: A Policy for Labour (The Labour Party: London, 1922).
6
education which became a benchmark for later education historians both in Great
Britain22 and the United States of America,23 which Cohen suggests are “brilliant
excursions into sociology.”24 According to Cohen, Sadler began to link social factors
with education development during a period when the history of education was
generally restricted to studies of institutions, pedagogy, and autobiography.25 Sadler
believed that it was only through an improved education system that England could
retain its prestige in the world and suggested that children from all sectors of society
should be offered far greater educational opportunity. This should be through “a
deliberate reconstruction of the education of the masses with a view to ‘social
unification and increased collective efficiency’”26 and it is apparent that this theme
was prominent throughout the early twentieth century..27 Sadler’s analysis of
elementary education suggests that it should not only teach the literacy skills but to
engender character, fellowship and spirituality.28 Although much of his language is
now dated, he uses phrases that have made their way into modern educational
parlance: ‘educational ladder’29 for example.
McCulloch is of the opinion that Clarke30 and Mannheim31 were part of the
generation that began to look for an “alternative approach to the history of
education.”32during the late 1930s. Clarke was greatly influenced by Mannheim, as,
interestingly, were R.A. Butler, who considered that Mannheim’s philosophies and
ideas were very similar to his own, and William Beveridge. However, his views were
disliked by many politicians as they “were discordant with traditional patterns of
English thought.”33 Butler considered that Mannheim’s philosophies and ideas were
22 For example, N. Hans, The principles of educational policy, (P.S. King & Son, London, 1929); N. Hans,
Comparative Education, (1949) 23 See for example E. Pollack, Isaac Leon Kandel, 1881 -1965, Prospects, (Paris, UNESCO: International
Bureau of Education), vol. 23, no. 3/4, 1993, p. 775–87: I. G, Kandel, Studies in Comparative Education,
(Harrap, 1933). 24 S. Cohen, Sir Michael Sadler and the Sociopolitical Analysis of Education, History of Education
Quarterly, Vol 7, No 3 (1967) pp 281-294 25 H.A.L. Fisher, Educational Reform (1918); A. Mansbridge, Margaret McMillan, Prophet and Power
(1920); G.W. Ketewich, The Education Department and After (1920). 26 "The School in Some of Its Relations to Social Organization and to National Life,"' p. 340 in . Cohen, Sir
Michael Sadler and the Sociopolitical Analysis of Education, History of Education Quarterly, Vol 7, No 3
(1967) p. 286. 27 C. Cannon, The Influence of Religion on Educational Policy, 1902-1944. British Journal of Educational
Studies, Vol 12, (May 1964), p. 155. 28 M. E. Sadler, Our Public Elementary Schools, (Thornton Butterworth Ltd: London 1930) p. 28. 29 M. E. Sadler, (1930) ibid., p. 30 30 F. Clarke, Education and Social Change: An English Interpretation. (The Sheldon Press, London, 1940.) 31 K. Mannheim, Freedom, Power and Democratic Planning (Oxford University Press; New York, 1950.) 32 G. McCulloch, (2011)op.cit., p. 31 33 J. Harris The Debate in the Welfare State in H.L. Smith (ed) War and Social Change. Manchester
University Press. Manchester. 1986 p. 241
7
very similar to his own. Clarke came to believe that there was a very strong
association between education and sociology and that progress in education
development could not be made unless conditioned by historical and economic
social factors. He draws attention to the ideas of earlier writers, Tom Paine and
Thomas and Matthew Arnold, who wrote in the “explicitly held social philosophy”34
of the period but at the same time did not show an understanding of their social
precepts. He draws parallels to these traits and those of British education historians
writing in the last decade who wrote with a lack of critical self-awareness. He was
also very critical of the way in which education in Great Britain was arranged,
particularly selection for entry into secondary schools, and to the fact that British life
was dominated and controlled by the public and independent school sector. He
draws attention to the fact that there was no cross connection between the different
sectors of education and that this was greatly harming social unity. Similarly, he
suggests that the Spens Report reflects a great resistance to change in the
secondary sector, particularly towards technical education and multi-lateral
schools.35 Hsiao Yuh Ku, in a very interesting journal article, refers to the importance
of Clarke’s influence on policy during the war years, which perhaps reflects on his
relationship with R. A. Butler. She suggests that he tried to influence Butler against
the tripartite system and he lobbied strongly for a later transfer into secondary
schools.36 Clarke’s ideas and philosophy were in many ways far ahead of their time
and more attuned of those of the 1960s.
It is thought that there is a narrowness to the history of education in England
and Wales which has led to it being an impoverished area for research. In general,
it relied heavily on ‘Acts and Facts’ and empirical study In some respects these
characteristics are exemplified by Birchenough’s37 early research into elementary
education. His writing, like that of Lowndes,38 can be seen to parallel that of the
much criticised39 Cubberley40 in the United States of America but nevertheless gives
34 F. Clarke, (1940) op. cit., p. 7 35 F. Clarke, (1940) ibid., p. 21. 36 Hsiao-Yuh Ku, Education for liberal democracy: Fred Clarke and the 1944 Education Act. History of
Education, Vol 42, No 5, (2013), pp. 578-597. 37 C. Birchenough, History of Elementary Education in England and Wales from 1800 to the Present Day
(University Tutorial Press: London, 1920). 38 G.A.N. Lowndes, (1969) op. cit. 39 L. A. Cremin, The Wonderful World of Ellwood Patterson Cubberley: an essay on the historiography of
American education (Teachers College: Columbia New York, 1965). 40 E. P. Cubberley, Changing conceptions of education (1909); Public Education in the United States (1919),
for example.
8
an interesting overview of elementary education during the 1920s. This narrowness
certainly appears to have been the case during the interwar period.41 Gareth
Stedman Jones points out that historians have tended to examine educational
events minutely, using a wide variety of tools including “archaeology, philology and
painstaking textual criticism”42 although this type of historical research had been
heavily criticised but was perpetuated by many of the post war historians: Curtis,43
Barnard44and Dent45 for example. They asked few questions about social class and
modernisation in the same way as those writing in the mainstream of history. It is
also the case that the comparative dearth of education history offered few
opportunities for criticism or further debate. This situation slowly began to change,
and by the 1960s there was a groundswell of new ideas from the United States of
America as researchers, Cremin,46 Bailyn47 and Katz,48 for example, began a
revision of the history of education. They discarded the old “epithets”49 of narrow
institutional history and began to link education with other societal areas to develop
“new sub-disciplines”50 in the subject. However, it appears that English historians
were silent during the revisionist debate that was raging in North America during the
1960s and 1970s. As a consequence, it was difficult for historians, Brian Simon and
W. B. Stephens,51 for example, to break away from the safe traditionalism taught
and understood in teacher training establishments to form a new approach to the
discipline.
In spite of this, recent historiography has accepted that education cannot be
viewed in isolation and a number of sub-disciplines or influences have been put
forward. Historians have variously divided the study of education into distinct areas
41 R. Lowe, History as propaganda: the strange uses of history, History of Education Major Themes, Vol 1,
(Routledge Falmer, London, 2000.) 42 G. Stedman Jones, History: the poverty of empiricism, in R. Blackburn, (Ed.) Ideology in Social Science
Readings in Critical Social Theory, (Fontana, London, 1998.) p. 97 in Gary McCulloch, (2011) op. cit. p. 12. 43 S. J. Curtis, History of Education of Great Britain, (University Tutorial Press, London, 1968.) 44 H. C. Barnard, History of English Education from 1760, (Hodder & Stoughton, London, 1961.) 45 H. C. Dent, 1870-1970 Century of Growth in English Education, (Longman, 1970.) H. C. Dent, ‘To Cover
the Country with Good Schools: A Century’s Effort,’ British Journal of Educational Studies, Vol 19. No 2
(1971) 46 L. A. Cremin, (1965) op. cit. 47 B. Bailyn, Education in the Forming of American Society (Random House: 1960). 48 M. Katz, The Origins of Public Education: A Reassessment. History of Education Quarterly, Vol. 16, No.
4: (1976) 381-407. 49 D. Sloan, Historiography and the History of Education. Review of Research in Education, Vol. 1: (1973)
239-269, p. 239. 50 D Reeder, History of Education and the City in R. Lowe, (Ed) History of Education Major Themes, Vol 2,
(Routledge Falmer: London, 2000) p. 352. 51 W. B. Stephens, ‘Recent trends in the history of education in England to 1900,’ Education Research and
Perspectives, 8, 1, 1981, pp. 5-15.
9
which reflect its diversity.52 However, there is a commonality in these themes which
Silver53 suggests was intended to further a sense of nationhood and cultural
homogeny and to serve the purpose of the writer in a way which reflects the period
or current thinking. Overall the history of education “is best considered as part of the
wider history of society, social history broadly interpreted with the politics, the
economics and, it is necessary to add, the religion put in.”54
Some of the elements suggested by Briggs and others as relevant to the
history of education are only of limited importance to its development during the
interwar period. However, three were extremely influential, and these, politics,
religion and the economic situation, were all critical. The economy, and its effects
on education are included in much of the history of the period55 and it underpins
Simon’s work.56. According to McCulloch,57 Simon was influenced by the challenge
set by Fred Clarke58 who had called for research into the links between education
and other social sructures. Clarke was critical of the lack of interogative qualities in
the historiography which frequently relied soley on empirical studies and ignored
links with socio-economic and religious issues. Simon set out to establish these links
and set education development in the context of the political movements of the
period and essentially documented the working class struggle for education.59
Simon was actively engaged in education policy making and McCulloch
points out that Rattansi and Reeder60 have argued that he “regarded the struggle
for the history of education in activist terms as being not simply academic in nature
but also political and ideological.”61 He developed “a rationale for the study of the
history of education as a basis for critical scholarship”62 and examined the
relationship between education and social change. Initially he interpreted this within
52 A. Briggs, The Study of the History of Education in R. Lowe ed, (2000), op.cit; W. Richardson, Historians
and educationalist: the history of education as a field of study Part 1, 1945-72. History of Education, Vol 28,
Issue 1: (1991) 1-30; W. Richardson, Historians and educationalist: the history of education as a field of
study, Part II, 1972-96. History of Education Vol 28, Issue 2: (1999) 109-141; G. McCulloch, (2011) op. cit., 53 H. Silver, Aspects of Neglect: The Strange Case of Victorian Popular Education. Oxford Review of
Education, 3. 1: (1977) 57-69. 54 A. Briggs, ibid., p. 153 55 A. Hutt, The Condition of the Working Class in Britain (Martin Lawrence: London, 1933) for example. 56 B. Simon, (1974), op.cit. 57 G. McCulloch, (2011) op. cit., p. 8. 58 F. Clarke, (1940) op. cit. 59 G. McCulloch, (2011) ibid., p. 14. 60 A. Rattansi and D. Reeder, eds, Rethinking Radical Education: Essays in Honour of Brian Simon
(Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1992), p. 16. 61 G. McCulloch, (2011) op. cit., p. 41. 62 ibid., p. 41.
10
the Marxist framework of social class conflict but gradually became to believe that
this was a flawed ideology. In a key essay in Can Education Change Society63
Simon suggested that in England state education had been established to reinforce
social and economic relations “but had become itself a site of conflict.”64 Although
he acknowledged that there had been ‘a silent social revolution’ any changes to
education provision were ultimately the outcome of long and difficult confrontation.
According to Simon it had been the efforts of the working classes that had created
and strengthened the system and that people like Robert Owen and Kay-
Shuttleworth spoke only for the middle classes, a fact which undermined the efforts
of the working classes both in society and in education. He also came reject the
Marxist idea that education was purely a form of social control and believed that
“Gramsci’s more positive evaluation of the achievements of elementary schooling and finds in Marxist theory support for the progressive rather that a humanist curriculum, adapted to take account of the interests of contemporary social groups, constitutes an appropriate agenda for the school of all.”65
Simon’s discourse on education during the interwar years66 illustrates his
determination to place provision in the context of the politics of the period. This
detailed analysis draws on a wide range of contemporary documentation, and is one
of the few histories of education that include an investigation of the profound
restraining effect that financial pressures had on development.
Despite the general approbation for Simon’s historiography, he has come
under some criticism for presenting only a male orientated view of the history of
education. This lack of gender awareness was very common before it became an
area for academic study, and there is a persistent theme that the role of women in
the development of education has been largely ignored. Purvis67 suggests that both
liberal and Marxist historians68 are guilty of this, and points out that Simon69
presented a view of the struggle of the working classes for education which focused
63 B. Simon, Can Education Change Society? in Does Education Matter? (Lawrence and Wishart: London,
1985a), in G. McCulloch, (2011), op. cit. 64 G. McCulloch, (2011) ibid., p. 43. 65 P. Cunningham, ‘Educational History and Educational Change: The Past Decade of English
Historiography’, History of Education Quarterly, Vol. 29, No. 1: (Spring, 1989), 77-94, p. 82. 66 B. Simon, The Politics of Educational Reform 1920-1940 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1974). 67 J. Purvis, The Historiography of British Education in A. Rattansi and D. Reeder eds, (1992) op. cit. 68 P. Miller, Education and the State: The uses of Marxist and feminist approaches in the writing of the
histories of schooling. Historical Studies in Education, 1. 2: (1989) 283 – 306. 69 B. Simon, The Two Nations and the Education Structure 1780-1870 (Lawrence Wishart: London, 1974).
11
solely on the education of men and their part in the educating process. She suggests
that this set the scene for the future of education history and records that Jane
Marcus,70 the radical feminist, pointed out that
“first histories invent the narrative and historical plot. The choice of decisive events and the naming of key figures sets the scene for the drama; the next generation of historians has to struggle hard if it wishes to break the grip and force of the first account.”71
Some of the most fruitful research during the interwar period was written by
two historians who explored the interconnection between Labour Party policies and
education. Barker72 presents a picture of a philosophically divided party which could
not decide its priorities: whether to support employers or workers, a theme which
was common in Labour Party policy throughout the period. He identifies the class
consciousness that lay beneath the veneer of socialism and which was evident in
all attempts to reform elementary education. Barker shows that it was not so much
that Labour did not have an education policy but that it had a number of conflicting
ideas and as a result there could be no agreement on a way forward. Barker makes
little reference to either the two critical influences on education during the period,
the economic situation or the whole question of the non-provided sector. Barker’s
research focuses very much on the history of the Labour Party in the context of
education, and gives the former considerable emphasis. Education, in this instance,
was used as a vehicle for party policy rather than the key issue.
While Barker used education as a vehicle for exploring political history, Brian
Simon’s focus was the historical development of education and how this was
influenced by extrinsic factors. He points out that the history of education was a key
element in teacher training and this linked “interest in the educational past with
operation in the present.”73 He suggests that while this has proved useful, it also has
proved dangerous as it sometimes crystallised “complex issues into convenient
responses.”74 Exceptions to this would be the early education historiography of
70 J. Marcus, Suffrage and the Pankhursts (Routledge Kegan Paul: London, 1987). 71 J. Purvis, The Historiography of British Education, p. 251 in A. Rattansi D. Reeder (Eds) (1992) ibid. 72 R. Barker, Education and Politics 1900-1951 A Study of the Labour Party (Clarendon Press: Oxford,
1972). 73 B. Simon, ‘The History of Education in the 1980s’, British Journal of Educational Studies, Vol. 30, No. 1:
(1982), 85-96, p. 86. 74 B. Simon, (1982), ibid., p. 86.
12
A. E. Dodds75 and Elié Halvéy76 who “analysed the views of philosophical radicals
in terms of their educational implications.”77 He points out that because the interwar
years were considered uninteresting “the earlier history of education became
bedded down into something approaching a reverent commentary on the findings
of predecessors.”78
It appears that the most well researched area in the history of education was
Labour party influences on education. This is an interesting characteristic and
Marwick has pointed out that the educational politics of the period were so
dominated by the Conservative Party that there has been no need to review them.79
However, there have been a number of reviews about Conservative education
policies80 and Simon offers an interpretation,81 as does Mowat82 but there has been
little in-depth academic research on the same scale as that of the Labour Party. It
is interesting to note that although Dean’s article suggests it is mainly about
Conservative policy this is not entirely the case. It is very much an empirical study
of the relationship between the two main parties and the Labour battle to try and win
the heart and minds of the voters, especially with regard to social reform. Dean links
the fact that Conservatives thought education reform might be damaging to future
electoral results. He captures the essence of Conservative party policy by pointing
out that it considered that advance should be “gradual … the product of necessity
rather than ideology”83 a theme which is apparent through the historiography of the
period.
There is some consensus that the major events in education during the
interwar period were brought about by “a crisis.”84 Akenson,85 Marwick86, Gosden87
75 A. E. Dodds, Education and Social Movement (1919). 76 E. Halvéy History of the English People in the Nineteenth Century The Rule of Democracy. Vol. 6 (Ernest
Benn Ltd: London, 1912). 77 B. Simon, (1982), op. cit., p. 86. 78 B. Simon, ibid., p. 87. 79 A. Marwick, (1970), op. cit., p. 319 80 D. W. Dean, Conservatism and the National Education System 1922-40, Journal of Contemporary History,
Vol. 6. No 2 (1974) pp 150-165, for example. 81 B. Simon, (1974) op.cit. 82 C. L. Mowat, Britain Between The Wars (Methuen: London, 1968). 83 D. W. Dean, ibid., p. 154 84 A. M. Rivlin, Reflections on twenty years of higher education policy, educational access and achievement
in America’, New York, College entrance examination Board 7 in H. Silver, Education, Change and the
Policy Process (Falmer Press: Lewis, 1990), p. 5. 85 D. H. Akenson, Patterns of English Educational Change: The Fisher and Butler Act. History of Education
Quarterly, Vol. 11, No 2: (1971), 143-156, p. 145. 86 A. Marwick, (1970), op.cit. 87 P. Gosden, Putting the Act together, History of Education, Vol. 24, No 3. (1995), pp. 195-207.
13
and Titmuss,88 although each has a slightly different viewpoint, all suggest that the
Education Acts of 1918 and 1944 were precipitated by a period of conflict. Marwick,
for example, is of the opinion that war is an extreme example of a sociological study
of disasters, and quotes Marx’ view that “war passes extreme judgement on social
systems that have outlived their vitality.“89 Akenson suggested that the two
Education Acts followed the same pattern of development as in both cases the
“ideational components”90 of the Acts were conceived by the Board of Education in
the years before the two World Wars. He believes that the crystallisation of these
ideas failed because once the events of wartime had been removed, the momentum
for change was lost due to external factors, politics and the economy, for example.
Both Gosden and Titmuss offer evacuation as one of the factors in the origins
of the Education Act 1944. Gosden, draws from his extensive study of education
during wartime91 to point to the “dissatisfaction with the education system and the
increasing lack of confidence in what it provided”92 which became even more
obvious once evacuation had begun. It provided evidence of poverty, depravation,
and particularly inequality of provision across England and Wales. It also indicated
the weaknesses and ineptitude of both the Board of Education and LEAs He
believes this, together with the fact that there was a need to national unity meant
that there was “a very strong movement of public opinion from 1940 in favour of
social reform and extensive change.”93 Gosden also draws attention to the fact that
religious belief became far more important during wartime and that this became an
important issue in the plans that emerged for education in 1944.
In much the same way, Richard Titmuss considers that it was the disclosure
of elements of depravation in society during evacuation that was a significant factor
in precipitating the Education Act 1944.94 He points out that the resulting promise of
new educational and social policies after the end of the war was intended to “fuse
and unify”95 different elements in the community, not only to ensure that they acted
88 R. M. Titmuss, Essays on the Welfare State (Allen and Unwin: London, 1958). 89 Karl Marx, The Eastern Question (1897) in A. Marwick, (1970) ibid., p. 13. 90 D. H. Akenson, op. cit. p. 144. 91 P.H.J.H Gosden, Education in the Second World War (Methuen and Co. Ltd: London, 1976). 92 P. Gosden, (1995), ibid., p. 195. 93 P. Gosden, (1995), ibid., p. 195. 94 K. Jefferys, British Politics and Social Policy during the Second World War. The Historical Journal, Vol.
30, No 1: (1987) 123-144, p. 123; S. Parker, (2005), op. cit. 95 R. M. Titmuss, (1958) op. cit., p. 84.
14
co-operatively but also to offer an understanding that they would have a better life
when peace came. This promise of change, as a reward for co-operation, is a
constant theme in the historiography of the period and one which led to “a passion
for making social reconstruction plans … Education was very much to the fore.”96 It
has been suggested that Titmuss’ premise that evacuation was very significant in
designing social policy coloured later historical judgements, and this influence
remained until historians such as Harris97 and Macnicol98 began to question his
views.99 Titmuss’ oeuvre on eugenics, poverty and social policy was highly regarded
at the time. For example, Chambers in his lengthy review of Social Policy praised
Titmuss by suggesting that: “Whatever future generations may think of the way in
which their forbears conducted themselves in the civilian war they will surely agree
that they were fortunate in their historian.”100 Despite his standing as a social
historian Titmuss views have been heavily criticised in the years since the
publication of his work in 1950.101 Regardless of this, his work remains a valuable
historical record of social provision and policy during the Second World War.
Jose Harris puts forward an alternative to Titmuss’ opinions by suggesting
that the wide ranging post war construction in England and Wales was paralleled
“by comparable changes in all other Western European countries, both Allied and
Axis, both combatant and neutral.”102 She argues that reconstruction was brought
about purely by political and intellectual factors and that it was not influenced in any
way by any of the events of wartime. Harris suggests that pressure for welfare
reforms, begun by the Webbs in 1897 “when they formulated their principle of
‘national minimum’.”103 continued in various guises through the intervening period
until the 1930s when there was “Pressure for comprehensive social welfare –
96N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, (1976) op. cit., p. 207. 97 J. Harris, Some Aspects of Social Policy During the Second World War, in W. H. Monmasen (ed), The
Emergence of the Welfare State in Britain and Germany(London: 1976) in J. Welshman, Evacuation and
Social Policy During the Second World War: Myth and Reality. Twentieth Century British History, Vol. 9,
Issue 1: (1998) 28-53, p. 29. 98 J. Macnicol, The Evacuation of Schoolchildren, in H. L. Smith (ed), War and Social Change (MUP:
Manchester, 1986), in J. Welshman, ibid., p. 29. 99 J. Welshman, ibid., p. 29. 100 R. C. Chambers, Reviewed Work(s): Problems of Social Policy by R. M. Titmuss, The British Journal of
Sociology, Vol. 1, No. 3 (Sept., 1950), p. 269
Published by: Wiley on behalf of The London School of Economics and Political 101 R. M. Titmuss, R. M., Problems of Social Policy (HMSO: London, 1950) 102 J. Harris, War and Social History: Britain and the Home Front during the Second World War.
Contemporary European History, Vol. 1. No. 1: (1992) 17-35, p. 35. 103 S and B Webb, Industrial Democracy (1897), pp. 766-84 in J. Harris, The Debate in the Welfare State, in
H.L. Smith ed, (1986), op. cit. p. 250.
15
together with a full employment programme and corporatist planning.”104 The
political discontent and divide that followed was due to the fact that in order to make
major changes in both education and welfare there would also need to be changes
within organisations and operation of the State in order to implement them. This
move towards a “qualitative change in the identity of the State”105 was universally
disliked and although there was a real perception of the need to change, agreement
could not be reached. This view connects to the wider examination of evacuation by
Parsons and others in the European arena.106 She points out that regardless of the
intellectual philosophical arguments it was the entry of the Labour party into the
wartime coalition Government that accelerated the reconstruction process. Harris
believes that Labour “with its strongly internationalist and quasi-pacifist tradition,
needed far more than other parties to find a rational for fighting the war other than
mere national defence.” She quotes Harold Laski107 who put forward the premise
that the ‘price’ for Labour’s co-operation and support of the war effort was the
‘making of a more equal society’ – “ a goal which expressed itself throughout the
party in passionate discussion of post-war social reform.”108 Harris concludes that
although changes in education and the welfare state did come into being these did
not attract the moral or philosophical argument that previous social policies had
aroused, and because of this they have had a continuing unclear definition that has
left them open and “vulnerable to changes in political and economic climate, and to
attacks from more rigorous and dogmatic intellectual rivals.”109
Other interpretations of education and social development are now much
more influential than those of Titmuss. Briggs, for example, believed that in terms of
educational development, “long term influences and trends”110 are generally more
important than crisis and different elements offer a range of constantly changing
values with distinct priorities. Similarly, McCulloch111 suggests that while the history
of education is strategic in relation to other fields of study, sociology for example,
104 J. Harris, (1986) op. cit., p. 236. 105 ibid., p. 236. 106 M. Parsons, (Ed) Children: The Invisible Victims of War. An Interdisciplinary Study (DSM: Peterborough,
2008); N. Stargardt, Witnesses of War: Children’s Lives Under the Nazis, (Jonathan Cape: London, 2005). 107 H. Laski. Where Do We Go From Here. New York 1940 in J. Harris The Debate in the Welfare State in
H.L. Smith (ed) War and Social Change., (MUP: Manchester. 1986) p. 251. 108 J. Harris, ibid., p. 257 109 J. Harris, (1986) op. cit., p. 257 110 A. Briggs, Serious Pursuits: Communications and Education, The Collected Essays of Asa Briggs, Volume
3 (Harvester Wheatsheaf: 1991) p. 238. 111 G. McCulloch, The Struggle for the History of Education (Routledge: London, 2011).
16
this relationship can sometimes be uncomfortable and insecure. These associations
are complex and frequently disputed. Donato and Lazerson reflect that time, place
and educational background create conflict for educational historians who see
themselves as adding to a body of work by asking questions that are rooted in the
past. Conversely, sociologists are led in another direction:
“to view the past in contemporary terms, finding historical questions in today’s conflict and framing the questions in terms that make sense to present minded colleagues. In choosing one end of the spectrum we risk neglect and rejection of the other.”112
They also point out that, in their opinion, there are fundamental differences in the
way that education historians and sociologists think and that while “social scientists
place a high value on research design, educational historians often wonder what
that means”113 These opinions are held together by Durkheim’s suggestion that “we
should carry out historical research into the manner in which educational
configurations have progressively come to cluster together to combine and form
organic relationships.”114 This multiplicity of direction is a clear indicator of not only
the complexity of the history of education, but of education itself. In spite of this, it is
recognised that there is a tendency for historians of education “not to make
explicit”115 the perspective from which they write, and therefore it is not uncommon
find references to a number of social theories and different interpretations of these.
Silver suggests that many historians, especially those writing from a Marxist
perspective, have a very limited understanding of social class, the breadth of social
structures and the place of education within them.116
The influence of religion on education cannot be understated. It was
fundamental to its early development during the nineteenth century when
denominational groups began to establish a voluntary schools system.117 and was
to remain a very pertinent factor throughout the period under investigation. It has
remained a constant and very strong influence on the organisation of schools, on
112 R. Donato and M. Lazerson, New directions in American educational history: problems and prospects,
Educational Review, 29(8), 1-15, p. 4 in Gary McCulloch, (2011), ibid., p. 5. 113 ibid., p. 4. 114 E. Durkheim, The Evaluation of Educational Thought: Lectures on the Formation and Development of
Secondary Education in France (RKP; London, 1977) p. 10-11 in G. McCulloch, (2011) op. cit., p. 4. 115 J. Purvis, The Historiography of British Education a Feminist Critique in A. Rattansi and D. Reeder eds,
Rethinking Radical Education: Essays in Honour of Brian Simon (Lawrence Wishart: London, 1992) p. 16. 116 H. Silver, Historiography of Education in R. Lowe ed, Vol. 1 (2000) op.cit. 117 C Birchenough, History of Elementary Education in England and Wales from 1800 to the Present Day
(University Tutorial Press: London, 1920); S. J Curtis, History of Education in Great Britain (University
Tutorial Press: 1948) particularly Chapter VI.
17
policy and legislation. In common with other areas of historiography there is little
contemporary writing for the period which illustrates the links between religion and
education. This is confirmed by a review of the references in some well known
historiography118 although writing on aspects of links with the community are
common.119
By the end of the 1930s there was beginning to be deep unease about the
place of religion in community life and how this impacted on education. This issue
is central to Church, Community, and the State in Relation to Education published
in 1938.120 Its chapters reflect the fact that education is largely determined on the
basis of the “norms and values which are dominant in the society from which it takes
its rise.”121 As would be expected for the period, its main focus is not only on
Christianity but also on the role of the Church in education. Clarke questions
whether the perceived crisis in education was caused by the breakdown of the
“settled social and cultural order”122 of society after the end of the First World War.
He suggests that the focus of religion should not be only in its teaching in schools
but should be an underlying philosophy throughout education. These opinions are
somewhat out of tune with his later sociological work which reflects a more liberal
viewpoint.
However, Clarke’s philosophy is mirrored to some extent in a second chapter
which suggests that while in totalitarian countries, Russia for example, education is
generally atheistic, there are growing similarities between this and western counties.
Smith is of the opinion that:
“In Britain, for example, the Church still retains a position in public life which conceals the extent to which her hold on the community has weakened, and there is a strong allegiance to Christian values which may create a false impression of the strength of Christian belief.”123
118 In F. Clarke, W. Zenkovsky, P. Munroe, C. R. Morris, J. W. D. Smith, Ph. Kohnstamm. ‘X’, J. H.
Oldham, Church, Community, and state in Relation to Education, (George Allen & Unwin Ltd: London,
1938); J. Murphy, Church, state and Schools in Britain, 1800-1970 (Routledge & Kegan Paul; London,
1971). 119 W. A. Visser, W. A. Hooft, and J. H. Oldham, The Church and its Function in Society, (George Allen &
Unwin; London, 1937) for example. 120 F. Clarke et al., (1938) ibid. 121 F. Clarke et al., ibid., p. 3. 122 F. Clarke et al., ibid., p. 9 123 J. W. D. Smith, The Crisis in Christian Education, in F. Clarke et al., op. cit., p. 122.
18
Smith believes that this was reflected in schools, because although religious
knowledge was taught there was an “uncertainty about moral and spiritual
values.”124 This is confirmed by Ph. Kohnstamm who pointed out that the spiritual
ethos of education was facing a crisis because it was being diminished “as the result
of secularist attacks which have had an extensive influence.”125. He further suggests
that education was becoming intellectualised and has moved from being an affair of
the heart to one solely of the head. It “pays more attention to the formulation of
correct theological formulae than to a life of trustful obedience.”126 Although the
language in these chapters is now very dated its philosophy is very much in tune
with many of modern ideas about the place of religion in education. An interesting
modern interpretation of this has been put forward by Rob Freathy. He refers to the
fight by William Temple to defend the status of the Anglican church “at a time when
the nation was looking for a powerful enough ideology with which to fight off secular
evils and prepare for post-war reconstruction.”127
In the mid 1960s Cannon returned to the influence of religion on education
policy. 128 She believes that although there had been an apparent decline in religion,
especially in education, in Great Britain this is something of an overstatement of the
reality of the situation. Cannon points out that religion was affecting education in a
number of ways: through policy making; religious and secular schools and through
“the influence of religion in schools themselves.”129 She examines the religious
debate during the 1902 and 1944 Education Acts and finds that it was central to
discussion, especially at parliamentary level. However, she also points out that the
rise of secularisation in education policy came mainly from the teacher unions, the
Local Education Authorities and to some extent from the Labour party. She
maintains, however, that “Although many studies show the increasing secularisation
of left-wing politics, even in such religious strongholds as Wales, there remained a
thread of religious motivation in parts of the Labour leadership.”130 This trend
appears to have been of long standing as Cannon quotes George How writing in
124 J. W. D. Smith, op. cit., p. 131. 125 Ph. Kohnstamm, Christian Education in the World of the Present Day; Its Nature and its Mission, in
Education in F. Clarke et al., ibid., p. 138. 126 Ph. Kohnstamm, ibid., p. 137 127 R.J. K. Freathy, Ecclesiastical and religious factors which preserved Christian and traditional forms of
education for citizenship in English schools, 1934-1944. Oxford Review of Education, (2007) pp. 367-377. 128 C. Cannon, The Influence of Religion on Educational Policy, 1902-1944. British Journal of Educational
Studies, 12 (2): (1964) 143 – 160 129 C. Cannon, (1964) ibid., p. 143. 130 C. Cannon, (1963) op. cit., p. 155.
19
1904, “Labour feels … the Church is a capitalist organisation. The churchgoing
employer and the stay away trade-unionist are alike suspicious of each other.”131
However, the situation in Wales may not have been as simple as Cannon suggests.
There have been suggestions that after the First World War and the
disestablishment of the Church of England in Wales ”the churches have retired from
the field of political controversy”132 as the causes they fought for were no longer
important. The radical non-conformity of the Liberal party had been overtaken by
the rise in Labour party which did not have the same appeal to the non-conformist
middle classes. This premise has been discussed at length in Pope’s more recent
and very detailed work. He suggests that the labour movement “challenged and
ultimately replaced, the Non-conformist hegemony in Welsh life.”133
The decline in Christianity is challenged by Stephen Parker who provides an
extremely interesting and readable contemporary oral history of attitudes in war time
Birmingham.134 This sits in much the same time-frame as Pope’s research but
examines Anglican attitudes to religion rather than those of Non-conformists. This
is one of the few oral histories that draws directly from a wide range of personal
religious experiences during the Second World War. Parker suggests that there was
something of a revival in Christianity during the period and which continued post war
which “historians and sociologists have never come to terms with.”135 He believes
that this was partly due to the physical, moral and spiritual support give to the
general population by the clergy during war time. Parker also believes that the
Church play a considerable role in offering a view of social reform after the end of
the war, a factor which is a theme throughout the historiography of wartime
education.136 It is difficult to draw conclusions from these to viewpoints but it is clear
that there was a considerable difference in attitudes between the two
denominations, although certainly the secularisation of Welsh life and organisations
may have been a substantial factor.
131 G. How, in R Mudie-Smith, ed., The Religious Life of London (London : Hodder & Stoughton, 1904) in C.
Cannon, ibid., p. 155. 132 T. Brennan, E. W. Cooney, H. Pollins, Social Change in South-West Wales (Watts: London 1954) p. 139. 133 R. Pope, Building Jerusalem: non-conformity, Labour and the social question in Wales, 1906-1939
second edn, (UWP: Cardiff, 1998), p. 241. 134 S. Parker, Faith on the Home Front: Aspects of Church Life and Popular Religion in Birmingham 1939 –
1945 (Peter Lang: Bern, 2005) 135 C. Brown, The Death of Christian Britain: Understanding Secularisation 1800 -2000, (Routledge: London
2001)p. 170 in S. Parker, (2005) op. cit., p. 215. 136 B. Simon, Education and Social Order 1940-1990 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1991); P.H.J.H
Gosden, (1976) op. cit., for example.
20
Pope’s and Parker’s work do not relate directly to education but rather emphasise
the fact that during the late 1930s questions had begun to be raised about the
position of religion in community life. This grew to be a major factor and was certainly
influential in the years immediately prior to the Education Act 1944. Although many
historians have discussed the Education Act 1944, its origins and legislation137 only
Cruikshank138 makes an in-depth examination of the religious influences and
pressures of the period. She deals with these through an examination of twentieth
century legislation and it is clear that her personal link with R.A. Butler gave her a
different perspective on the Education Act 1944, as well as access to unpublished
primary sources. She presents a clear picture of how religion was interwoven with
the development of education and why it was so difficult to separate non-provided
and state education in England although she makes few comments about the
situation in Wales. Her review of the Education Act 1902 and the religious difficulties
that followed are echoes in her remarks on the Birrell Bill of I908 which if it had been
accepted would have substantially solved many of the problems of denominational
schools by replacing them with a unified system of education. Although sometimes
criticised for being lacking in detail in some aspects,139 her work remains one of the
most valuable and interesting pieces of research about the role that religion played
in education.
Historiography of Evacuation
The historiography of evacuation is a very small body of work that can be divided
into several quite discrete parts. Firstly there has been the investigation into the
reasons; the processes and the effects of evacuation140 which Gärtner suggests
have been of lasting interest, although these concentrated on its social impact rather
than “political ontology.”141 This includes one of the only histories which related
137 H C. Dent, The Education Act 1944 (ULP: London, 1944); M. Barker, Making of the 1944 Education Act
(Cassell Education: London, 1994); G. McCulloch, Education Reconstruction: The 1944 Education Act and
the Twenty First Century (Woburn Press: Essex, 1994); K. Jones, Education in Britain, 1944 –to the Present
(Polity Press: Cambridge, 2001) for example. 138 M. Cruikshank, Church and State in English Education (Macmillan: London, 1964). 139 J. Roach, Reviewed Work(s): Church and State in English Education, 1870 to the Present Day by Marjorie
Cruickshank. The Historical Journal, Vol. 7, No. 1 (1964), pp. 181-182, for example. 140 T. L Crosby, The Impact of Civilian Evacuation in the Second World War (Croom Helm: London, 1986);
J. Welshman, Evacuation and Social Policy During the Second World War: Myth and Reality. Twentieth
Century British History, Vol. 9, Issue 1: (1998) 28-53; M. L. Parsons, ‘I’ll Take That One’: Dispelling the
Myths of Civilian Evacuation 1939-1945 (Beckett Karlson Ltd: Peterborough, 1998); H. V. Nicholson,
‘Prisoners of War’ (Gordon Publishing: London, 2000). 141 N. Gärtner, Administrating ‘Operation Pied Piper’ how the London Council prepared for the evacuation of
its schoolchildren 1938-1939. Journal of Educational Administration and History, 42 1: (2010) 17-32, p. 18.
21
entirely to the evacuation scheme in Wales.142 Second is the sociological discussion
of evacuation which offers the view that it was the fundamental catalyst in the
reconstruction of the welfare state,143 although this has largely been discounted by
revisionist historians who have come to substantially different conclusions.144 Lastly,
is the most recent and largest oeuvre of oral discussion written by adults about their
experiences of evacuation, often as very young children.145 There is a suggestion
that this form of history is only valuable when used to support other concrete
evidence or facts and Parsons believes that “to take either example at face value
would be equally problematic.”146 Passerini adds to this and points out that these
intensely personal accounts must be accurate if they are to give a credible
explanation of events.147 There is a strong element of cathartic reminiscence in
many of these histories and it is quite clear that whatever the outcome for evacuees
the process produced either a profound negative or positive effect.148 Johnson
believes that these narrative histories
“are more valuable and meaningful … than the impersonality and generalization of sociology: solipsistically, in face of something as huge and important as this, all you can rely on is the personal, all you are left with is the subjective.”149
This form of historiography is almost completely directed towards the social aspects
of evacuation and generally portrays the Scheme as one intended to protect children
from the outcomes of war. However, despite the fact that evacuation was a
significant historic event in educational terms it has not been researched to any
great extent. Parsons suggests that this lack of research emanates from the fact
that after the end of the Second World War there was a concerted and collective
effort to forget about all issues concerning children and in Great Britain “the words
142 Wallis, J., A, Welcome in the Hillsides? The Merseyside and North Wales experience of Evacuation 1939-
1945 (Avid Publications: Merseyside, 2000). 143 R. M. Titmuss, Problems of Social Policy (HMSO: London, 1950); R. M. Titmuss, (1958); D. Fraser, The
Evolution of the Welfare State (Palgrave: London, 1973). 144 See: A. Marwick, (1968) op. cit.; J. Harris, (1992) op. cit.; S. G. Parker, R. Freathy and J. Doney, The
Professionalisation of Non-Denominational Religious Education in England: politics, organisation and
knowledge. Journal of Beliefs & Values: Studies in Religion & Education, Volume 37, 2: (2016) 201-238. 145 For example: B. Holman, The Evacuation: A Very British Revolution (Lion: London, 1995); B. Wicks, No
Time to Wave Goodbye (Bloomsbury: London, 1988); B. J. Johnson, (Ed) The Evacuees (Victor Gollancz,
London, 1968). 146 M. Parson, War Child: Children Caught in Conflict (Tempus: 2008) p. 18. 147 L. Passerini, Mythbiography in Oral History in R. Samuel and P. Thompson eds, The Myths We Live By
(Routledge: London, 1990), p. 49. 148 See for example B. Wicks, The Day They Took the Children (Bloomsbury: London, 1989); M. L. Parsons,
(1998.) op. cit. 149 B. J. Johnson, (1968) op. cit., p. 19.
22
Civilian Evacuation were removed from common parlance in March 1946 as part of
a national strategy.”150 In most countries where evacuation did take place it is now
regarded as an embarrassing exercise which developed from of the perceived
inconsequential position of children in society.151
Apart from contemporary studies undertaken during the war period,152
evacuation, as a subject for research did not reappear until the 1950s with the
publication of the official histories of World War Two. The two that directly concerned
the scheme: Problems of Social Policy153 and Studies in the Social Services154 were
mainly concerned with the role played by health and welfare during the period.
Although Titmuss’ investigation remains the best considered study it makes only
incidental reference to education provision155 and he was prevented from having
access to Board of Education documentation. Officials at the Ministry of Education
were “reluctant to see all the Board’s material swallowed up, and perhaps
inadequately digested, either by Mr Titmuss or Sir Arthur Macnalty who appears to
be writing a medical history of the war.”156 It is clear that there were plans to write
an official history of the war time activities of the Board of Education and, although
reluctant to do so, officials kept diaries and other information that was intended to
inform this. There was a particular reluctance to deal with the matter of evacuation
although Davidson wrote that he supposed that it would be useful as guidance in
the next war and would be part of the planning for defence which was already taking
place alongside that of post war reconstruction.157 Dr Sophia Weitzman158 was
originally appointed to write the history of education in war time but did not complete
it due to arguments about fees and ill health.159 The project was later revived by the
150 M. Parsons, War Child: Children Caught in Conflict (Tempus: Stroud, 2008), p. 23. 151 See M. Parsons, ed, Children: The Invisible Victims of War. An Interdisciplinary Study (DSM:
Peterborough, 2008); N. Stargart, (2005) op. cit., for interesting perspectives on the treatment of children in
wartime. 152 For example: Hygiene Committee of the Women’s Group of Public Welfare. Our Towns A Close Up.
(Oxford University Press: Oxford, 1943); R. Padley and M. Cole, Evacuation Survey. A Report to the Fabian
Society (Routledge: London, 1940). 153 R. M. Titmuss, (1950) op. cit. 154 S. Ferguson and H. Fitzgerald, Studies in the Social Services (HMSO: London, 1953). 155 M. Davies, Education in the Second World War: The preparation of an official history. Journal of
Education Administration and History, Volume 8, Issue 2: (1976) 51-55. 156 NA ED 138/58, Letter D. Du B. Davidson to Mr Bosworth Smith, 12 February, 1944. 157 NA ED 10/252, Davidson to Rokeling, 24th February 1942 in M. Davies, (1976) ibid., p. 53 158 Her collected papers are in the University of London. They are also referenced in LMA
LCC/ED/WAR/01/239 Official History of World War Two Education Volume, Dr Sophia Weitzman,
although this file actually contains only records of the information that had been examined in the process of
drawing together information from LCC schools 159 NA ED 138/58, op. cit..
23
Social Science Research Council and completed by P.H.J.H. Gosden.160 His very
detailed commentary on education during wartime refers almost entirely to London
and the south east of England and this regional emphasis appears to be a trend in
research.161 There is a complete absence of studies of Welsh education during the
evacuation period even though many thousands of children were sent into reception
areas there. The most disappointing element of the history of evacuation is that
G.A.N. Lowndes, who was seconded to the Ministry of Health to advise on education
in 1938, makes little reference to his personal experiences of war time education.162
This profile of evacuation historiography is very similar to that of the interwar years
because by the time archival material was available research interest had moved to
other areas: pedagogy and gender differences for example.
History of Education in Wales
Although England and Wales shared the same education legislation it is clear
that little of the history of education in Wales was included in the research of English
historians. There are few clear references to Wales in any of the most informative
texts of the period: by Simon, for example. Even Roy Lowe and Rodney Barker who
spent time teaching in Wales, do not appear to have mentioned it in any of their
writing. The history of Welsh education is a small body of work and dominated by a
few writers, G.E. Jones, W. G. Evans and L. W. Evans, for example, although other
historians have made contributions.163 This is especially the case when it is
compared to other areas of Welsh history which is extensive and because of the
singularity of the social and industrial history of Wales it ranges from explorations of
Victorian Wales,164 to economic and political studies165 and the extensive work of K.
O. Morgan166 and Glanmor Williams167 with many other historians168 making intuitive
and penetrating observations on Welsh life. It is clear that Welsh identity is central
160 P.H.J.H Gosden, Education in the Second World War (Methuen: London, 1976). 161 For example E. Hopkins, Elementary Education in Birmingham during the Second World War. History of
Education, Vol. 18: (1989) 242-255. 162 G.A.N. Lowndes, (1969), op.cit. 163 For example P. Stead, Schools and Society in Glamorgan before 1914. Morgannwg, XIX: (1975); E. D.
Lewis, The Rhondda Valleys (Phoenix House: London, 1959); R. Smith, Schools, Politics and Society:
Elementary Education in Wales 1870-1902 (UWP: Cardiff, 1999). 164 I. G. Jones, Communities: Essays in the Social History of Victorian Wales (Gomer Press: Llandysul,
1987). 165 C. Williams, Capitalism, Community and Conflict: The South Wales Coalfield 1898-1947 (UWP: Cardiff,
1998). 166 K. O. Morgan, Wales In British Politics 1868 -1922 (University Press: Oxford, 1963). 167 G. Williams, Religion, Language and Nationality in Wales: Historical Essays (UWP: Cardiff, 1979). 168J. Davies, A History of Wales (Penguin Books: 1990); G. A. Williams, When Was Wales? (Penguin: 1985).
24
to any historical exploration although this is often accompanied by an over
exaggerated trend towards self-examination which take the place of critical
analysis.169 There is agreement amongst Welsh historians about this and Davies
suggests that “Welsh historians have often written Welsh history with a view to
safeguard, or justify a particular standpoint in the historian’s present.”170 Similarly,
this is the case in much of the history of education, as historians tend to identify,
and study, individual incidents rather that provide an overview of a period, or of the
influences on education general.
The publication of the Blue Books171 in 1847, and the accompanying slur on
Welsh identity are an example of this. Although the Report of the Commissioners as
undeniably a pivotal incident in the development of Welsh education which Morgan
suggests was so controversial that, “their publication marked a greater turning point
in Welsh history than the election of 1868”172 it was only one incident. Evans
suggests there were a number of official reports that were equally as damning, and
which “employed the term ‘educational destitution’ to denote the poor provision of
education in South Wales.”173 The focus on such incidents appears to have led
historians to largely ignore the wider informal influences on education such as
Sunday Schools, for example. Instead they have made rapid progress to the
creation of the University College of Wales and the Welsh Intermediate Act 1889 as
the key catalysts of educational change in Wales. Very little attention has been paid
to the influence of the Welsh language174 or to nationhood, and there must be some
consideration that because Wales was not a separate state, historians were unable
to develop a separate historiography.175 This assumption may correlate with
Green176 and Archer’s177 belief that education development is closely connected to
state formation.
169 M. Johnes, For class and nations: dominant trends in the historiography of twentieth-century Wales.
History Compass, Vol 8, Issue 11: (2010) 1257-1274. 170 R. Davies, Hope and Heartbreak: A Social History of Wales and the Welsh 1776-1871 (UWP: Cardiff,
2005). in M. Johnes, ibid., p. 1. 171 PP. 1847 (870) (871) (872) Report of the Commissioners Appointed to Inquire into the State of Education
in Wales. 172 T. Evans, The Background to Modern Welsh Politics 1789-1846 (UWP: Cardiff, 1936) in P. Morgan,
From Long Knives to Blue Books in R. R. Davies, R. A. Griffiths, I. G. Jones and K. O. Morgan,(Eds) Welsh
Society and Nationhood: Historical Essays presented to Glanmor Williams (UWP: Cardiff, 1984). 173 L. W. Evans, Education in Industrial Wales (Avalon Books: Cardiff, 1971) p. 15. 174 N.J. Smelser, (1991) op.cit, p. 147. 175 ibid., Chapter 6 in particular. 176 A. Green, (2000) op. cit. 177 M. Archer, The Social Origins of Education Systems (Sage: London, 1979).
25
During the 1960s the study and writing of the history of education began to
change178 and historians began to “root the study of formal education in the wider
society … take a much broader definition.”179 By the 1970s Welsh historians had
begun to produce educational research that broke away from writing that was not
wholly empirical.180 As an example, Leslie Wynne Evans in the introduction to
Education in Industrial Wales 1700-1900 makes no apologies:
“for the inclusion of generous helpings of Welsh economic history or for emphasizing the geographical setting, for the whole theme …revolves around the works which in turn produced the industrial community with its particular sociological background.”181
In spite of this there is a tendency for the history of education in Wales to concentrate
on specific influential events rather than put these in a wider conceptual field. The
historiography of Welsh education tends towards investigation into development of
provision up to and including the Education Act 1902 and there has been very little
research after this date. Certainly an examination of the interwar period is almost
non-existent and warrants only a few pages in the more general education histories
of education in Wales.182 Much of twentieth century Welsh history revolves the
Welsh Intermediate Education Act 1889 which is generally thought to have been “an
event of major importance in the history of Wales.”183
The importance that was attached to secondary education in both England
and Wales was enormous, so much so that it subsumed any interest in the
elementary sector. Jones emphasises this in his very short discussion of interwar
education: “The provision of elementary education … was a relatively uncontentious
issue. It was accepted as a state responsibility.”184 The Welsh Intermediate
Education Act remains one of the most critical element of Welsh education history185
and undoubtedly Jones’186 study is the most detailed, and lays the foundation of an
178 H. Silver, The Concept of Popular Education: A study of the ideas and social movements of the early
nineteenth century (Rowman and Littlefield: London, 1965). 179 G. E. Jones and G. W. Roderick, (2003) op. cit. p. vii. 180 For example of research into aspects of individual Welsh schools see: E. K. Jones, The Story of Education
in a Welsh Border Parish. The Schools of Cefnmawr 1776-1932 (A. Smith: Wrexham, 1933). 181 L. W. Evans, (1971) op. cit.; L. W. Evans, (1974), op. cit. 182 G. E. Jones and G. W. Roderick, A History of Education in Wales (UWP: Cardiff, 2003), op.cit. 183 G. W. Evans, The Aberdare Report and education in Wales 1881. Welsh History Review, Vol. 11, No 2:
(1982) 150-172, p. 150. 184 G. E. Jones, Which Nation’s Schools? Direction and Devolution in Welsh Education in the Twentieth
Century (UWP: Cardiff, 1990), p. 21. 185 For example L. W. Evans, (1974) op. cit. 186 G. E. Jones, Controls and Conflicts in Welsh Secondary Education 1889-1944 (UWP: Cardiff, 1982).
26
understanding of secondary education in Wales. He has sometimes been criticised
for being too biased towards administrative and legislative matters and the absence
of explanation of these “may be difficult for novice historians.”187 His writing lacks
the social dimension that would have been provided by detail of the secondary
schools themselves and their curricula influences. Regardless of the perceived
narrowness of interpretation, Jones’ understanding of the Welsh secondary system
cannot be surpassed and he remains one of the most well-known of Welsh
education historians. He has been deeply critical of the fact that the history of
education is no longer taught as part of teacher training.188 This, “academic
downturn”189 he believes, is a paradox as “decline in the study of education history
has correlated with increased independence and sense of identity of the Welsh
education system.”190 Jones suggests that a revival of the history of education as
an academic subject is necessary to assist in deeper levels of understanding in
teacher education. He quotes McCulloch191 who pointed out that “history teaches
‘an instrumental, functional and prescriptive set of lessons’”192 which assist teachers
when confronted with a new set of problems. Jones’ extensive writing has also been
criticised for presenting a vision of Wales that “comes over as a male ‘white one’”193
and ignores the contribution made by minority groups in Wales. He “is also silent on
gender,”194 and does not acknowledge the contribution women have made to
education in Wales. This was corrected to some degree in his short examination of
the study of education history when he identified the ongoing contribution that was
being made to gender history in Wales.195 This latter is a growing body of work as a
number of Welsh writers have begun to examine the social and cultural development
of women in Wales and the “numerous social changes that have affected historical
perceptions.”196 These have included of the place of female teachers197 in society
187 C. Baker, Review G. E. Jones Controls and Conflicts in Welsh Secondary Education 1889-1944. British
Educational Research Journal, Vol. 10, No. 2: (1984), p. 200. 188 G. E Jones, Perspectives from the brink of extinction: the fate of history of education study in Wales.
History of Education Vol 2 Issue 3: (2013). 381-395. p. 381. 189 ibid., p. 381. 190 G. E Jones, (2013) op. cit., p. 381. 191 G. McCulloch, (2011) op. cit., p. 11. 192 G. E. Jones, (2013) ibid., p. 388. 193 S. Delamont, Reviewed Work: The Education of a Nation by Gareth Elwyn Jones, British Journal of
Educational Studies, Vol. 46, No. 1: (1998) 91-94. p. 93. 194 S. Delamont, ibid., p. 93. 195 G. E Jones, (2013), op. cit. 196W. G. Evans Education and Female Emancipation: The Welsh Experience 1847-1914 (UWP: Cardiff,
1990) p. 3. 197 S. R. Williams, Women Teachers and Gender Issues in Teaching in Wales c. 1870-1950. The Welsh
Journal of Education, 13.2: (2005) 68-83; S. R. Williams, Unsung Heroines: Wales’ Women Teachers in H.
V. Bowen (Ed) Heroes and Villains of Wales: Myths and Realities (Gomer Press: Llandysul, 2011).
27
and more generally the role of women in Welsh life.198 W. Gareth Evans,199 is an
exception to the rule in the writing of women’s history, which is generally written by
women, and researched the links between education and emancipation and
identifies the “relevance of the historical perspective”200 for women’s struggle for
education in Wales.
Few historians from outside Wales have made any real contribution to Welsh
education history but Smelser201 suggests that despite the fact that Wales was
linked to England administratively, it was culturally more like Scotland and Ireland,
particularly the latter, because of the Celtic influences that came into play. He points
out that while there were some similarities between England and Wales, Wales was
very different because it had a markedly two tier social structure made up of a small
elite of landowners and industrialists, and a very large agricultural and industrial
working class. This social divide was reflected in the religious and linguistic social
structure of Wales. He suggests that the landowner group was mostly English
speaking and associated with the Established Church, while the working class was
overwhelmingly non-conformist and Welsh speaking.202 Smelser, however,
overlooks the fact that many industrialists were both non-conformist and Welsh
speaking which greatly assisted the preservation of the Welsh language during
industrialisation. However, both Smelser and Evans agree that this class division
was one of the casual factors in the slow rate of development of formal education in
Wales compared to England. Smelser also suggests that the delay was also due to
three factors: religion, culture and language, which frequently caused “polarisation
and ‘primordialization’”203 These were mostly associated with the fact that the
informal education provided in non-conformist Sunday Schools hindered the
development of voluntary sector education which had grown incrementally in
England.204
198 D. Beddoe, Parachutes and Petticoats - Welsh Women Writing on the Second World War, (Honno Press:
Aberystwyth, 2003); A. John, The Sweat of Their Brow. Women Workers at Victorian Coal Mines (Routledge
& Kegan Paul: London, 1980); A John. The Men’s Share? Masculinities, Male Support and Women’s
Suffrage, 1890-1920 (Routledge: London, 1997). 199W. G. Evans, (1990.) ibid. 200 Ibid., p. x. 201 N.J. Smelser, (1991) op. cit., p. 147. 202 N.J. Smelser, (1991) ibid., p. 146. 203 N. J. Smelser, ibid., p. 146. 204 N. J. Smelser, ibid., p. 158-9.
28
The history of education is complex, and in many ways is “all things to all
men.”205 Theorists have developed various interpretations although Silver206
suggests that some of the theories that have been proposed, especially when linked
with sociology, have been wrongly construed and this has placed unwarranted
emphasis on deductions. As a result many aspects of and influences on education
remain unresolved. Welsh historiography tends to ignore these links and
concentrates on other influences, religion for example, had on the development of
education. It is undoubtedly the case that the history of education has
“diverse roots in different areas of knowledge … it is not simply a pale
reflection or imitation of any one of its constituent parts, but a broad coalition
based on all of them and it is weakened and undermined when it loses the
contributions of one or more.”207
205 Corinthians 1, 9:22 (King James Version): “To the weak became I as weak, that I might gain the weak:
I am made All things to all men, that I might by all means save some.” 206 H. Silver, Aspects of Neglect The Strange Case of Victorian Popular Education. Oxford Review of
Education, 3. 1, Part Two: (1977), 7-69 (1971). 207 G. McCulloch, (2011) op. cit., p. 115.
29
Methodology
This thesis is about education policy during the interwar period and until after
the planning for the planning for the implementation of the Education Act 1944. It is
also a local study focusing on south and south west Wales. It examines the political,
economic and religious circumstances of Wales and how these impacted on the
development of education from 1918 until 1944. It sets out to answer the questions
set out earlier in this chapter through a detailed investigation of the development of
education at a local level and how this was influenced both by legislation and
national trends. It includes no comparative history, between education development
of education in England, nor have there been any attempts to include any reference
to other areas of Wales. This research grew out of two previous short studies
undertaken as part of an MA in Local History: Poor Law education and the historical
circumstances of evacuation in Carmarthenshire. In this respect, a considerable
amount of prior knowledge was utilised, for example, a thorough working knowledge
of primary and secondary sources.
Evacuation remains a central plank to this research as there are indications
that it was partly responsible to the Education Act 1944 which was drawn up during
the same period. While the original intention was to investigate only education and
child health during the evacuation period of 1939 – 1945 this proved impossible
without the supporting evidence of earlier education development and the planning
which took place after the Education Act 1944. As a result of this extension of the
time frame the aspects of child health during war time that were originally planned,
had to be discarded. In many respects evacuation remains the key constituent of
this thesis, because it anchors much of the history of education for the period.
However, major changes were made and the plans for the original research were
substantially altered. There was an original intention to examine aspects of
evacuation through oral history but in the event this was not considered necessary
and only one oral account has been included: that of an evacuated teacher who was
able to describe aspects of her educational experiences during the period.
This is largely an historical study of the development of education using
mainly primary sources guided by the existing historiography. It includes very little
reference to sociology and is driven mainly by a focus upon the political and religious
30
aspects of society at the time. The primary sources that have been used are wide
ranging although the secondary sources are rather more limited. This is generally
because there are few that are pertinent to this particular thesis, and care has been
taken not to include any works that are not specifically relevant. Two works have
been of especial importance and Barker208 and Simon209 have been drawn on
extensively to give purpose and shape to the research from primary sources.
However, neither offer much information of the development of education in Wales,
and because of this the writings of a number of Welsh historians have been used,
even when their main focus has not been on education. These include K. O.
Morgan’s extensive work on Welsh politics which includes reference to many of the
influences on education, especially from the 1840s onwards.210 The work of I. G.
Jones also proved important, especially his detailed chapter on the Reports of the
Commissioners of Inquiry into the State of Education in Wales211 which proved to
be a pivotal event in the development of education in Wales.212 Earlier aspects of
Welsh education history have been drawn from the work of L. W. Evans213 and the
writing of G. E. Jones has been used as a guide to the legislation of the Welsh
Intermediate Act 1889.
There has been no intention to consider any aspects that are not central to
education policy-making, and in this regard gender issues, the Welsh language,
aspects of the curriculum and citizenship have been excluded unless there was
some incidental involvement. The main influences on the development of education
have been thoroughly investigated because politics and religion are considered
central. Although religion is a major theme throughout the research this is
considered only in terms of policy making. The political aspects are considered of
prime importance at a local level and records of the various LEAs have been
examined minutely as have the remaining and available records for the Church in
Wales and the local diocese of the Catholic Church. It is not apparent that these
have been used extensively by Welsh historians, although there is some evidence
208 R. Barker, op. cit., (1972). 209 B. Simon, The Politics of Educational Reform 1920-1940 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1974). 210 K. O. Morgan, Wales In British Politics 1868 -1922 (University Press: Oxford, 1963). 211 PP 1847 (870) (871) (872.) Reports of the Commissioners of Inquiry into the State of Education in Wales. 212 I. G. Jones, Mid-Victorian Wales: The Observers and the Observed (UWP: Cardiff, 1992). 213 L. W. Evans, Education in Industrial Wales 1700 -1900 (Avalon Books: Cardiff, 1971); L. W. Evans,
Studies in Welsh Education: Welsh Educational Structure and Administration 1880 – 1925 (UWP: Cardiff,
1974).
31
that they were used to report the development of comprehensive education in
Swansea post 1944214 and at Cardiff.215 These were not reviewed before
undertaking this research.
At a national level records at the National Archives have been widely used,
especially to identify information in regard to evacuation. They were also very
important especially in regard to planning for the implementation of the Education
Act 1944 and include LEA records of consultations with the Ministry of Education.
These proved very interesting and informative, although unfortunately the reports
on reorganisation in City of Cardiff are still withheld. Some of the records relating to
Wales have apparently been used by G.E. Jones in two of his works although they
are generally unreferenced.216 This time-period also includes records of meetings
and correspondence between the Board of Education, including those of R.A.
Butler’s with the various church bodies, particularly those with the Church of
England. The records of the Conservative Party held at the Bodleian Library at
Oxford contain of R. A. Butler’s personal correspondence and memoranda which
give another perspective on his negotiations with the various church bodies. It is
unfortunate that some of the records of the Catholic Church are either missing, as
in the Cardiff Diocese, and the Archdiocesan Archives of Westminster were difficult
to access. Similarly, although the Church in Wales records include some interesting
information although these are found at both the Diocesan office at Cardiff and the
National Library of Wales at Aberystwyth. Unfortunately all the records of the
Diocese of St Davids are either missing or unavailable.
At a local level, there is an enormous amount of valuable information
although quality varies considerably between local authorities. These may offer a
slightly different perspective and often a counterpoint of political and educational
detail. Undoubtedly the records of Carmarthenshire County Council proved most
valuable and interesting. The Education Committee minutes books are detailed and
include other sub-committee minutes which provide minute details of events
throughout the period. It appears that all documents relating to education were
214 G. E. Jones, 1944 and all that. History of Education, 19.3: (1990), 235-250. 215 A Geen, Resistance to Change: Attempts to Reorganize Cardiff s Elementary Schools, 1918-1951 Journal
of Educational Administration and History, Vol 18, No 1 (1996) pp. 62-74. 216 G. E. Jones, Which Nation’s Schools? Direction and Devolution in Welsh Education in the Twentieth
Century (UWP: Cardiff, 1990); G. E. Jones, and G. W. Roderick, A History of Education in Wales (UWP:
Cardiff, 2003).
32
saved and provide a rich vein of information. There is also a considerable amount
of information about education during the evacuation period which include
documents not found elsewhere. In contrast Glamorgan County Council contain not
of the sub-committee meeting minutes which mean that there is little detail about
the actions taken in respect to many education events. Some of the small local
authorities, Cardiff Rural, for example are filled with useful detail especially about
the war period. Similarly, although Swansea Borough Council records, are lacking
in some respect, sub-committee minutes for example, it more than makes up for this
by having a large archive about planning for the implementation for the Education
Act 1944 which includes a copy of the London County Council Plan.
The richness of primary sources more than compensate for the lack of
historiography for the period and offer a clear understanding of the pressures and
influences on the development of education provision both locally and nationally
during the first half of the twentieth century.
33
Chapter 2 - Setting the Scene
“Education is in the ascendancy, the present demands of trade, commerce and labour are such that we must be abreast of the requirements of the time.”1
The development of mass elementary education in England and Wales
lagged behind that of all other industrialised countries. This chapter examines the
time line of development, together with the cause and effect of the economic,
religious and social factors that are considered to have influenced direction. It sets
out the distinctions between education in England and Wales even though both
countries shared the same legislation. Much of this was the result of differences in
cultural dimensions, especially the impact that non-conformity and language had on
Welsh life. In the long term this resulted in a strand of radicalism that can be traced
throughout the development of provision and frequently resulted in demands for
devolution of powers for education to Wales.
Setting the Scene
Great Britain was one of the last industrialised nations to establish a system
of state elementary education for the lower classes. There had been little
educational opportunity for the majority of children since the Dissolution of the
Monasteries before which the Church had offered some educational support to the
poor. After this there was a “systematic economic doctrine hostile to the idea of any
governmental interference of any sort in the free working of society.”2 Government
absolved itself from offering support to the less prosperous sections of society and
allowed the wealthy and industrial classes to maximise profits and exercise social
control. Gramsci suggests that the laissez-faire policies of the early nineteenth
century were particularly important and he perceives these as “a distinguishing
English feature,”3 that had had a negative effect on the development of any state
organisations and it has been suggested that this was “another form of state
regulation ‘introduced and maintained by legislative and coercive means’.”4
1 Editorial. Llanelly and County Guardian 27th June 1889 in W. Gareth Evans, Education Development in a
Victorian Community (Centre for Educational Studies, Faculty of Education: Aberystwyth, 1990), p. 2. 2A. Marwick, Britain in the Century of Total War: War, Peace and Social Change 1900-1967 (Penguin
Books: Harmondsworth, 1968), p. 27. 3 A. Green, Education and State Formation: The Rise of Education Systems in England, France and the USA
(Macmillan: London, 1990), p. 107. 4Q. Hoare and G Nowell, eds. A. Gramsci, Selections from the Prison Notebooks, in A. Green, (1990), ibid.,
p. 107.
34
The consequence of this was that the introduction of state sponsored education
system for the poor was very delayed, and the education system that emerged was
“first made by the pioneering efforts of private individuals, singly or in association,
and often against scepticism or private opposition.”5 There were a number of
reasons for the late establishment of a state system, but it is clear that there was no
immediate or perceived need to educate the children of the working classes. The
nature of early industry meant there had been no reason to have a highly trained or
educated workforce as industrialisation was achieved by an “uneducated population
which on many occasions was inspired both in the technical and commercial fields
by individuals who themselves were lacking in any formal education and sometimes
were barely literate.”6 A further reason for the delay was the fact that both
Government and industrialists considered that educating the working class “would
be prejudicial to their morals and happiness, it would teach them to despise their lot
in life … Instead of teaching them subordination, it would render them fractious and
refractory.”7
The deeply divided social structure in Great Britain is generally considered to
have been an additional and influential factor in the slow development of mass
education. The landowning classes played a powerful role which had never been
“fully undermined by ‘a savage confrontation with the people,’”8 as had been the
case in France, for example. As a consequence, their influence and strong ties to
the Anglican Church had shaped a “pattern of patrician education”9 that emphasised
class, patriotism and empire. A highly élitist system of education emerged, with
independent and endowed grammar schools for the middle and upper classes which
was the only form of education for older children in England until after the Education
Act of 1902. This latter allowed the establishment of other types of secondary
schools in England although the Welsh Intermediate Schools Act 1889 had already
provided Wales with a system of secondary education. However, there was very
little education provision for the poor and this group was dependent on voluntary
provision. It is considered that this divided system of education imposed a high level
5 The School Health Service 1908 -1974 (HMSO: London, 1975). 6 G. Bernbaum, Social Change and the Schools 1918-1944 (Routledge and Kegan Paul: London, 1967), p. 2. 7 H Silver, The Concept of Popular Education, p. 23, in E. Hopkins, Childhood Transformed: Working Class
Children in Nineteenth Century England, (Manchester University Press, Manchester, 1994.) p. 129. 8.A. Green, (1990), op. cit., p. 107. 9 L. Colley, Britons: Forging the Nation 1707-1837 (Vintage Books: London, 1992) p. 180.
35
of social control by landowners over the working classes in England and Wales
which replaced that of the state in other countries.10 This divide was particularly
marked in rural areas, in south and south west Wales or example, where landowners
dominated all aspects of the socio-political lives of tenants.11 It produced a
deferential society which was an imperative because, “in a free society where slaves
are not allowed, the surest wealth consists in a multitude of laborious poor.”12
Another less considered, but equally influential, factor in the delayed
development of state education was the position of children in society. In early
nineteenth century Great Britain children “barely obtained a footnote”13 mainly
because the high infant mortality rate meant that children from all classes were likely
to have been considered only temporary constituents of a family and, as such, were
often little valued.14 Many children began to work when they were very young and
“They had few, if any, legal, rights and might actually be bought and sold or
otherwise disposed of by their parents. Concepts of childhood were still largely
unformed.”15 This view of the value of children does not appear to have been class
limited and it has been suggested that children from all classes suffered equally,
and while working class children were subject to hardship through employment and
harsh conditions, social emulation by middle class parents was also a form of
repression.16 This also had the consequence of perpetuating the existing class
structures making them more difficult to eradicate.
Religion perhaps played the most influential and long lasting role in the
development of education, and this was particularly the case in Wales. During the
English Civil War many social structures were dismantled, and non-conformity
became an alternative to the Established church as puritan preachers began to
establish groups, at Llanfaches in Monmouthshire for example. In the years that
10 A. Green, (1990), op. cit., p. 11 M. Cragoe, An Anglican Aristocracy: The Moral Economy of the Landed Estate in Carmarthenshire, 1832-
1895 (Clarendon Press: Oxford, 1996), p. 3 - 4. 12 Bernard Mandeville, (1772), unreferenced in N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, A Place for Everyone: A
history of education from the eighteenth century to the 1970s (Victor Gollancz: London, 1976) p. 27. 13R. Cooter, ed, In the Name of the Child. Health and Welfare 1880-1940 (Routledge: London, 1992) p. 1. 14 A. Wilson, The Infancy of the History of Childhood: An appraisal of Philippe Ariès. History and Theory,
(1980), 132 – 153 in R. Cooter, ibid. 15E. Hopkins, Childhood Transformed: Working Class Children in Nineteenth Century England (MUP:
Manchester, 1994) p. 115. 16 J. Plumb, The New World of Children in Eighteenth Century England. Past and Present, No. 67: (1975),
64-95, p. 67.
36
followed Wales was perceived as uncivilised and undeveloped, and in 1650 an Act
for the Better Propagation and Preaching of the Gospel in Wales was passed, which
as been described as the equivalent of “granting religious home rule.”17 This, and
the Act of Uniformity 1662,18 had the consequential effect of accelerating the demise
of Anglicanism in Wales and strengthening the non-conformist movement in both
England and Wales. The groups that emerged: Baptists, Congregationalists,
Presbyterians and Methodists all had transient and varied history until the
nineteenth century when they became predominant in Wales. Non-conformity
overtook the influence of the Church of England and became embedded into the
social structures, into politics and more latterly into the administrative organisation
of the country. It has been suggested that “religion probably exercised a greater
influence on the lives of the people of Wales during the last century than was the
case in England or in any other Protestant country.”19 Although the non-conformist
groups co-existed with the Church of England in Wales, relationships were
frequently deeply antagonistic, especially in regard to education.
The Early Development of Education
By the start of the nineteenth century England and Wales had undergone
substantial social change which was the result of three main factors. These:
industrialisation, a massive rise in population and agriculture enclosure, which
provided cheap labour for industry, substantially altered the living and working lives
of much of the population.20 Living conditions changed and deteriorated, and this
resulted in growing demands for social reform. These came from many directions,
from religious organisations and prominent people, Lord Shaftsbury and Jeremy
Bentham for example. There was condemnation of conditions in prisons,
workhouses, asylums, and particularly the widespread employment of children in
industry but there was a presumption that any improvements were outside the remit
of Government. Roberts suggests that “Faith in voluntary organisations – in
17 R. Tudor Jones, unreferenced in J. A. Davies, History of Wales (Penguin; London, 2007) p. 273. See also
J. L Williams and C. R. Hughes, The History of Education in Wales, Vol. 1 (Christopher Davies: Swansea,
1978) p, 37. 18 Act of Uniformity 1662, Reginal 14 Cha 2. 19 C. R. Williams, The Welsh religious revival, 1904-5. British Journal of Sociology, III/3: (1952) in R. Pope,
Building Jerusalem: non-conformity, Labour and the social question in Wales, 1906-1939, second edn
(UWP: Cardiff, 1998) p. 1. 20 D. Roberts, Victorian Origins of the British Welfare State (Yale University Press: New Haven, 1960) p. 2;
37
endowed charities for the sick and in private benefactions for the homeless and
unschooled – ran deep in the English mentality,”21 a sentiment strongly supported
by the religious groups. This paternalistic view extended to mass education, and
there was an expansion of “philanthropic and educational activity”22 by the voluntary
sector which marked a strong link between education and religion.23
The position of the Anglican church had been fundamental to the early
development of education24 but the growth of non-conformity and the social
circumstances of the industrial revolution “accentuated the controversy over the
respective roles of Church and State in education.”25 There had never been a
separation of the two, as had been the case in the United States of America for
example, and the Church assumed a primacy in education. The rapid process of
industrialisation and the resulting sordid social conditions during the early nineteenth
century led to a perception that education would be “vital to cope with the immediate
task of inculcating elementary concept of lawfulness and decent habit.”26 The
Church of England took control of the process. This caused significant problems and
the level of dissention between denominations, non-conformists in particular, was
often intense. The National Society27 was foremost in founding schools, and this
became a source of long lasting animosity from non-conformist groups, in particular
Methodists and Baptists. However, the spread of education provision very much
depended on the financial resources of voluntary organisations and it soon became
apparent that the emerging system was disorganised with no central control either
at a national or local level.28 This caused a great deal public concern, but not quite
enough to sweep the Tory Government’s laissez faire policies aside “As a result
successive governments uneasily hovered on the brink of taking action but could
not see what machinery was needed nor where the funds were coming from.”29
21 D. Roberts, (1960) op. cit., p. 24 22C Birchenough, History of Elementary Education in England and Wales from 1800 to the Present Day
(University Tutorial Press: London, 1920) p. 28. 23S. J Curtis, History of Education in Great Britain (University Tutorial Press: 1948) particularly Chapter VI. 24 Through monasteries and endowment to early grammar schools for example. 25 B. Sacks, The Religious Issue in the State Schools of England and Wales 1902-1914, A Nation’s Quest for
Human Dignity, (University of New Mexico Press, Albuquerque, 1961), p. 4. 26 B. Sacks, ibid., p. 5. 27 An abbreviation of The National Society for Promoting the Education of the Poor in the Principles of the
Established Church throughout England and Wales established in 1811. 28 The funding of charity schools in Wales is discussed in detail in J. L Williams and G. R. Hughes (1978)
op. cit., and in England in S. J Curtis, ibid. 29 N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, (1976), op. cit., p. 29.
38
In 1816 a Select Committee of the House of Commons was established to
inquire into the education of the poor in the Metropolis30 and this was later extended
to include all provision in England and Wales.31 The findings of the Report are
somewhat unclear because while there were significantly more charitable
contributions to education in England than in Wales32 there is no indication of how
many schools there actually were. However, Birchenough33 suggests that about
1:15 of children in England were in education compared to 1:21 in Wales. The
Report suggested that because of this lack of provision, financial aid should be given
to parishes without a school. As a result, in 1820, Brougham proposed an Education
Bill “for the better education of the poor in England and Wales”34 which would have
expanded the number of schools but with a curriculum based largely on the precepts
of the Church of England. This was met with tremendous opposition from other
denominations as it was seen as clearly favouring one religious body, and as a
consequence, was quickly abandoned.35
During the 1830s a serious debate about the condition of education in Great
Britain began. Ideas were mooted and projects started and although they were very
transitory, attitudes towards mass education began to change. A liberal and radical
group, including such men as Jeremy Bentham, Robert Owen, John Mill and
Benjamin Shaw, promoted the view that all children should be educated,36 and
preferably outside the “ecclesiastical monopoly”37 of the period. At the same time a
transitional change was taking place in England and Wales. A reformed
Parliamentary system was put in place in 1833 and this led to other administrative
and social reforms. Government structures became much more centralised and
extended, and this impinged on the responsibilities of local government.38 The early
structure of the latter was organised around a parish system which oversaw poor
relief, the maintenance of highways and law and order in general, and was
30 Report from Select Committee on the Education of the Lower Orders in the Metropolis: with the minutes of
evidence taken before the committee, 1816 (498). 31 W.H.G Armytage, Four Hundred years of English Education (CUP: Cambridge, 1970), p. 93. 32 PP. 1816 (498) ibid. In England 2,248 parishes were in receipt of charitable donations for education
compared to 119 in Wales. 33 C. Birchenough, (1920), op. cit., p. 60. 34 C. Birchenough, ibid., p. 59. 35 S. J Curtis History of Education in Great Britain (University Tutorial Press: 1948) p. 221-222. 36 A. Green, (1990.) op. cit. pp 6-11; M. Vaughan and S. M. Archer, Social Conflict and Educational Change
in England and France 1789-1848 (Cambridge University Press: Cambridge, 1971). 37 C Birchenough, ibid., p. 31, 38 See D. Roberts, (1960) op. cit. particularly Chapter 1; S and B Webb, English Local Government: English
Poor Law History: Part I. the Old Poor Law (Longmans, Green and Co: London, 1929).
39
controlled by local magistrates and members of the Vestry. This was a cumbersome
and dysfunctional system prone to abuse and misuse of public funds, particularly in
regard to poor relief39 and became a focus for reform. However, Members of
Parliament, especially Tories, defended this form of local government and “the
preservation of their ancient constitutional rights – rights which they believed the
very bulwark of English freedom.”40 Despite the fact that centralisation was poorly
regarded and viewed as extravagant, government systems grew and there was a
“modern overlapping with the medieval, in the same pattern of decay and growth
that characterised local government.41
Some progress was made and in 183342 legislation was introduced to restrict
the employment of children under nine years of age and “the Government, for the
first time, made a grant of £30,000 to voluntary organisations to help them build
“school houses for the children of the working classes.”43 In 1839 there were
suggestions from the Committee of Education of the Privy Council that substantial
changes should be made to the existing funding arrangements, and other providers,
apart from religious organisations should be allowed to establish schools with
government funding. It was also proposed there should be a system of inspection
of all secular teaching in any school that received public funds. This caused an
outcry from church officials who saw it as interference, and from radical politicians
who believed it was an ineffectual measure. There was a long standing assumption
on the part of Tories and churchmen that it was the Church and not the state that
should have responsibility for children’s education.44 In a debate in the House of
Commons, the Committee of Education was denounced for its attempts to
secularise education which was viewed as a threat to the power and authority of the
Church.45 Although the Tories and the House of Lords attempted to remove the plan
to make schools more secular this failed mainly because the education provided in
church schools was so poor. James Kay Shuttleworth was appointed to the
Committee on Education and the process of school inspection began.
39 See for example L. Hollen Lees, The Solidarities of Strangers: The English poor Laws and the People
(Cambridge University Press: Cambridge, 1998); J. R. Poynter, Society and Pauperism: English Ideas on
Poor Relief (Routledge and Kegan Paul: London 1969). 40 D. Roberts, (1960) op. cit., p. 23. 41 D. Roberts, ibid., p. 14. 42 Factory Act 1833 43 The School Health Service, (1975.) op.cit, p. 4. 44 D. Roberts, (1960) ibid., p. 56. 45 Hansard, 48 (1839) 227-59, 268-75, 578-89, 622-34 in D. Roberts, ibid., p. 57
40
The provision of education for the working classes in Wales “was unusually
retarded,”46 even when compared to the rest of the United Kingdom, and had been
a matter for debate since the beginning of the nineteenth century.47 During previous
centuries there had been a number of attempts to introduce informal education
systems. Thomas Gouge,48 for example, established a society in 1674 to promote
the teaching of “the poorest Welsh children to read English and the boys to write
and cast accounts, whereby they will be enabled to read our English Bibles.”49
Elementary education was provided in private, charitable or Sunday schools
although, in rural areas in particular, these were few and many children had no
access to education. The situation did begin to change slowly and in 1806, the
Swansea Society for the Education of the Children of the Poor was founded and the
first Lancastrian School established.50 A few more schools were built, but the
comparative poverty of non-conformists in Wales hampered progress, and the
Lancastrian schools were later taken over by the British and Foreign School Society.
After 1811, the National Society began to establish schools in Wales and
some of the earliest were founded by diocesan groups, at Bridgend and Bangor for
example. By 1816, twenty three had been established throughout Wales but this
expansion put the Society under considerable financial pressure and local groups
were expected to sponsor schools. For example, at Margam, in Glamorgan, English
Copper Company workers paid 1½d from their wages to support the local school.51
By 1833, the National Society had opened one hundred and forty six schools52
conducted strictly on the precepts of the Established Church.53 The British and
Foreign Society made little progress into Wales and by 1833 had only established
three schools. However, these, together with those of other voluntary groups, meant
that collectively there still were very few schools for the size of the population of
46 K. O. Morgan, (1963.) op. cit. p. 3 47 D. G. Evans, A History of Wales 1815-1906 (UWP: Cardiff, 1989) p. 96; PP. 1816 (427, 469, 495.)
Minutes of evidence taken before the select committee appointed to inquire into the education of the lower
orders of the metropolis. 48 An English Presbyterian clergyman (1609 – 1681) a contemporary of Samuel Pepys, associated with the
Puritan movement who travelled widely in Wales. http://wbo.llgc.org.uk/en/s-GOUG-THO-1605.html. 49 D. Evans, The Sunday Schools of Wales p. 87 in C Birchenough, (1920), op. cit., p. 9. 50 D. G. Evans, (1989) ibid, p. 96. 51 D. G. Evans, ibid, p. 105. 52 With approximately 13,424 pupils. D. G. Evans, ibid, p. 105; also unreferenced in J. L Williams & G. R.
Hughes, The History of Education in Wales, Vol. 1. (Christopher Davies, Swansea, 1978.) p. 113. 53 See D. G. Evans, ibid, p. 107.
41
Wales54 and the number of children receiving any kind of education was low.55 In
Carmarthenshire,56 out of seventy one parishes, twenty four had no education
provision at all, although some parishes had more than one school, Abergwilli and
Llanegwad for example.57 Glamorgan58 was divided into one hundred and twenty
four parishes, and of these, sixty three had no education provision. In general terms,
rural areas had the least provision, the Vale of Glamorgan and Gower for example,
and urban areas the most. Merthyr Tydfil with a population of over eleven thousand,
had nineteen schools accommodating just under one thousand children.59
Alongside these charitable schools the other main source of education was
provided by works schools that already been established by industrialists, at Neath
Abbey in Glamorgan for example.60 These proved to be somewhat problematic.
Although there was a strong desire from Government and parents to provide schools
where none existed, when industrialists did offer education, parents and children
were very reluctant to make use of it because of the loss of income from child
employment.61 Despite this, schools were built for the children of employees of the
metallurgical and extractive industries in the south and the slate quarries in north
Wales. The first works school may have been established as early as 170062 and in
the years that followed Welsh industrialists provided a significant number.63 These
made an important and long term contribution to education in Wales and most were
absorbed by school boards after the Education Act 1870. The Sunday School
movement also played a very important role in establishing a widespread but very
basic informal education system throughout England and Wales where “a religious
and humanitarian motive predominated.”64 The Ysgolion Sabothol65 in Wales were
54 Which in 1821 was 794,154. J Williams, Digest of Welsh Historical Statistics, Vol. 1 (The Welsh Office:
Cardiff, 1985) p. 7. 55 Returns show that 2,748 children were in schools recognised by Government. 1,748 children attended
Sunday schools. A digest of parochial returns made to the select committee appointed to inquire into the
education of the poor: session 1818. Vol. I, 1216. 1819 (224). 56 Population in 1821 was 90,239 See J. Williams, ibid.,. p. 13 57 A digest of parochial returns, ibid., pp 1214-16. 58 Population in 1821 was 102,073. See J. Williams ibid., p 17 59 PP 1819 (224) op. cit. p 1259 60 This was established around 1800 by the Quaker manager of the Neath Abbey Ironworks for the poor
families of the district. See D. G. Evans, (1989) op. cit. p. 98. 61 L. W. Evans, Education in Industrial Wales 1700 -1900, (Avalon Books, Cardiff, 1971.) op. cit. p. 21. 62 By Sir Humphrey Mackworth at the Esgair Hir Mines in north Cardiganshire. See L. W. Evans, ibid, p. 7 63 Almost 70 works schools were built in the Carmarthen and Glamorgan before 1845 and several more
afterwards. Thirteen schools were also built in Monmouthshire. Seventeen works schools were built for the
slate, lead and copper mines in north Wales. See L. W. Evans, ibid, Appendix, pp 30 – 35. 64 C Birchenough, (1920), op, cit., p. 9. 65 Translated from the Welsh as Sunday School.
42
extremely influential but there appears to have been a higher level of emphasis on
“personal religious improvement”66 rather than on literacy skills as was the case in
England. They also differed in that they were less organised, more independent but
nevertheless generally became central in Welsh society. However, while the
Ysgolion Sabothol helped preserve the Welsh language they negatively provided
very limited curricula which focused on Bible study but had the overwhelming
advantage of allowing child employment.67
In 1839, immediately after the Newport Rising,68 Seymour Tremenheere,
Inspector of Schools, was despatched to enquire into the state of elementary
education in the south Wales coalfield. This report69 is of extreme importance as it
was the first survey of Welsh education and significant for two reasons. Firstly it
describes the generally dire living environment of the in the ‘Dark Domain’70 of the
eastern valleys of industrialised Wales.71 Tremenheere chose this area because the
four Monmouthshire towns: Bedwelty, Aberystruth, Mynyddyslwynn and Trevethin
were at the centre of the Chartist march on Newport. Merthyr Tydfil in Glamorgan,
which adjoined Bedwelty, was included in the survey as its men were closely
implicated with the Rising.72 Tremenheere began his report by making it clear that it
would be impossible to inspect the education of the area without taking living
conditions into account.73 These, he found, were very poor. He spoke of small,
overcrowded houses black with coal dust, roads that were unpaved and often ankle
deep in mud and slurry. Many of the houses had actually been built within the
boundaries of the mines or iron works and the whole of the area was highly polluted
and unsanitary.
66 K. D. M. Snell, The Sunday-School Movement in England and Wales: Child Labour, Denominational
Control and Working-Class Culture. Past and Present, No. 164 (1): (1999), 122 – 168, p. 128. 67 P. Jenkins, A History of Modern Wales, 1536-1990 (London, 1992) in K. D. M. Snell, ibid., p. 128. 68 The Newport Rising was a demonstration by the Chartist Movement against the living and working
conditions in the mining valleys of south Wales. Chartism was the first national political movement in the
1800s with widespread working class support in Britain and was very popular in south Wales. D. J. V. Jones,
The Last Rising: The Newport Insurrection of 1839 (Oxford University Press: New York, 1985) for example. 69 Minutes of the Committee of Council on Education, with appendices and plans of school houses. Part II.
1839-40, 1840 (254). The second part of the report is entitled ‘On the state of elementary education in the
mining districts of south Wales.’ 70 This is a widely used description of the eastern valleys of Monmouthshire. It was apparently first used by
Commissioners investigating conditions in the south Wales coalfield in the 1840s. Unreferenced in M-E
Bidder, The Scotch Cattle in Monmouthshire 1820-1825. Journal of Gwent Local History Council, No. 63:
(1987), 3-16, p. 3. 71 This area had a total population of 85,000. 1840 (254) ibid., p. 209. 72 Minutes of the Committee of Council on Education, 1840 (254). ibid., p. 207. 73 ibid., pp. 208-9.
43
The second part of Tremenheere’s investigation reviewed education
provision which consisted of forty seven elementary schools and thirty three dame
schools, the latter providing mainly child care. All schools were fee paying and were
housed in a variety of buildings which were generally dirty and ill equipped. Reading
books were provided by parents and in many cases were no more than “soiled
leaves.”74 Children were taught mainly by men who were unsuccessful or injured
workmen or members of the clergy, whose main complaint was the irregular or short
term attendance of children. Tremenheere calculated that at least eight thousand
children were not in education of any kind.75 In his opinion, however, this was not
because there was insufficient school accommodation, nor in general, related to
poverty, rather it was wholly associated with parental attitudes. He suggested that
while parents did not lack intelligence, they did not place any “value on intellectual
proficiency”76 for either themselves or their children.
A few years later, Kenrick’s 1841 analysis of conditions in Trevethin, in
Pontypool, and the Blaenavon Ironworks echoes Tremenheere’s assessment in
many respects. While he found squalor, overcrowding and immorality, he also noted
that Welsh workers, in contrast to the Irish and English, were frugal and religious, if
somewhat radical.77 One of the main areas of Kenrick’s research was education and
he found that only one in eighteen children attended any day school, most of which
was “of an inferior kind.”78 One in eight received some education at Sunday Schools
which he suggests were not very intellectual challenging but rather instilled religious
obligations and beliefs. Jones believes that this evidence, particularly that of
Tremenheere, were very influential on the later inquiry into education in Wales. In
essence “they were fed and watered by the same hands.”79
There were also criticisms of education from within the Welsh community.
Literacy levels were low80 and there were ongoing demands through articles in
Welsh magazines such as Y Cronicl by “Radical Welsh leaders for improved
74Minutes of the Committee of Council on Education, 1840 (254) op. cit., p. 212. 75 ibid,, p. 210. 76 Ibid., p. 212. 77 G. S. Kenrick, Statistics of the Population in the Parish of Trevethin (Pontypool) and at the Neighbouring
Works of Blaenavon in Monmouthshire, Chiefly Employed in the Iron Trade, and Inhabiting Part of the
District Recently Distributed, Journal of the Statistical Society of London, Vol. 3, No. 4:
(Jan. 1841), pp. 366 -375. 78 G. S. Kenrick, ibid., p. 369. 79 I. G. Jones, Mid-Victorian Wales: The Observers and the Observed (UWP: Cardiff, 1992), p. 115. 80 Unreferenced in J. L Williams and G. R. Hughes, (1987) op. cit., p. 127.
44
provision for the children of ordinary people.”81 A number of factors influenced these
low standards. Poor attendance and the poor quality of teaching were exacerbated
by the fact that teacher training was inconsistent or non-existent and teachers were
poorly paid and poorly educated themselves. The position of the Welsh language in
education was also difficult. It was generally the language spoken at home but it
was not uncommon for Welsh speaking children to be taught only in English, by a
teacher who knew no Welsh. The various charitable organisations had different
policies about the medium of teaching although there is an opinion that Welsh was
most commonly used in the north of the country and English in the south.82
In March 1846, William Williams,83 speaking in the House of Commons,
asked for an inquiry into the state of education in Wales. He drew attention to the
fact that education in Wales was more neglected than in any other area of the United
Kingdom, as inquiries into education in England, Scotland and Ireland had already
taken place. Williams estimated that out of two hundred and fifty thousand children
in Wales only seventy thousand were in school and what provision there was so
poor it hardly qualified as being education.84 This, he found, was a disgraceful
situation and suggested that a poorly educated population was also an ill disciplined
one. Williams reminded the House that the recent Commission into the Turnpike
Trusts in south Wales85 had commented on the fact that it was thought that a major
causes of the disturbances had been an ignorance of English, which had precluded
any advancement of the community. He suggested that it was essential that an
urgent inquiry was made into education in Wales, and one which paid particular
attention to the place of the English language in Welsh society. Williams made the
point that the intellectual development of Welsh working classes was being impeded
by the lack of fluency in English and this restricted access to many aspects of life,
the legal system for example. This was due entirely to “the existence of an ancient
language”86 which was proving very damaging.
81 J. L Williams and G. R. Hughes, (1987) op. cit., p. 127. 82 See J. L Williams and G. R. Hughes, ibid. 83 Member of Parliament for Coventry. Born Tredarren, Llanpumpsaint, Carmarthenshire.
http://yba.llgc.org.uk/en/s-WILL-WIL-1788.html 84 Hansard HC, March 10th 1846. Third Series, Volume 84 Page Column: 845-929. 85 Final Report by Commissioners for consolidating and adjusting Turnpike Trusts in S. Wales, Sept. 1845. 86 Hansard HC, March 10th 1846, ibid.
45
The Report87 that followed, intended as a campaign “to remedy the under
provision and under endowment of education,”88 ended as an attack on all aspects
of Welsh society, its language and religion, and was widely referred to in Wales as
Brad y Llyfrau Gleision.89 It offended in two ways. Firstly it suggested that the Welsh
language should be removed completely to allow the proper development of
education. Secondly, the Report was deeply critical of the morality of the Welsh and
the social conditions in Wales. Although many of the criticisms were justified, the
Commissioners90 “forgot all sense of proportion,”91 as the conditions that were
denounced in Wales were easily paralleled in England. The derogatory remarks
overshadowed positive comments which identified absentee landlords, their lack of
support for education and the harsh effects that industrialisation had had on
Wales.92 The condemnations were pivotal to the development of the Welsh credo.
They strengthened nonconformity, dissent and aroused, for the first time, obvious
and intense anti-English feeling that was central to the development of the
nationalism which followed.93 The expansion of the franchise in 1867; the
subsequent elections and the landlords’ reprisals across agricultural Wales
intensified this.94 The accompanying ascendancy of Liberalism appeared to embody
all that was important in Wales: non-conformity, language and culture and provided
the country “with a sense of cohesion, despite the trauma of industrialisation.”95
Ironically the condemnations of the Blue Books resulted in, not only a turning point
in the educational life of Wales but also aroused radical Welsh dissent. During the
1860s it was beginning to be suggested that poor educational provision was a
contributory factor in Great Britain losing its pre-eminent global trading position.96
Three enquiries were set up to examine the different aspects of education, the
earliest of which was the Newcastle Commission Report in 1861.97 It was appointed
87 PP 1847 (870) (871) (872.) Reports of the Commissioners of Inquiry into the State of Education in Wales. 88 K. O. Morgan, (1963), op. cit., p. 16. 89 Translated as Treachery of the Blue Books. This has been widely reviewed in Welsh historiography. A very
detailed account can be found in I. G. Jones, (1992), op. cit., Chapter 5. 90 R. R. W. Lingen, Jellynger C. Symons and H. R. Vaughan Johnson 91 R. T. Jenkins, The Development of Nationalism in Wales. The Sociological Review, Volume a27, Issue 2:
(1935), 163–182, p. 168. 92 R. T. Jenkins, ibid., p. 168. 93 K. O. Morgan, Welsh Nationalism: The Historical Background. Journal of Contemporary History, Vol 6,
No , (1971) pp 153-159. 94 D. W. Howell, Land and People in Nineteenth-Century Wales (Routledge: London, 1977), p. 61. 95 D. H. Davies, The Welsh Nationalist Party 1925-1945 A Call to Nationhood (UWP; Cardiff, 1983), p. 6. 96 See D. H. Akenson, Patterns of English Educational Change: The Fisher and Butler Act. History of
Education Quarterly, Vol. 11, No 2: (1971), 143-156.; A. Green, (1990), op.cit.; G. E. Jones and G W
Roderick, A History of Education in Wales (UWP: Cardiff, 2003), p. 78. 97 1861 XXI, The Royal Commission on the state of popular education in England appointed in 1858 under
the chairmanship of the Duke of Newcastle (The Newcastle Report).
46
as an acknowledgement that the Education Department of the Committee of the
Privy Council “was bound to pursue a policy of ‘the extension of sound and cheap
elementary instruction to all classes of the people’.”98 Its remit was to inquire into
elementary education and make recommendations how this could best be provided
for all children. The Newcastle Commission undertook the first large scale survey of
education and accumulated a vast amount of statistical evidence. It concluded that
although most children were in education it was generally of poor quality.99 The main
recommendation was that elementary schools should be grant funded, and teachers
paid according to the quality of their results. The Commissioners rejected the
creation of a state education system and compulsory attendance. In this respect, it
referred to the state provision in Prussia and suggested that if it were replicated in
England and Wales it would be opposed on social and religious grounds.100
The Newcastle Commission Report was followed in 1864 by the Clarendon
Report101 and in 1868 by the Taunton Report.102 The detail of these two reports are
not germane to this research except that, together with the Newcastle Report, they
set the parameters for the future of education in England and Wales. These three
reports established “basically two sub systems, the elementary and the
secondary.”103 Simon notes that immediately prior to the Second World War this
situation remained and the “two subsets catered in 1937-1938, for some 93 per cent
of the nations children,”104 with the vast majority attending elementary schools. The
remaining seven per cent were educated in independent or endowed schools and
“dominated Parliament … the armed forces, the judiciary, civil service and the
church.”105 The Reports clearly linked provision with social class. Each was followed
by an Education Act. The Education Act of 1870 was a direct result of the
recommendations of the Newcastle Commission Report. The Clarendon Report of
1864 led to the 1868 Public Schools Act and the Taunton Report was followed by
the Endowed Schools Act of 1869. This became a familiar pattern of education
98 Unreferenced in J. S. Maclure, Educational Documents England and Wales 1816-1968 (Chapman and
Hall: London, 1965), p. 70. 99 It was estimated that 2,535,462 out of 2,655,767 children were in education. J. S. Maclure, ibid., p. 71 100 J. S. Maclure, ibid., p. 75. 101 1864 (3288) Report of Her Majesty’s Commissioners appointed to inquire into the Revenues and
Management of certain Schools and Colleges, and the studies pursued and instruction given therein, (The
Clarendon Report). 102 1867-68, (3966) Schools Inquiry Commission. Vol I. Report of the commissioners, (The Taunton Report). 103 B. Simon Education and Social Order 1940-1990 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1991), p. 25 104 ibid., p. 25 105 ibid., p. 34
47
development and generally the subsequent major reports that were commissioned
by the Board of Education were followed by educational change. They were used to
influence both the House of Commons and the public. Katz suggests that this
reflects the fact that reform should not “proceed beyond the limits of public
opinion.”106
The reluctance of Government to intervene in education began to give way
as “expansion of education was equated with the national interest.”107 There was
pressure for immediate and radical action and in 1870, William Foster108 brought an
Education Bill before parliament. During the debate that followed he advocated no
delay because “If we are to hold our position among the nations of the world, we
must make up for the smallness of our numbers by increasing the intellectual force
of the individual.”109 The Elementary Education Act 1870110 established legislation
to “educate the lower classes for employment on lower class lines”111 and formally
confirmed the “caste system”112 of education that would become a fundamental part
of the education system in England and Wales. The terms of the Act allowed for the
establishment of new schools outside the control of the voluntary sector and
managed by a board elected from the community. This offered the opportunity for
nonconformists to become involved in the educational process and “In the absence
of major elected units of local government, they represented a bold experiment in
democratic institutions.”113 High calibre candidates were attracted to membership of
school boards and participation was highly sought after.114 The democratisation of
School Boards was not universally popular in Government circles especially when
they became polarised by sectarian, and powerful minority groups such as the
Fabian Society. These strong influences on Boards rapidly led to an expansion of
elementary education and many schools began to offer higher grade curriculum to
more able and older pupils. This was a serious challenge to the newly established
Board of Education. Officials at the Board, Morant115 in particular, was determined
106 M. Katz, From Bryce to Newson: Assumptions of British Educational Reports 1895 – 1963. International
Review of Education, Vol. 11, No. 3: (1965), 287-304. 107 D. H. Akenson, (1971) op. cit., p. 144. 108 Liberal. Vice President of Committee of Council for Education. 109Hansard HC, February 17th 1870, Vol. 199 Col. 465-466 in D. H. Akenson, ibid., p. 146. 110 This legislation referred only to England and Wales. 111 H. G. Wells, Experiment in Autobiography (1934) p. 93 in B. Simon, Education and the Labour
Movement 1870-1920, (Lawrence and Wishart, London: 1965). 112 G. Kitson Clark, The Making of Victorian England (Routledge: 1962) pp. 273-4, in B. Simon, ibid., p. 97. 113 J. S. Maclure, One Hundred Years of London Education 1870-1970 (Allen Lane: London, 1970), p. 15. 114 J. Lawson & H. Silver, A Social History of Education in England (Methuen: London, 1976), p. 318. 115 Sir Robert Laurie Morant Permanent Secretary to the Board of Education.
48
to retain the pre-eminence of the secondary school sector and his aim was to “repel,
and in some respects to destroy the upward striving of the elementary schools.”116
Some school boards had become very powerful and were unsympathetic “to what
the government saw as the most pressing problems of education: the rescue of the
denominational and endowed schools.”117
In Wales, education began to develop in quite a different way. The Report of
the Commissioners in 1847 galvanised society and there were concerted moves to
improve provision. Wales had no higher education sector apart from a few
Anglican118 and non-conformist theological colleges. This meant that students
seeking a university education had to study in England which was seen as a major
disadvantage. There were a number of early and unsuccessful plans to expand
higher education. For example, there was an idea for establishing a university at
Neath for the study of science, land management and other professional pursuits as
early 1857 but this never came to fruition.119 A scheme for a university similar to that
in Ireland was also drawn up, but it was not until 1863 that suitable plans for a
secular university in Wales were put in place. These depended on very much on
obtaining Government grant which proved to be problematic. In 1870, members of
the Welsh University Committee approached Gladstone, who although sympathetic,
felt that because he had already refused grants to English colleges he was unable
to support one in Wales.120 However, a non-denominational University College of
Wales at Aberystwyth was opened in 1872 funded entirely by voluntary effort.121 In
1879, the owner of the Hafod Copper Works in Swansea, Sir Henry Hussey Vivian,
proposed a motion in the House of Commons122 that Government should provide
Wales with higher education facilities at least as good as those in Ireland. He pointed
out the difficulties that had surrounded the establishment of the college at
Aberystwyth and that it was unfair that this had had to be funded by voluntary
contributions. Despite the fact that there was considerable cross party support, there
were strong objections to Vivian’s motion from Anglicans and it was defeated. Lord
116 E. R. J. Eaglesham, The Centenary of Robert Morant. British Journal of Educational Studies, Vol. 12. No
1: (1963), 5-18, p. 5. 117 M. Vlaeminke, The English Higher Grade Schools. A Lost Opportunity, (Routledge, London, 2000) p. 18. 118 St David’s College Lampeter was the only degree awarding institution in Wales during the period and was
the third oldest in England and Wales after Oxford and Cambridge 119 G. E. Jones and G. W. Roderick, (2003), op. cit., p. 70. 120 K. O. Morgan, (1963), op.cit., p. 46. 121 See K. O. Morgan, (1963), ibid., p. 47. 122 Hansard HC 18th July, 1879, Cols. 1074-1187, Vol. 247 1141 -1183.
49
George Hamilton,123 for example, saw no reason to spend funds on a Welsh
university when it had had such poor local support.124 Despite this, within five years,
grant funded university colleges was opened in Cardiff and Bangor and eventually
University College Aberystwyth also received government funding.
The establishment of universities set in train events that were to considerably
influence the development of secondary education in Wales. The Taunton
Commission Report in 1868 identified that there were only twenty eight endowed
grammar schools in Wales with a total school population of only just over one
thousand pupils.125 This provision was completely out of step with England and even
more so with European countries. The Commission recommended that Wales,
because of its special circumstances, of rapid industrialisation and growth, should
have a much higher ratio of children receiving secondary education than it currently
had.126 In 1880, Lord Aberdare wrote to Gladstone drawing his attention to the fact
that during the recent elections Parliamentary candidates throughout Wales had
pledged to voters that they would keep pressurising the Government about the state
of secondary and higher education in Wales.127 It has been suggested that this letter
was critical and set in train events that resulted in an “educational blueprint for Wales
that had no parallel”128 in Europe. In 1881 the Aberdare Report,129 “regarded … as
an event of major importance in the history of Wales,”130 identified that education in
Wales had become increasingly unable to cope with the demands put upon it by the
needs of a rapidly expanding industrialised society. It recommended that the
Principality should have an “education system more advanced than that of
England.”131 This would be funded through a newly established Central Welsh Board
and all schools would be wholly secular in character. The Welsh Intermediate
Education Act of 1889 provided an advanced curriculum which was in essence a
combination of grammar and higher grade elementary schools, and suitable for both
123 Vice-President of the Council. 124 K. O. Morgan, (1963), op. cit., pp. 48 – 49. 125 G. E. Jones and G. W. Roderick, (2003), op. cit., p. 66. 126 The Commission recommended a ratio of 10:1000 rather than the 0.77:1000 it was in the 1860’s. See G.
E. Jones and G. W. Roderick, (2003), ibid., p. 6. 127 NA ED 91/8 File No 1 Lord Aberdare to Gladstone in L. W. Evans Studies in Welsh Education: Welsh
Educational Structure and Administration 1880 – 1925 (UWP: Cardiff, 1974), p. 6. 128 L. W. Evans, (1974), op.cit., p. 6. 129 1881 Report of the Committee appointed to inquire into the condition of Intermediate and Higher
Education in Wales (Aberdare Report). 130 G. W. Evans, The Aberdare Report and education in Wales 1881. Welsh History Review, Vol. 11, No. 2:
(Dec. 1982), 150-172, p. 150. 131K .O. Morgan, (1963), op. cit., p. 49.
50
the working class and the growing middle class in Wales.132 The curriculum was
further enhanced by the Technical Instruction Act of 1889, an obvious priority in
industrialised Wales.
The Bryce Commission Report133 in 1895 made a number of fundamental
proposals to alter the structure of education administration and provision in England
and Wales. Central to these was the intention to replace the many departments that
oversaw education by a Board of Education. The Bryce investigations also found
that only a small percentage of elementary school children could secure a place at
secondary school and recommended that there should be an expansion of the
secondary sector. This should be accompanied by a change in the curriculum to
meet the demands of an increasingly technological society. By the late 1890s many
elementary schools boards especially in large cities in England, were offering higher
grade education134 which presented a real alternative to endowed grammar schools
which had become outdated and moribund.135 This threat to the secondary sector
did not go unchallenged at the newly formed Board of Education. The opportunity
to discredit the School Boards came when it was discovered that the London Board
was illegally using the Government grant to provide a higher grade curriculum in
elementary schools. The Government Auditor investigated the matter and the
Cockerton Judgement136 found the London Board guilty of misusing public funds.
These factors, combined with the revelations the South African Wars, which raised
“essential doubts as to the longevity or even viability of Great Britain as an
Empire”137 put Government under pressure to once again reform education. The
Education Act 1902138 that followed has been considered to have been “among the
two or three greatest constructive measures of the twentieth century”139 although it
met with considerable and prolonged opposition. It was a highly political intervention
planned to end the covert influences of radicalism present on some school boards:
132G. E. Jones, Controls and Conflicts in Welsh Secondary Education 1889-1994 (UWP, Cardiff, 1982.) p. 7. 133 Royal commission on secondary education, 1895 (C 7862) (Bryce Report). 134 This has been considered a response to the curriculum taught in Intermediate schools in Wales. See G. E.
Jones, (1982), ibid., p. 7. 135 W. Robinson, Historiographical Reflections on the 1902 Education Act. Oxford Review of Education, Vol
28, No. 2/3: (June-September 2002) 159-172, p. 163. 136 See S. J. Curtis, (1948), pp. 314-315 for a full account of the Cockerton Judgement. 137 D. Dwork, War is Good for Babies and Other Young Children: A history of the infant and child welfare
movement in England (Tavistock: London, 1987), p. 167. See also C. C. Perry, Our Undisciplined Brains:
‘The War Test’ in W. Van Der Eyken, Education, the Child and Society: a documentary history (Penguin
Education: Harmondsworth, 1973). 138 Education Act 1902 (2 Edw. VII). 139 R. C. R. Ensor, England 1870-1914 (Oxford, 1966.) p. 225 in J. E. B. Munson, The Unionist Coalition and
Education 1895-1902. The Historical Journal, 20(03): (1977), 607 – 645, p. 607.
51
“to bridle democracy.”140 There was a determination to increase not only the
religious aspects in the curriculum, but to ensure that the caste system of
elementary and secondary education remained intact. Another long term
consequence of the decisions made Morant, Gorst141 and other influential members
of the Board of Education in 1902 was to remove the scientific and technical
curriculum commonly taught at the higher grade schools as it was not considered
one that fitted into the ideal of the curriculum for the secondary schools intended to
ensure the survival of the upper classes.142 It has been suggested that both the
leaders of the Conservative Party and the Board of Education were riddled with an
élitist attitude and that the latter, particularly Morant, “treated elementary education
and elementary teachers with contempt.”143
The Education Act that followed in 1902 established a wholly state controlled
education system. It brought all sectors of education under local authority control
and allowed voluntary schools to be funded from the rateable income of local
communities.144 It also had a number of unintended consequences and was not well
accepted in Wales and aroused old and deep seated religious animosities amongst
nonconformists. It “put the Church Schools on the rates,”145 and allowed local
authorities to establish secondary schools outside the intermediate sector which
would result in a complicated secondary system, and controversially, it would also
remove the secular status of the intermediate sector in Wales to bring it into line with
English endowed grammar schools.146 The second, and most contentious issue was
the ‘dual system’ of provided and non-provided elementary schools. The changes
in legislation meant that all elementary education would be funded by central grant
and local rates and effectively meant that “voluntary schools were handed a financial
lifeline.”147 It was a particular problem in Wales where non-conformists had
envisaged “one set of schools under popular control,”148 but instead, a divided
system of denominational versus council schools remained.
140 B. Simon, (1965) op. cit., p. 172. 141 Sir John Eldon Gorst, Vice-President of the Committee on Education between 1895 - 1902. 142 E.J.R. Eaglesham, The Centenary of Sir Robert Morant. British Journal of Educational Studies, Vol. 12,
No. 1: (1963), 5-18: G.W. Roderick and M. D. Stevens, Education and Industry in the Nineteenth Century:
the English disease? (Longmans: London, 1978). 143 G. W. Kedewick, The Education Department and After (1920), p. 11 in B. Simon, (1965), ibid., p. 114. 144 L. W. Evans, (1974), op. cit., p. 139. 145 J. Hurt, Education in Evolution, Church, State and Popular Education 1800 – 1870 (Hart-Davis: London,
1971), p. 225. 146 G. E. Jones, (1982), op. cit., p. 11 147 G. E. Jones and G. W. Roderick, (2003), op.cit., p. 109. 148 B. Sacks, (1961) op. cit., p. 23.
52
The non-conformist outcry against the 1902 legislation was vociferous, with
David Lloyd George at the forefront of objections. Immediately eleven Welsh county
councils “passed ‘no rate’ resolutions, declaring that they would not administer the
Act.”149 Lloyd George suggested that the local authorities should operate the
legislation only if all voluntary schools were abolished so the Act would be operated
on the basis of equality. Long negotiations followed between the Board of Education,
the Welsh local authorities and the Church of England but no resolution could be
found and “Lloyd George was compelled to advise outright resistance to the Act.”150
This received a mixed reception but a number of county councils, including
Carmarthenshire,151 continued to refuse implementation,152 and as the Liberal
Party’s influence grew in Wales so did the opposition to the Act. In 1904 Government
introduced new legislation153 which impelled local authorities to action the Education
Act 1902. The protests continued unabated154 and it was not until 1906 and the
election of a Liberal administration that the Welsh authorities finally put the
Education Act 1902 into operation.
The reform of education in England and Wales remained a “dominant
issue”155 in the years after the Education Act 1902. It was kept alive by agitation
from both the Liberal and Labour parties and, for Labour, it came second only to
industrial legislation.156 In the few years before the outbreak of World War One there
were a number of unsuccessful efforts to revise the terms of the Education Act
1902157 although some changes were made to the health and welfare provision for
elementary school children.158 This failure was partly due to opposition from the
textile industry, partly from parents who would be losing child income, but mostly
“foundered on the reef of Anglicanism firmly embedded in the Conservative
149 K .O. Morgan, (1963), op. cit., p. 187. 150 K .O. Morgan, ibid., p. 189. 151 L. W. Evans, Studies in Welsh Education: Welsh Educational Structure and Administration 1880 – 1925
(UWP: Cardiff, 1974). In particular Chapter III, ‘The Carmarthen Inquiry.’ 152 These included Carmarthenshire, Cardiff, Swansea, Merioneth and Montgomery. 153 Education (Local Authority Default) Bill 1904. 154 HC Deb 15 May 1905 vol 146 cc 363-40. 155G.D.H. Cole, A History of the Labour Party from 1914 (Routledge and Kegan Paul: 1948), p. 451 in R.
Barker, (1972), op. cit., p. 12. 156 R. Barker, (1972), ibid., p. 24. 157 In 1908, Chiozza Money introduced a Continuation Schools Bill; in 1910, J. H. Whitehouse’s Bill called
for more expenditure on education because of the links between child labour and the rise in unemployment.
A Bill introduced in 1913 also failed because it was impossible to satisfy non-conformist demands. 158 Education (Provision of Meals) Act of 1906 and the Education (Administrative Provisions) Act of 1907.
53
dominated upper house.”159 Education became a pressure point and Haldane,160 for
example, in an attempt to undermine David Lloyd George, suggested that it would
be the most urgent social reform for the next Government because improvement in
provision would offer more equality of opportunity and help to remove class
barriers.161 This accompanied a growing awareness of Britain’s loss of dominancy
on the world stage with increasing competition from Germany, America and
Japan.162 There was an impatience with the lack of social reform.
Conclusions
It becomes clear that religious difficulties played a fundamental role in the
development of education in England and Wales. Fraser goes so far as to suggest
that “The rivalry between Church and Dissent precluded the growth of a state
system”163 and this is evident throughout the nineteenth century. Despite the fact
that many other industrialized nations had introduced a state education system there
is an overwhelming sense that the Government considered this unnesessary. Very
few of the population received any education, and even that which was available,
mainly for the upper and middle classes, was of poor quality. Bernbaum’s comments
that there was no percieved need to educate the lower classes for unskilled tasks
epecially as many industrialists were generally lacking in formal education
themselves are particlularly apposite. This position was reinforced by the fact that
the laissez faire policies of the Tory governments of the period abrogated any
responsibility for the education of the poorer classes. These attitudes were
crystalised by the deeply divided social structure in Britian. The power of the
landowning classes was absolute and this was never challenged by violent
confrontation, as had been the case in France for example. The fact that there was
also a very close association between the Tory party, the landowning classes and
the Anglican church also had a profounnd effect on the way education developed in
England and Wales.
159 Barker, R., Education and Politics 1900-1951 A Study of the Labour Party (Clarendon Press: Oxford,
1972) p. 20. 160 Richard Burton Haldane. Liberal Member of Parliament Haddingtonshire and Lord Chancellor in H.H.
Asquith’s Liberal government. 161 National Education, speech delivered by Viscount Haldane, Manchester, 10th January 1913, p. 9 in G.
Sherington, English Education, Social Change and War 1911-20 (MUP: Manchester, 1981), p. 25. 162 See for example S. Glynn & J Oxborrow, Interwar Britain: A social and economic history, (Allen &
Unwin, London, 1976.) p. 21; R Floud and D. McCloskey, The Economic History of Britain Since 1700
(Cambridge University Press: Cambridge, 1994), Chapter 1. 163 D. Fraser, The Evolution of the Welfare State (Palgrave: London, 1973) p. 78
54
By the start of the nineteenth century a debate about the condition of mass
education in England and Wales began. Views on this were deeply divided and while
there was a growing perception that all children should be educated, there was
considerable opposition from employers who wanted to retain child labour, and from
parents who wanted their children in paid employment. The fact that responsibility
for developing and establishing education provision was assumed by charitable
organisations led to a confused system which left a legacy of inadequate schools
and poor education These organisations were principally, but not exclusively,
denominational and the Church of England assumed primacy. This generated deep
antagonism from non-conformists throughout England and Wales, and this
resentment continued throughout the period. The charitable organisation of
education led indirectly the establishment of a deeply divided provision which
mirrored the caste system embedded in the social structure of Britain. Elementary
education became the norm for the children of the poor in England and Wales and
this group had little access to the secondary sector. As a consequence education
provision during this period was entirely associated with class although the
intermediate sector in Wales offered rather more opportunity of access to seconary
eucation to elementary school children through free places. In England, the elitist
and fee paying endowed grammar schools remained almost the only form of
secondary education and offered few opportuities to working class children. It has
been suggested that this divided system developed into a form of social control by
the upper classes that replaced state control in other countries.
55
Chapter 3 - Education in England and Wales 1918-1939
“The locust years”1
This chapter examines the major influences on the development of education
during the interwar years nationally and locally in south and south west Wales. Even
though the Board of Education had limited powers during the period it will become
apparent that it used these very effectively by directing the conclusions of the reports
of the Consultative Committee to implement educational change. This was done by
manipulating the membership of the Consultative Committee to ensure a desired
outcome. Alongside these determining factors were the effects that the
Government’s interwar austerity measures had on education. These conflicting
forces created tensions at all levels and especially amongst groups demanding
educational change. Underlying this was the continuing influence of the Church of
England over education, and the accompanying animosity of dissent.
The 1918 Education Act
In the years before the outbreak of the First World War there were a number of
unsuccessful attempts to revise the terms of the Education Act 1902, many of which
sprang from the growth of the Labour party and the perceived need to provide a
better education for working class children.2 World War One became a catalyst for
change as its events and circumstances slowly revealed the inadequacies of
education across England and Wales. It was a very difficult period for education.
Government funding was cut substantially and there were shortages of qualified
teachers and equipment in all sectors of provision.3 The conditions for children
deteriorated rapidly and many were reported to be malnourished and badly clothed.4
The elementary sector was badly effected. There was a substantial lack of suitable
accommodation, the result of cuts to education funding after the Boer War5 and the
Cockerton judgement had forced elementary schools to revert to a very limited
1 K. O. Morgan, Rebirth of a Nation: Wales 1880-1980 (Oxford University Press: Oxford, 1981). Chapter 8. 2R. Barker, Education and Politics 1900-1951 A Study of the Labour Party (Clarendon: Oxford, 1972), p. 19. 3 Hansard, HC Sitting, 18th July, 1916, Volume 84, Column 871. 4 G. A. N. Lowndes, The Silent Social Revolution second edn (OUP: Oxford, 1969), p. 189. 5 N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, A Place for Everyone: A history of education from the eighteenth century to
the 1970s (Victor Gollancz: London, 1976), pp. 124-126.
56
curriculum. According to Dent,6 many children were exploited by unprincipled
employers. The number of children under twelve years of age employed in
agriculture increased significantly7 and there was an understanding that child
employment was assisting the war effort.8 As a result attendance fell sharply and
this appears to have been condoned by local magistrates. Certainly, His Majesty’s
Inspectors9 of schools estimated that educational progress during the war period
had only been retarded by three months.10 Despite these difficulties in the
elementary sector there was an unprecedented increase in demand for secondary
school places as parental income increased.11 It was significant, however, that the
reductions in provision “heightened expectations of a generous reform once peace
came”12 and there were urgent demands from teachers’ unions; the Labour Party;
the Trades Union Council and the Workers Education Association for change.13
These demands put the Board of Education under intense pressure to make
immediate and major changes.14
By 1916, the process of planning for reconstruction after the end of the war
was underway.15 The war period had revealed serious deficiencies in industry,
agriculture and the economy, and it was clear that if Great Britain were to retain her
international position, swift improvements would need to be made. In essence, “War
was shaping the content of reconstruction”16 and education was to play an important
part.17 This was on two levels, because although the elementary sector was
inadequate, it was the secondary sector that came in for particular criticism. It
became increasingly clear that the classical curriculum favoured by secondary
schools and universities was a serious barrier to commercial and technological
development.18 The direction of the secondary curriculum stemmed from decisions
6 H. C. Dent, 1870-1970: Century of Growth in English Education (Longmans: London, 1970), p. 83. 7 In 1915 there was an estimated 8,000 children employed in agriculture. PP. Hansard, ibid, Col. 874. 8 D. H. Parker, The Talent at its Command: The First World War and the Vocational Aspect of Education
1914-1919. History of Education Quarterly, Vol. 1, No. 3: (1995), 237-59, p. 237. 9 Hereafter abbreviated to HMI. 10 G.A.N. Lowndes, op. cit., p. 189. 11 B. Simon. The Politics of Educational Reform 1920-1940 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1974), p. 15. 12 R. Barker, op. cit., p. 26. 13 B. Simon, Education and the Labour Movement 1870-1920 (Lawrence and Wishart: 1965) p. 349. 14 R. Barker, ibid., p. 24. 15 NA CAB 37/144/44, Establishment of a Committee to consider and advise on problems that will arise on
the conclusion of peace: the Reconstruction Committee. 16 P.B. Johnson, Land Fit For Heroes: The Planning of British Reconstruction 1916-19 (University of
Chicago Press: 1969) p. 11. 17 P.B. Johnson, (1969.) ibid., p. 11. 18 Board of Education, Educational Pamphlets No 88 Educational Problems of the South Wales Coalfield
(HMSO, 1931) for example but this is widely reported in the historiography. See W.H.G. Armytage, Four
57
taken by Morant and others19 and the classical curriculum had become very closely
associated with university entrance. Lord Haldane made the case for a review of the
curriculum when he drew attention to the quality of science education in Germany.20
He suggested that although scientific research was being undertaken in Great
Britain it was not valued at secondary level or translated into workable ideas. This
opinion was confirmed by leading scientists,21 and the debate continued with The
Times pointing to the widespread “official ignorance and inattention”22 in Great
Britain to the dominance of the German chemical industries. This became a major
factor in attempts to reform the curriculum in years that followed.
In 1916, Arthur Henderson23 was appointed as President of the Board of
Education and he set up three Committees to review areas of education, one of
which was the teaching of science. To start the process, he commissioned Herbert
Lewis24 to chair a Departmental Committee of Inquiry25 to consider what educational
provision should be made for children after the war. One of the most important
outcomes of the Lewis Committee research was their analysis of school attendance.
Out of a total of 662,00026 children, about thirty thousand pupils between twelve and
thirteen years of age were only attending school on a part time basis. Of the
remainder, almost thirty percent left school at thirteen years of age,27 thirteen
percent28 between the ages of thirteen and fourteen and just over forty percent 29at
fourteen years of age. Only thirteen percent30 stayed at school after fourteen years
of age and many left shortly afterwards. For the Committee, the latter figure was the
Hundred years of English Education (Cambridge University Press: Cambridge, 1970) p. 186; N. Middleton
and S. Weitzman, (1976) op. cit., p. 31-33. The idea of teaching a classical curriculum in grammar schools
stemmed from the philosophy of Sir Robert Louis Morant (Permanent Secretary to the Board of Education,
1903-1911) who wanted it to reflect the ethos of public school sector. This was the substance of the
Regulations for Secondary Schools 1904. 19 G. Roderick, Social Class, curriculum and the concept of relevance in secondary education. Welsh History
Review, Vol. 19, No. 2: (1998) 289-318, p. 292. 20 Hansard, HL Sitting, 12th July, 1916, Volume 22, Training of the Nation, cc. 655-705 21 ‘Memorial on the Neglect of Science’ quoted in P.B. Johnson, (1969) op. cit., p. 16. See also Z. Wang, The
First World War, Academic Science, and the "Two Cultures": Educational Reforms at the University of
Cambridge. Minerva, 33: (1995) 107-127, for an interesting overview of the classical versus the scientific
curriculum. 22 The Times, Letter VII, in P.B. Johnson, (1969), ibid., p. 16. 23 Labour Member of Parliament for Barnard Castle. 24 Permanent Secretary of the Board of Education. Herbert Lewis was a close friend of David Lloyd George
and a supporter of Cymru Fydd. 25 Report of the Departmental Committee on Juvenile Education in Relation to Employment after the War
1917–1918 (Cd 8512) 26 This represented about 95% of the total of that age group. 27Approximately 185,000 ibid., p. 3. 28 This equated to about 85,000 children, ibid., p. 3. 29 266,000 children, ibid., p. 3. 30 84,000 children, ibid., p. 3.
58
most interesting as it clearly indicated that, although the prestigious secondary
schools were supposed to retain children until they were sixteen, the vast majority
left at fourteen, with only about six percent completing a full course. Even children
who remained at school were frequently employed before and after school “to an
extent which seriously interferes with their educational progress.”31
The Committee found this to be an absurd waste and one that it was difficult
to understand especially as there had already been substantial investigations into
the matter.32 It was also pointed out that apprenticeships and the ‘blind alley’
occupations undertaken by many juveniles did not meet the needs of a new
technological society. Perhaps most concerning was the recognition of the
inadequacy of elementary education, its poor curriculum and badly trained
teachers. It recommended that all children should be retained in school until fourteen
years of age with no exemptions for employment. The staffing levels of the last years
of elementary education should be improved so that the curriculum could be
meaningful. Local authorities should have a legal obligation to provide continuation
classes for children over fourteen years of age and enforce attendance. These
should provide a suitable practical and technical curriculum, and teachers should be
properly trained and paid. The findings of the Lewis Committee set the tone for the
Education Act that was to follow in 1918 and was “another example of how far those
associated with official educational circles were agreed on the main aims and lines
of advance.”33
In 1917, H.A.L. Fisher34 brought an Education Bill35 before Parliament with
the main recommendations that the school leaving age was raised to fourteen
without exemption for employment and there should be part time continuation
classes until the age of eighteen. These proposals were met with vociferous
opposition. Manufacturers objected because it would remove cheap child labour
31 Report, (Cd 8512), op. cit., p. 3. 32For example Royal Commission on the Poor Laws and Relief of Distress. Report of the Royal Commission
on the Poor Laws and Relief of Distress Majority and Minority Reports, 1909 (Cd. 4499); Board of
Education. Report of the consultative committee on attendance, compulsory or otherwise, at continuation
schools. Vol. I.-Report and appendices, 1909 (Cd. 4757); Board of Educations. Report of the consultative
committee on attendance, compulsory or otherwise, at continuation schools. Vol. II. Summaries of evidence,
1909 (Cd. 4758). 33 B. Simon, (1965), op. cit., p. 353. 34 Member of Parliament for Sheffield Hallam and President of the Board of Education in Lloyd George’s
Government. Liberal politician but best known as an academic. 35 Education. A bill to make further provision with respect to education in England and Wales and for
purposes connected therewith, 1917-18 (89).
59
from the workplace. The Trades Union Council would not support it because it failed
to raise the school leaving age to sixteen and the Labour Party “described the Bill
as falling ‘far short of the minimum that is adequate to the need of the country and
the opportunities before it’.”36 These complaints led to it being abandoned37 only to
be replaced by another with similar terms in 1918 followed by an Education Act.38
This removed part-time education and the school leaving age was raised although
the Act allowed for early leaving for beneficial employment. The local authority rate
for the provision of secondary39 education was increased and the supply of
secondary school places was augmented by establishing central schools or classes.
These would provide a practical, but non-vocational, curriculum with a programme
of advanced education for older children especially those who remained at schools
after fourteen years of age.40 However, the reforms included in the Act were little
different from pre-war provision41 and were “an uncertain half-way house.”42
There was no reference in the Education Act 1918 to the non-provided sector.
This was a deliberate omission by Fisher to try to avoid any controversy which might
prevent its smooth passage, as had been the case in 1902. He considered that the
question of the ‘dual system’ was not important to the development of a state
education system.43 However, it was clear that if there was to be a successful
reorganisation, local authorities would need to have control of all schools in their
areas, including those of the non-provided sector. By 1919, and encouraged by the
lack of religious tensions during the passage of the Act, Fisher decided to negotiate
a settlement with the denominations so that all non-provided schools would be
handed over to the local authorities. In return, a certain amount of denominational
teaching would take place in council run schools when parents requested it. It
appears that that the Church of England and the Free Churches were generally in
36 Labour Party Conference Report, January 1918, p 122 in B. Simon, (1965), op. cit., p. 354. 37 B. Simon, (1965), ibid., see pp 348 -352 for a full account. 38 Education Act 1918 (8 & 9 Geo. 5 Ch. 39). 39 In the context of this chapter the term ‘secondary’ is used as a term which refers to the education of pupils
over eleven years of age. During this period in the history of education it would have referred to almost
entirely to those pupils attending grammar or intermediate schools and not to elementary school children
regardless of their age unless local authorities had already reorganised elementary education into primary and
secondary phases after the Hadow recommendations. 40 L. Andrews, The Education Act 1918 (Routledge and Kegan Paul: London, 1976), p. 36. 41 G. McCulloch, Education Reconstruction The 1944 Education Act and the Twenty First Century (Woburn
Press: Essex, 1994, p. 24. 42 G Sherington, English Education, Social Change and War 1911-20 (MUP: Manchester, 1981), p 182. 43 H. A. L. Fisher Memoranda, unreferenced M. Cruikshank, Church and State in English Education
(Macmillan: London, 1964) p. 114.
60
favour of the proposals.44 In Wales, the tensions over the Education Act 1902 had
subsided as the number of voluntary aided schools fell and the strong Liberal
opposition towards the non-provided sector gave way to the more moderate
religious views of the Labour Party.45 By the early 1920s, and after long discussion,
the Welsh churches agreed to hand all their schools to the local authorities and, in
return, the Cowper - Temple46 clause would be activated. However these proposals
were rejected by Welsh teachers “who still ridden by the bogey of religious tests,
rejected them.47 Their veto was decisive and the proposals came to nothing.”48 As
a consequence the ‘dual system’ remained a part of education provision throughout
Wales. In general, this situation remained, although in the years that followed, local
agreements were reached with teachers, and church schools were handed over to
local authorities in both England and Wales.49
It has been suggested that the Education Act 1918 produced nothing new in
terms of improvement,50 and in terms of implementation was not a great success.
Curtis points out that this was mainly due to the fact that it relied on the initiative of
local authorities to carry out implementation as “much of the legislation was
permissive and not mandatory.”51 Consequently, local authorities were asked to
submit plans to the Board of Education for reorganisation there was no compulsion
on them to do so. This ensured that both elementary and secondary provision
throughout England and Wales remained dependant on the policies and politics of
each local authority. Reorganisation centred on raising the school leaving age and
on the secondary sector and these two issues became the key foci.52
The Act established that no child should be deprived of a secondary
education because of the cost of fees and offered increased opportunity with a
cheaper alternative in the context of selective central schools. While, in theory, this
44 See M. Cruikshank, op. cit.; B. Sacks, The Religious Issue in the State Schools of England and Wales
1902-1914 A Nation’s Quest for Human Dignity (University of New Mexico Press: Albuquerque, 1961). 45 Less than 10 per cent of Welsh children attended voluntary schools, M. Cruikshank, ibid., p 121. 46 The Cowper-Temple Clause offered a compromise on teaching denominational religion in state funded
schools. It gave a right of withdrawal from religious instruction on grounds of conscience in all elementary
schools, including those run by churches. This applied to both teachers and pupils. 47 Resolution of the Executive of the N.U.T. in Wales, 11th February, 1922; The Times Educational
Supplement, 18th February 1922, in M. Cruikshank, op.cit., p. 121. 48 M. Cruikshank, (1964) ibid., p. 121. 49 In Denbighshire and the West Riding of Yorkshire in 1925. This Concordat was published in Education,
6th November 1925 in M. Cruikshank, ibid., p. 121. 50 G. Sherington, (1981), op, cit., p. 117. 51 S. J. Curtis, History of Education in Great Britain (University Tutorial Press: London, 1948), p. 341. 52 S. J. Curtis, ibid., p. 42.
61
was very advantageous to children attending elementary schools, central schools
were never accepted as being equal in academic standard to either intermediate or
grammar schools. They became associated with working class children who were
“doomed as slaves in the life and industry of this country.”53 Despite this secondary
school places were in short supply and in 1919 less than ten percent of children
were able to find a place.54 The findings of the Young Report55 in 1920 confirmed
the inadequacy of provision, and controversially compounded this lack of
accommodation by making the suggestion that many more than the recommended
limit of twenty five per cent of the child population would benefit from secondary
education. This was completely out of step with the thinking of the Board of
Education. The Report also identified that the small number of secondary schools
in Wales made access much more difficult56 although it was acknowledged that this
was compensated for by the fact that Welsh local authorities offered the full twenty
five percent of free places allowed by Government. Almost all children in the Welsh
secondary schools came from the elementary sector as there was much less of a
social class distinction than in England.57 Despite this advantage there was a real
shortage of accommodation, and in the opinion of the Report, it would be
advantageous if children were able to make better use of the central school system.
Education 1918-1926
By the time that the Education Act 1918 passed into legislation, Great Britain
was beginning to feel the full effect of adverse economic conditions. The nation was
already commercially uncompetitive, and this combined with a lack of diversification
away from the traditional manufacturing industries had proved very damaging to
53 W. G. Cove, Labour M.P for Aberavon, representative of the National Union of Teachers and the National
Association of Labour Teachers, quoted in E. J. Davies. The Origins and Development of Secondary
Education in the Rhondda Valleys 1878-1923 Unpublished MA Wales (1965) in G.E. Jones, Controls and
Conflicts in Welsh Secondary Education (UWP: Cardiff, 1982), p. 69. 54 This figure could be divided into: ‘9,271 because of lack of accommodation, and 8,870 because there were
no free places.’ Board of Education Report of the Department Committee on Scholarships and Free Places
1920 Appendix 1, Table D in H-C. Kang, Education and Equal Opportunity between the Wars. Oxford
Review of Education, Vol 9, No 2.(1983) 91-108, p. 91. 55 Departmental Committee on Scholarships and Free Places. Report of the Departmental Committee on
Scholarships and Free Places, 1920 (Cmd. 968) (Young Report). 56 ibid., p. 43. There were only one hundred and twenty two secondary which was ten times less than the
number in England. 57 ibid., p. 44.
62
economic growth.58 There had been a marked drop in demand for British goods59
and the situation in the agricultural sector was also difficult because by 1914 Britain
was importing half its food.60 Although war time conditions had promoted a rise in
agricultural and industrial productivity this was followed by a sharp decline that
began “one of the most turbulent periods of all of British economic history (and) one
of far reaching change.”61 The effect of this economic downturn was catastrophic to
some areas of Wales. Davies points out that:
“The long depression which began in 1925 was the central happening in the history of twentieth century Wales. It was responsible for halting and reversing the industrial growth that had been in full flood for a century and a half.”62
The economy of the years that followed presented “a paradox in British history.”63
While some areas, dependant on the traditional industries were blighted by poverty,
unemployment and depression, new industries revitalised others: the Midlands,64
the south east of England and some areas of Wales.65 Although Britain was still a
wealthy country, this prosperity masked poverty on a significant scale but the view
of prosperity or poverty depended “upon whether the spotlight is turned on … Slough
or Merthyr Tydfil.”66
In 1922, in view of this poor economic situation the Geddes Committee
recommended that £75 million savings was made across government departments
and singled out the Board of Education for special attention with a cut of £18
million.67 The fact that the Board paid half of all local authority education costs was
vilified and the Committee has been quoted as saying that it was “impressed by the
position of impotence of the Board of Education in either controlling expenditure, or
effecting economies, once the policy has been determined.”68 Its proposals included
cuts to both elementary and secondary education by increasing the teacher pupil
58 B.Eichengreen, ‘The interwar economy in the European mirror’, in R. Floud and D. McCloskey, The
Economic History of Britain since 1700. Volume 2 1860-1939 (CUP: Cambridge, 1994), p. 292. 59R. Floud and D. McCloskey, ibid., p. 20. 60C. Ó Gráda, British Agriculture 1860-1914 in R. Floud and D. McCloskey, op.cit., p. 171. 61B.Eichengreen, ibid., p. 291. 62 J. Davies, A History of Wales (Penguin: London, 1990), p. 533. 63S. Glynn & J Oxborrow, Interwar Britain: A social and economic history (Allen Unwin: 1976), p. 13. 64 E Hopkins, Industrialisation and Society: A Social History 1830-1951, (Routledge; London, 2000). 65 K. O. Morgan, (1981), op. cit. 66 P. Mathias, The First Industrial Nation, (Methuen: London, 1971), p, 431 in J. Stevenson Social Conditions
in Britain between the Wars (Penguin: Harmondsworth, 1977), p 12. 67B. Simon, (1974), op. cit. p., 37. 68 G. Bernbaum, Social Change and the Schools 1918-1944 (Routledge and Kegan Paul: 1967), p. 29.
63
ratio, cutting free secondary school places, closing small schools and lowering
teachers’ salaries. Secondary education should be confined to those pupils whose
“mental calibre justified it”69 and whose parents could afford to pay for it. Tawney70
pointed out, this would once again make secondary education “the privilege of the
rich.”71 Certainly the reduction in education funding intensified the nervousness felt
by the local authorities in fully implementing the terms of the Education Act 1918
because of the costs involved.72 The cuts were heavily criticised and Tawney
commented on the naivety and lack of perception by those who supported them
“amid paeans of praise”73 and who did not understand their effect on working class
children. It has been reported that even Government was shocked at the scale of
cuts and, in opposition,
“Labour was bitter: Working men were not impressed with the need for economies in social services ‘whilst the rich betake themselves to St Moritz (and) they objected to ‘making the children pay’ by cuts in education.”74
Even though the scale of cuts was eventually reduced it was still an almost
impossible task to carry out. This, however, was not the perception of the Geddes
Committee who did not understand state education.75 Percival Sharp, Director of
Education for Sheffield, has been quoted as saying in a conference speech to the
Association of Directors and Secretaries of Education, “I cannot believe that any
body of responsible men with any degree of vision can contemplate what amounts
to a wreckage of the education system.”76
The need for cautious spending continued and in 1925, Circular 135877
instructed local authorities to examine provision to see where savings on education
could be made. However, within months of this Circular, others began to reduce the
69 L. Andrews, The Education Act 1918 (Routledge and Kegan Paul: London, 1976), p. 70. 70 Richard Henry Tawney, 1880-1962. Tawney was an educationalist, socialist and a leading member of the
Fabian Society. He worked as a teacher for the Worker Education Association, and taught economic history
at the London School of Economics. He was a member of a number of the Consultative Committees of the
Board of Education. He was influential in forming Labour party education policy during the interwar years
and wrote Secondary Education For All in 1922 which became a policy statement for the party. This was
followed in 1924 by Education: the Socialist Policy. 71 R. H. Tawney, The Guardian, 21st February, 1922. 72 See for example CAS CC/ED/1/1/10 Education Committee Minutes 1923 but was a common comment in
Education Minutes from the area. 73 R. H. Tawney, (1922), ibid. 74 C. L. Mowat, Britain between the Wars 1918-1940 (Methuen: London, 1955), p. 131. 75 B. Simon, (1974), op. cit., p. 37. 76 Education, 13 January, 1922 in B. Simon, ibid., p. 41. 77 NA ED 24/1481 Board of Education Office discussion on programme procedure under Circular 1358.
64
pressures on provision. Circular 1360,78 asked local authorities to reduce class sizes
which appeared to indicate that “economy drives against education were past
history.”79 This relief was to be short lived and by the end of 1925, Circular 137180
effectively cut the block grant funding to education because plans to expand
provision through central schools would put an unreasonable demand upon the
taxpayer. This was a devastating blow to reorganisation, and protests from the
Labour Party and the Teachers’ Labour League were intense.81 Opinions elsewhere
were quite different and Lord Salisbury82 spoke in the House of Lords to suggest
that “It must be ruthless economy”83 at the Board of Education especially as so much
money had already been wasted on elementary schools.84 There were immediate
demands for the circular to be withdrawn but this did not take place until March 1926
and marked “a new stage in the battle to restrain Government from gaining full
control of the education system in the interests of economy.”85
During the same period there were significant political changes at both
national and local level and this began to change perceptions of education. While
the Liberal Party’s influence was diminishing, the two other main political parties
held very different opinions about education. In general terms the Conservative
Party showed a distinct political determination to retain the status quo of the sub
sets of elementary and the secondary provision. It attached enormous prestige to
the independent, secondary and voluntary Church of England sectors and very little
to elementary schools. This view was confirmed by the attitudes of the upper and
middle classes who had been educated outside the state system and who
“dominated Parliament (and) the armed forces, the judiciary, civil service and the
church.”86 At the other end of the spectrum of opinion, Labour Party philosophy
focused on an attempt to bring radical change to elementary education through
proposals to raise the school leaving age; offer a wider curriculum and, better
opportunities for advancement. However, while the Conservatives held typically
consistent opinions on education, within the Labour Party there was a divergence
78 NA ED 60 Local Education Authority staffing files relating to a system of approved establishments of
teachers ('staffing quotas') 1925 -1926. 79 B. Simon, (1974), op. cit., p. 97. 80 NA ED 13/13 Circular 1371 [block grants] and administrative memorandum 44, 1925. 81 B. Simon, (1974), op. cit., p. 113. 82 Lord Privy Seal. 83 Hansard HL Vol. 62, Col. 1494, in B. Simon, (1974), ibid., p. 101. 84 ibid., p. 101 85 B. Simon, (1974) ibid., p. 110. 86 B. Simon, Education and Social Order 1940-1990 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1991) p. 34.
65
of philosophies and a number of factions who offered wide ranging views and
ideas.87 While some wanted to raise the school leaving age, others, Members of
Parliament for the Lancashire constituencies for example, were keen to prevent any
legislation that would preclude the employment of adolescents in industry. Trade
unionists sometimes believed that raising the school leaving age and continuation
schools would both lead to a diminution of working class standards of living because
of the loss of child employment income. and, although it was Labour Party policy to
promote equality, every attempt to reorganise elementary education was met with
criticism from some group within the organisation.88 Regardless of the philosophical
differences, the protection of the prestigious secondary sector appears to have been
as important to the Labour Party as it was to the Conservatives. Even Tawney’s
memorandum Secondary Education for All89 which “set the educational system in
the midst of the struggle to replace a divided, materialistic society with one properly
attuned to intellectual and spiritual values”90 actually maintained the existing sub
sets of provision. The polarised views on educational change were drawn together
by an élitism which was present in both Conservative and Labour political parties as
both wanted to retain the prestigious grammar school sector. These two important
factors: the economic situation and the political power base, affected how education
development was influenced during the first half of the twentieth century.
Education in Wales: 1918 -1926
South and south west Wales felt the full force of decline and economic
depression during the interwar years. The mono industrial areas were very badly
effected and there was a marked downturn in agriculture which brought serious
economic difficulties to rural areas. In spite of some small recovery in the late 1930s
the long term effects of depression in the region were considerable. Depravation
and poverty were common and although unemployment levels fluctuated, these
were substantially high throughout the period.91 For example, unemployment in the
Rhondda Valleys, during the early 1930s were between forty and fifty percent.92
Similarly in Merthyr Tydfil, by 1935 the unemployment rate reached almost fifty per
87 R. Barker, (1972), op. cit., p. 55. 88 R. Barker, ibid., pp. 53-55. 89 R. H. Tawney, Secondary Education for All (The Labour Party: London, 1922). 90 R. Barker, ibid., p. 43. 91 H. Milford, The Second Industrial Survey of South Wales, Vol II (UWP: Cardiff, 1937). 92 E. D. Lewis, The Rhondda Valleys (Phoenix House: London, 1959), p. 234.
66
cent.93 The economic situation in rural areas was not so obviously difficult although
the levels of poverty were high.94 The fortunate intervention of the Milk Marketing
Board95 in the early 1930s offered some financial stability to farmers. The exception
to this decline was the eastern part of Carmarthenshire as the anthracite coal, steel
industries and ports of the Swansea area96 were not as badly affected by the
economic downturn. The accompanying phenomenon to unemployment and
depression was a demographic shift in population. It was inevitable that there was
considerable migration out of Glamorgan and the population fell by a hundred and
fifteen thousand in the space of seven years, compared to a loss of only thirteen
thousand across the rest of Wales.97. The population of the Rhondda fell by over
fifty thousand in the space of ten years98 and in Merthyr Tydfil there was a huge fall
in the birth rate as young adults left the areas to look for work elsewhere.99
Unemployment and emigration had serious repercussions on the finances of local
authorities.100 The decline in industry and a dwindling population also had a
profound effect on local authority income. Across Wales almost half the county
councils produced less than a thousand pounds and many of the county boroughs,
Merthyr Tydfil for example, less than one hundred pounds in penny rate.101 The
effect on education was, in some areas, overwhelming and as the population
dropped, the number of surplus places in schools increased. Merthyr Tydfil was a
prime example of this demographic shift. By 1930 the number of children on roll at
elementary schools had dropped by over seven thousand which led to unviable
schools and an uneven distribution of teachers.102
The interwar period was marked by a significant shift in political power. As
the Labour Party gained ground in Parliament it also began to take control at local
government level and this was particularly the case in south and south west Wales.
The Labour Party’s power base was in the South Wales Coalfield where it had
93 K. O. Morgan, (1981), op, cit., p. 212 94 There is considerable evidence of this in both the MOH and SMOH annual reports for Carmarthenshire in
particular. CAS WWH/2/2 Annual Reports of the School Medical Officer 1907 – 1946 for example. 95 See J. Empson, The history of the Milk Marketing Board, 1933–1994: British farmers' greatest commercial
enterprise. International Journal of Dairy Technology, Volume 51, Issue 3: (1998) 77–85, pp. 77-85. 96 This defined the geographical area of the east Carmarthenshire coalfield and the Neath and Swansea
valleys. See T. Brennan, T. Cooney, H. Pollins, Social Change in South-West Wales (Watts: London, 1954). 97 C. L. Mowat, (1968) op, cit. Abstracted from Table 12, p. 467. 98 B. Thomas ed, The Welsh Economy: Studies in Expansion (UWP: Cardiff, 1962), p. 179. 99 S. Thompson, Unemployment, Poverty and Health in Interwar Wales (UWP: Cardiff, 2006) p. 195. 100 K. O. Morgan, (1981), op. cit., p. 232. 101 K. O. Morgan, ibid., p. 232. 102GA BMT/1 /49 Merthyr Tydfil Schools 1939. Total on Roll–9382; accommodation available-16,664.
67
overall control of many, but not all, councils.103 In rural areas “the old alignment of
‘Church-Tory’ versus non-conformist radical persisted”104 and Labour failed to gain
control at Carmarthenshire County Council, Carmarthen Borough Council, and only
after 1931 at Llanelly. It was unable to make headway in Cardiff although there and
in Carmarthenshire working class wards were almost totally under Labour control.105
In many local authorities, Glamorgan County Council, Port Talbot, Merthyr Tydfil
and Rhondda Urban District Council for example, the Labour Party achieved almost
total domination over local government during the interwar years. This political
power gave it control over local government functions, including outdoor relief,
housing and education, all of which “could make a significant difference to the
standard of living and the quality of life enjoyed by its constituents.”106
Planning for change at a local level
The terms of the Education Act 1918 required local authorities to submit plans
to show how they would “provide for the progressive development and
comprehensive organisation of education in their areas.”107 The differences in
planning that emerged were due to both the progressive nature and vision of some
local authorities, and the backwardness of others but, most importantly, were
“contingent upon favourable government attitudes in a favourable economic
climate.”108 The plans for reorganisation therefore depended mainly on the political
persuasion of elected members although the geographical constraints of south and
south west Wales was an additional important factor. The underlying trend for
reorganisation was towards an expansion of the intermediate secondary sector
rather than improving elementary education by providing central schools. Parents
were determined that their children should not “left behind in the academic gold
rush” because of a lack of accommodation, and there was a constant demand for a
larger secondary sector as it was considered very prestigious and only for the
brightest and most privileged children.
103 See Table 6.1 in C. Williams, Labour and the Challenge of Local Government, 1919-1939 in D. Tanner,
C. Williams and D. Hopkins, The Labour Party in Wales 1900 – 2000 (UWP: Cardiff, 2000, p. 142. 104 Tanner et al, ibid., p. 145. 105 Splott and Adamstown in Cardiff and in the anthracite coalfield area in Carmarthenshire. ibid., p. 146. 106 Tanner et al, ibid., p. 141. 107 L. Andrews, op. cit., p. 36. 108 G. E. Jones, (1982), op. cit., p. 79.
68
In Wales, although secondary school places remained selective, a number
of Labour controlled authorities made them free for all pupils. This policy came under
pressure during the early 1920s but this was vigorously opposed and local
authorities continued with their plans for free secondary education as far as the
economic circumstances would allow.109 Glamorgan County Council, Cardiff
Borough Council and Rhondda Urban District made substantial efforts to retain free
places against powerful opposition from the Board of Education. Merthyr Tydfil
Borough Council intended making all places at a new intermediate school at
Quakers Yard free, but came under severe pressure from the Board of Education to
charge fees. It refused and as a result the school was not recognised for grant until
the Labour Party came to power in 1924.110 The brief respite of a Labour controlled
Government encouraged the more progressive, and generally Labour led, local
authorities to increase the number of free secondary school places. By the end of
1924 there were twenty one non fee paying secondary schools in industrial
Glamorgan alone, a total of only a few less than in the whole of England.111 This
was “something of a Welsh dimension”112 although free places were more available
in towns than in rural areas. This latter remained a problem and was identified some
years later in a survey of education in rural Wales.113 The high level of free
secondary school places continued throughout the interwar years114 but conversely,
there were far more children in Wales in all-age elementary schools than in England,
where re-organisation after the Education Act 1918 and the recommendations of the
Education of the Adolescent for central schools had been more rapidly
implemented.115 However, the Board of Education punished the generosity of local
authorities in south and south west Wales in 1932 when it abolished free places and
“Wales had to pay once again for being administered as an adjunct of England.”116
Jones quotes the Women’s Liberal Association who said: ”We feel it hard that Wales
and Scotland should be held back by the more backward English.”117
109 G.E. Jones, Which Nation’s Schools? Direction and Devolution in Welsh Education in the Twentieth
Century (UWP: Cardiff, 1990). 110 G.E. Jones (1990) op. cit., p. 27 111 ibid., p. 26. In England there were only 25 free secondary schools. 112 ibid., p. 26. 113 Education in Rural Wales Being the Report of the Departmental Committee Appointed by the President of
the Board of Education of to Inquire into the Public System of Education in Wales and Monmouthshire in
Relation to the Needs of Rural Areas (HMSO: 1930). 114 G.E. Jones, (1990) ibid., p. 27. There were over double the number of free schools places in Wales, 19.33
percent compared to 9.58 percent in England. 115 ibid., p. 27. 61 per cent in Wales compared to 44.6 percent in England. 116 G.E. Jones, (1982) op. cit., p. 144. 117 B. Simon, (1974), op. cit., p. 346 in G.E. Jones, (1982), op. cit., p. 145.
69
The plans for reorganisation after the Education Act 1918 varied considerably.
Labour controlled Glamorgan County Council, for example, submitted an ambitious
plan to create thirty three new senior schools across the county and advanced
instruction in some elementary schools until further re-organisation would allow
them to be absorbed into the senior system.118 Rhondda LEA’s scheme119 was
complicated by the fact that the authority was made up of two valleys with no natural
access points between them. Consequently “centralisation is reduced in its
applicability and a certain amount of duplication is necessary in consequence of
geographical difficulties and this leads to an increased cost of administration.”120
The scheme that was produced proposed that ten selective central schools and five
junior technical colleges would be added to the four secondary schools. This would
increase the number of pupils receiving higher level education to twelve per cent of
the child population. There would be continuation schools for up to four thousand
pupils attached to the central schools. Attendance would be for one day a week so
that it did not interfere with the operation of the “winding gear at the pit head.”121 In
addition the minutes show there was a plan to provide nursery education and to
establish a Montessori model school to train infant school teachers so “the spirit and
principle of the system”122 could be introduced into all schools. The Committee felt
so strongly about the establishment of nursery education that it decided that it
“should have first call on the rate.”123 It also agreed in principle that teaching Welsh
should be given priority in infant schools and some schools should be made bilingual
to encourage the development of the Welsh language in a highly English speaking
area.124
In contrast to these progressive Labour led authorities, others chose to ignore
the need to re-organise completely or take quite different approaches. Conservative
led Cardiff Borough Council quickly realised that in order to implement the
requirements of the 1918 Education Act it would need to provide approximately
three thousand extra school places in six new central schools. This would cost at
118 GA GC/EDEE/1 Glamorgan Education Committee Minutes, 1920. 119 TRL Outline Plan of Rhondda UDC Reorganisation Scheme under the 1918 Education Act. 120 TRL R 9370, RHO Rhondda UD Council Education Act 1918, Scheme of the Rhondda LEA, p. 2. 121 ibid., p. 16. 122 TRL Rhondda UD Council Minute Book 1920-1921, September 1920, p. 4. 123 ibid., p. 4. 124 TRL R 9370 ibid., The area was not, during the period, a traditional Welsh speaking area because of the
large influx of English speakers. As a result 58.9 per cent of the population spoke only English; 35 per cent
were bilingual and 3 per cent monoglot Welsh.
70
least £100,000 with annual running costs of £18,000 so it was decided that the
authority was “not at present prepared to put that part of the Education Act into force
which raises the compulsory age for attendance at school to fourteen years.”125
Swansea Borough Council was reasonably well provided for with six secondary
schools and fifty elementary schools. In 1919, the Higher Education Committee
decided to provide more municipal secondary schools126 which were outside the
remit of the Central Welsh Board.127 The committee’s major concern was the
discontinuity of management between intermediate and other secondary school
provision and it considered that all schools should be under one authority. All
Swansea’s secondary schools came under the jurisdiction of the Board of Education
and a good working relationship had developed between it and the authority. The
Committee was unsure if the Central Welsh Board had the ability to cope with a
period of reorganisation because it had not kept up with new educational ideas. It
focused only on children who were destined for university rather than the vast
majority of children.128 These factors had led Swansea Borough Council to develop
municipal secondary education “to meet the crying needs of industrial centres: the
secondary school with a less academic character than that of an intermediate
school.”129 In the event Swansea Education Committee undertook minimal
reorganisation and by 1939, little had changed.
Carmarthenshire County Council put forward a number of different plans for
reorganisation. The first was to provide central classes in some elementary schools
followed by continuation classes. The second was for central classes at elementary
schools with full time instruction for children aged fourteen to sixteen. The third
option, similar to that of Glamorgan County Council, proposed full time secondary
education for all children from twelve to sixteen, or to eighteen depending on the
needs of the child. There was a general feeling that the second or third alternatives
would be most suitable in urban areas, the first would be best for the remainder of
the county but the choice would depend on both the number of children and the cost
of implementation. There was also a suggestion that in areas where the number of
eligible children was small an extension to intermediate schools might be possible.
125 GA BC/E/1/19 Cardiff Borough Education Committee Minutes 16th September, 1919. 126 Municipal secondary schools were established under the Education Act 1902 and generally did not charge
fees. There were twelve in south Wales. See G. E. Jones, (1990) op. cit. p. 24. 127 WGAS E/SB 71/2/43 Swansea Borough Education Sub Committee, 10th October, 1919. 128 WGAS E/SB 71/2/43 ibid. 129 ibid.
71
The major objection to this option was that the curriculum would not be “sufficiently
elastic, and the needs of the young persons intended to be provided for would be
better met by a School with a distinct technical, commercial or agricultural bias as
the case may be.”130 The re-organisation of elementary education in
Carmarthenshire proved very challenging. Although there was no apparent political
pressure or financial constraints, the local authority faced huge organisational
difficulties which were further complicated by a high number of the non-provided
schools. In order to illustrate these difficulties, the Committee examined a number
of rural areas and gave as an example the area around Caio in North
Carmarthenshire which would produce only about sixty-five children of an age to
attend a central school, clearly not a viable option. Neither would drawing children
from a wider area be an option as this would encounter problems of transport and
attendance especially during the winter months. The only possible alternative would
be Higher Top classes in some elementary schools and although the curriculum
would be limited, this could be offset by centralised facilities for practical subjects.131
Carmarthenshire Education Committee initially focused its scheme for
reorganisation in the industrialised east of the county, where the child population
was larger, and left the rural areas largely untouched. In January 1923 the Board of
Education wrote to Carmarthenshire County Council to say that while it “viewed with
sympathy the proposal to establish Higher Tops in a number of elementary
schools”132 it suggested that the Local Education Authority should consider a more
radical re-organisation which, in the long term would be more cost effective. HMI
also proposed that some of the very small schools with poor academic standards
and unsuitable buildings133 were closed or merged and that “no permanent
appointments to be made to rural schools”134 for the foreseeable future.
Carmarthenshire County Council135 also proposed that the Part III local
authorities of Carmarthen Borough and Llanelli should be absorbed into the County
Council to make re-organisation more cost effective. This was promptly rejected and
130 CAS CC/ED/1/1/8 Carmarthenshire Education Committee Minutes, 12th June 1919, p. 384. 131 CAS ED/BK/695/2/4 Llangunnick (Llangynog) Vaughn’s Charity School – Log Book. 132 CAS CC/ED/1/1/10 Carmarthenshire Education Committee Meeting 18th Jan 1923. 133 CAS CC/ED/1/1/9 Carmarthenshire Education Committee Minutes. For example at Capel Dewi (18
children) and Alma (37 children) and the situation in the St Clears and Llanedy was to be reviewed for
possible closures. There were also a number of schools on the Board of Education Blacklist. 134 CAS CC/ED/1/1/9 ibid., 9th March 1921. 135 CAS CC/ED/1/1/8 Carmarthenshire Education Committee Minutes 1919-1921 pp. 376 -383.
72
both local authorities made separate plans for reorganisation.136 Carmarthen
Borough planned to establish a central school in the town to accommodate about
four hundred pupils to add to their establishment of two secondary schools,137 as
well as a model school to spread good practice. The very small Roman Catholic
sector planned to replace their existing elementary school with a new building but
had insufficient numbers to establish a separate senior school.138 Llanelly Urban
District Council pressed ahead with plans for Higher Tops in some elementary
schools and for a new central school at Stebonheath to improve its secondary
provision.139 A continuation school and a municipal secondary school were also
planned to prepare suitable pupils for entry into higher education. This would be
made possible because “certain funds provided by manufacturers are available, and
scholarships will be offered by the recently established Education Board of the
South Wales Manufacturers.”140
In 1919, discussions about the federalisation of the United Kingdom began,
an event which was to have long term influences over Welsh thinking about
education.141 There was an initial intention to exclude Wales from the talks and
“strong lobbying from Welsh representatives was required”142 to get Wales included
in the debate. Sir Robert Thomas143 put down an amendment which reminded the
House of Commons that
“the little country of Wales was overlooked. The Motion merely deals with Scotland and Ireland, and I think I have a right to claim that the little country to which I belong, gallant little Wales, has every right, when the question of Devolution is discussed, to be considered at least on a level with Scotland and Ireland.”144
The amendment was accepted, and Welsh representatives including Lord Aberdare
were included in discussions. The powers that were to be devolved were wide
136 Both local authorities had few schools. Carmarthen Borough had six including two Church of England
and one Roman Catholic. Llanelly had ten schools including one Higher Elementary School, one Church of
England and one Roman Catholic. 137 CAS Museum 199 Carmarthen Borough Education Committee Minutes, 23rd September 1919. 138 CAS Museum 199 ibid. 139 CAS CC/ED/L/4 Carmarthenshire Education Committee Minutes. 140 CAS CC/ED/1/1/8 op. cit., p. 386. 141 Conference on Devolution. Letter from Mr Speaker to the Prime Minister (HMSO, London, 1919). 142 Evans, A., Four Nations and a constitution: the Conference on Devolution 1919-1920 Unpublished pdf
document https://fournationshistory.wordpress.com/2014/10/27/four-nations-and-a-constitution-the-
conference-on-devolution-1919-1920/. 143 Member of Parliament for Wrexham. 144 PP. Hansard HC 3rd June 1919 Col. 1795-1976, Vol. 116.
73
ranging including all sectors of education. Although the plans for devolution failed,
the idea of achieving a separate education system for Wales remained, led by Welsh
Members of Parliament and the Federation of Education Committees.145
National policy and direction, 1926 - 1939
In 1920, the Consultative Committee of the Board of Education was re-
established under the chairmanship of Sir William Hadow and produced six very
influential reports.146 In 1926, the Committee began to deliberate about the future of
education for older children: how schools should be organised and what testing
arrangements would be appropriate.147 In 1926, arguably the most influential of the
Hadow Committee’s reports, The Education of the Adolescent was published. Its
proposals consolidated the terms of the Education Act 1918 and suggested a
pattern for secondary education legislation that was to dominate education thinking
for the next decades. While its contents were considered to have been a new and
exciting proposal for the reform of secondary education,148 it merely reiterated the
contents of Circular 1350 published in 1925, which proposed a tripartite system of
secondary education.149 The report from the Consultative Committee recommended
that the current all-age elementary system should be replaced by two phases:
primary and secondary which would create a more diverse but equal education
system for children over eleven years of age.150 The curriculum should be
differentiated to meet the needs of all children. It would not be vocational but
“practical in the broadest sense and brought directly into relations with the facts of
everyday life.”151 The two types of schools, modern and technical, intended for
children who would be leaving school at the age of fifteen, would be run parallel to
grammar schools. This would ensure that all pupils would “go forward, though along
different paths. Selection by differentiation takes the place of selection by
145 NLW Minor Deposit 701 Minutes of the Executive Committee of the Federation of Education
Committees, (Wales and Monmouthshire). 146 Reports of the Consultative Committee of the Board of Education: Differentiation of the Curriculum for
Boys and Girls (1923);Psychological Tests of Educable Capacity (1924).; The Education of the Adolescent
(1926).; Books in Public Elementary Schools (1928); The Primary School (1931); Infant and Nursery Schools
(1933). 147 The Education of the Adolescent (HMSO, London, 1926). p. iv 148 See for example M. Katz, ‘From Bryce to Newson: Assumptions of British Educational Reports 1895 –
1963’, International Review of Education, Vol 11, No 3: (1965), 287-304.; B. Simon, (1974), op. cit. 149 The New Prospect in Education (HMSO: 1928), p. 1; Primary Education: Suggestions for the
consideration of teachers and others concerned with the work of Primary Schools (HMSO: 1959, p. 4. See
also See NA ED 97. 150 A detailed plan of implementation is contained in The New Prospect in Education, ibid. 151 The Education of the Adolescent, ibid., p. 175.
74
elimination.”152 It was essential, the Report concluded, to consider the needs of the
adolescent and identify suitable provision and curricula that would meet the needs
of all children, not only the most intelligent.153 To ensure that the reorganisation
would include a quality curriculum it was recommended that the senior elementary
phase should last at least four years and the school leaving age raised to fifteen.
This extension of school life would have the added, and very important effect of
lessening unemployment during a critical period of depression by not flooding the
job market with large numbers of juveniles. The Report recognised that the
continuing existence of non-provided elementary education would be extremely
detrimental to any future reorganisation. From evidence collected by the Committee,
it had been established that Directors of Education were of the opinion that this
should be abolished immediately to allow for proper reorganisation.
While the Education of the Adolescent promoted an understanding that
secondary education would be provided in a variety of schools suitable for children
of different abilities, there remained a considerable emphasis on the importance of
grammar schools which was “in tune with the wishes of the Board itself.”154 The
proposals were viewed with some distaste by various organisations, the Trades
Union Congress and teachers’ unions in particular, who wanted much more parity
within the system. It was felt that the proposals perpetuated the idea that grammar
schools should be “a lift or stairway to the higher stories of the social structure,”155
and open to the suggestion that only some pupils should be allowed access. The
notion of segregating children at the end of the primary phase caused disquiet and
it was widely reported that in the main, teachers associations were against it.156
These proposals followed earlier demands from the teachers’ unions and the
Labour Party to reorganise education for older children, and in 1922, the Labour
Party had published a policy document ‘Education for All.’157 This suggested that
the only suitable form of education system for a “democratic community”158 was one
152 The Education of the Adolescent op. cit., p 78. 153 ibid., p. 36. 154 M. Hyndman, Multilateralism and the Spens Report: Evidence from the Archives. British Journal of
Educational Studies, Vol. 24: (1976), 242-253, p. 243. 155 Sir Eustace Percy, Hansard 15th July 1932 in O. Banks, Parity and Prestige in English Secondary
Education (Routledge and Kegan Paul: 1955), p. 124. 156 Times Educational Supplement, 30.3 1929, p. 145 in M. Hyndman, (1976) op. cit. p. 243. 157 R. H. Tawney, (1922) op. cit. 158 ibid., p. 1.
75
organised in two stages continuously until the age of sixteen. The primary sector
should end at eleven years of age and be preparatory to the “education of the
adolescent” which would last until children reached sixteen years of age. It proposed
increasing the number of free places in grammar schools to enable more working
class children greater opportunity and access to this prestigious sector. It has,
however, been suggested that this illustrated the conflicting views about education
within the Labour Party as it “set the educational system in the midst of the struggle
to replace a divided materialistic society with one properly attuned to intellectual and
spiritual values.”159 While Tawney’s ideas were well promoted there was a
fundamental understanding in certain sectors of the Labour Party that his proposals
were not sufficiently radical. They were merely a more generously funded extension
of the existing secondary system and there was no serious proposal to change the
status quo in education to an egalitarian system. Small alterations were considered
sufficient and there was little enthusiasm for any major reform.160
By the time The Education of the Adolescent was published the Conservative
Party was back in Government and another debate about the philosophy of
education began. For the Conservative Party the main stumbling block was raising
the school leaving age. The President of the Board of Education, Lord Eustace
Percy,161 “announced that he had no intention of upsetting the long term plans of
the local authorities based as these were already based on the assumption that
most children would leave school at fourteen.”162 Percy’s rejection of raising the
school leaving age was centred on his belief that education was not a social service
for unemployed juveniles but an investment in the future of the most able children.163
His reputation as President rested completely on his defence of secondary
education for the brightest and best pupils. However, there is some evidence that
he was ambivalent about the matter as he had also written that “I have never
contemplated … the ‘segregation of different types of boy and girl minds’ in different
schools.”164 Regardless of this, the plans laid out for the future of secondary
education in The Education of the Adolescent, were strictly along tripartite lines.165
159 R. Barker, op. cit., p. 43. 160 B. Simon, (1965), op. cit. 161 Lord Eustace Percy was a British diplomat, Conservative Member of Parliament for Hastings. 162 R. Barker, ibid., p. 57. 163 The Times 1st Jan, 1927; H C Deb 5 s. 1061, 16 Feb, 1927 in R. Barker, ibid., p. 57. 164 Times Educational Supplement 30.3 1929, p. 145 in M. Hyndman, (1976), op. cit., p. 243. 165 The details of the organisation plan are laid out in The New Prospect in Education op. cit.
76
Education development in south and south west Wales after 1926
In 1924 there were one thousand, nine hundred and eight all age elementary
schools in Wales166 accommodating just under half a million children between five
and fourteen years of age. There were also one hundred and thirty nine secondary
schools, with 32,273 pupils.167 This difference between the two sectors was a major
concern and meant there were few opportunities for children from elementary
schools to progress into the secondary sector. This was despite the fact that the
intermediate sector continued to grow.168 There was an increased demand for
secondary school places, which put the system under enormous pressure: in terms
of accommodation and, eventually in terms of finance at a macro and micro level, in
terms of grant funding and in free places. In spite of this level of demand there was
also a high element of early leaving with more than fifty percent of boys and girls
leaving before their sixteenth birthday. This, according to G.E. Jones, “was the main
self-regulating mechanism in the system.”169
There had been a number of organisational and financial problems which had
limited the implementation of the Education Act 1918 in Wales, and as a result, all-
age elementary schools provided education for the vast majority of children. Schools
varied considerably in size with a preponderance of small schools in rural areas.
Many school buildings were in poor condition lacking the basic facilities of running
water, outside space and suitable equipment. All schools, but especially those in
rural areas, were dogged by poor attendance due to adverse weather conditions
and were subject to frequent and lengthy closures because of repeated epidemics
of infectious disease.170 HMI Reports for the period generally paint a dismal
educational picture. In a visit to Llangennech Church of England Elementary School,
HMI Mr G.E. Williams found that
“The conditions under which work is carried out are highly detrimental to the welfare of both children and staff since they depress staff and weary the children ... It appears that no measure of repairs or reconstruction can secure any real improvement on account of the unsatisfactory nature of the site and the extreme difficulty of the building … It is recommended, in
166 Education in England and Wales being the report of the Board of Education for the school year 1924-25,
1926 (Cmd. 2695), p. 90. 167 ibid., p. 108. 168 G.E. Jones. (1982), op. cit., p. 63. 169 ibid., p. 71. 170 Details of school closures because of infectious diseases can be found in the Medical Officer of Health
Reports for each Local Education Authority. See CAS WWH/2/2 for example.
77
support of the SMOH’s conclusion that the school should be closed as
soon as arrangements can be made to move all of the children.”171
While this is an extreme example, criticisms of elementary schools were
common and HMI found conditions and academic standards of great concern.
Staffing in rural elementary schools was perceived as a major problem especially
when unqualified teachers were observed teaching large mixed age groups.172 A
second major difficulty was the fact that it was common for teachers who could not
speak Welsh to be employed in monoglot Welsh speaking areas. It was also
reported that many head teachers were incompetent. This was a long term problem
and at Brooke Non Provided School the “Head has too many ‘colds’ … couldn’t
attend Gardening Course … in danger of developing into a ‘happy fireman’ type of
head.”173 Another head teacher, at Myddfai Non Provided School was criticised as
“unkempt in person and clothes. He has already been warned about his duties
during my visit three months ago.”174 A special report on Llanllwni Church of England
School in 1919 was particularly damning:
“Most of the work of the School, especially that of the upper standards is very unsatisfactory and the children are extremely backward in practically every subject. There was a very striking disparity between their written work … problems have answers correct but had the working entirely wrong … it is clear that copying is very prevalent.”175
HMI found the organisation of the school was wholly inadequate and considered
that the head teacher should show “more activity and interest in the children.”176 It
is interesting to note that by 1922 the situation at the school had reversed. The SMO
for Carmarthenshire reported that a Soup Kitchen Committee had been set up there
to supply the seventy two children with a mid-day meal of Welsh Broth. Ingredients
were paid for by Lady Mansel of Maesycrugiau Manor and prepared by the school
caretaker. The School Medical Officer reported that “The headmaster is emphatic
that the attendance has improved at the school and the general health of the children
has greatly improved since the scheme has been introduced.”177 In the industrial
171 CAS ED/BK 4, HMI Reports for Carmarthenshire 1921-1924. 172 Although no breakdown by local authority is available across Wales about 60 percent of teachers were
qualified. Report of the Board of Education for the year 1923-24, 1924-25 (Cmd. 2443). 173 CAS ED/BK 400 HMI Report Brooke School 15th September 1941. 174 CAS ED/BK 402 HMI Report Myddfai Non Provided School 27th June, 1939. 175 CAS CC/ED/1/1/8 Minutes 1919-1921. Education Committee Meeting Minutes 13th June, 1919. 176 ibid. 177 CAS WWH/2/2 Annual Report of the School Medical Officer for year ending 31st December, 1922.
78
areas although the schools were generally larger it is apparent that the standards
were equally as poor. For example, the 1925 HMI report on Ynyslyd Council
School178 in Aberdare, showed that standards in all areas of the curriculum, but
particularly in English and reading, were poor. There was a complete lack of
thoroughness in teaching and children were frequently distracted by the noise from
the adjacent main road and railway. These factors had resulted in only six pupils
passing the County Scholarship examination in five years.
In south and south west Wales local authorities plans to implement the
recommendations of The Education of the Adolescent were affected by the same
organisational and financial problems that they faced in 1918. The plan to divide all
age elementary schools into primary and secondary sectors was further complicated
by the plan to raise the school leaving age. This re-organisational model
necessitated the closure of elementary schools and to gather sufficient children to
form viable primary schools, as well as three types of secondary schools. In rural
areas small schools and low pupils numbers made this very difficult and even in
urban areas where the child population was larger and schools closer together,
there were high cost implications especially if the practical curriculum advised by
Hadow was to be successfully delivered. Despite these difficulties the overall
response to the proposals was very positive although the cost of any kind of
reorganisation was immediately seen as prohibitive. A Carmarthenshire LEA
representative at conference reported:
“The financial aspects of the problem are a matter of extreme importance. The whole question hinges around this one. All the other difficulties and questions can be overcome if the financial hurdle can be negotiated.”179
The Federation of Education Committees was of the opinion that it might be possible
to raise the school leaving age to fifteen in Wales by 1931 as long as the Board of
Education would provide one hundred percent grants for the necessary additional
school buildings, and that satisfactory maintenance allowances were paid to older
children remaining at school.180 This proposal was not met with any enthusiasm at
the Board of Education and officials offered a counterproposal of a fifty percent grant
178 GA EA/26/5 HMI Inspection Report Aberdare. 179 CAS CC/ED/1/1/14 Carmarthenshire Borough Education Committee Minutes 10th November 1927. 180 NLW Minor Deposit 701, Minutes of the Executive Committee of the Federation of Education Committees
(Wales and Monmouthshire 29th July 1929.
79
towards the service of loans that would be needed to facilitate expansion. This,
however, was considered “totally inadequate to meet the needs of Wales and
particularly the distressed areas.”181 A second major factor that mitigated against
reorganisation was the demographic shift in child population which made long term
planning complicated and difficult. In Merthyr Tydfil, for example, the school
population almost halved over a period of ten years, leaving expensive empty
accommodation unevenly spread across the borough.182 While this is an extreme
example of depopulation it was a common to other areas and, as it was also
accompanied by a fall in the birth rate, the child population profile of many local
authorities changed dramatically. Cardiff Borough Council, for example, predicted
that while there was a decline in the number of infant school pupils there was a large
bulge in the junior school population which would affect the secondary sector in
years to come. Similarly, in Carmarthen, in 1929, pressure from the Board of
Education to reduce class sizes identified the same imbalance of numbers.
However, the reduction in child population did have the interesting consequence of
offering a “remarkable increase in opportunity for entry to a Welsh Secondary
Schools.”183
The dual system once again proved a major obstacle to reorganisation
because it was either unable or unwilling to reform. This was due to a number of
complex factors: lack of capital funds and an unwillingness to relinquish schools on
religious grounds. It became clear that any reorganisation of the elementary sector
could only take place with the total co-operation of the non-provided sector, and
even then only with substantial financial support from central and local government.
Although there was a willingness on the part of Government to financially support
the sector, the idea of funding non-provided schools from the rates in return for
representation on the board of Managers remained abhorrent to local authorities,
nonconformist churches and Labour Party affiliated groups despite the fact that, in
Wales especially, attitudes had begun to soften.184
The implementation of the recommendations of the Hadow Report in south
and south west Wales was slow and the Board of Education began to put covert
181 NLW Minor Deposit 701 18th October 1929. 182 GA BMT/1 /49 Merthyr Tydfil Education Committee Minutes 1932. 183 G. E. Jones, (1982), op. cit., p. 172. 184 NLW SD/ED 7-10, Church in Wales Diocesan Education Minutes 1937.
80
pressure on the local authorities. Carmarthenshire LEA was closely questioned
about the accuracy of its reporting and in March 1929 the Board of Education
invoked Circular 1397.185 Returns to the Board had indicated that the establishment
of teachers was insufficient to meet the needs of the schools and enquired what
steps the local authority intended taking to immediately eliminate classes of over
sixty children. The LEA’s response was that the Board had been misinformed about
the number of oversized classes because head teachers had completed the returns
incorrectly. The consequence of this was that head teachers were instructed to
manipulate class sizes so as not to show any classes above fifty.186 In September
the Board of Education again wrote to Carmarthenshire LEA asking when the
authority planned to eliminate classes with over fifty pupils187 and head teachers
were again told to alter the figures on the returns. The matter of class size was very
difficult in many areas. Education Committee Minutes record that in some schools,
classrooms were too small to accommodate two teachers with classes of forty
children each, and in others the total accommodation was not sufficient for the
number of pupils at the school.
In 1931, local authorities began to consider how they would reorganise
elementary education. Carmarthenshire LEA proposed a three year staged process
of reorganisation. The first part of the scheme proposed a reorganisation to provide
primary and secondary schools in the more populous east of the county around
Garnant. In rural areas, elementary education would continue with some schools
providing advanced instruction in higher tops.188 Instruction Centres for practical
subjects would be widely established across both rural and industrial areas to
support the all age elementary schools.189 Even these small changes would entail a
widespread redistribution of head teachers and teachers, and the LEA was doubtful
if the Board of Education would accept the plan as it was expensive “at such a time,
in view of economies adopted by the Government.”190 It proposed, once again, that
the two Part III local authorities of Llanelly and Carmarthen Borough be incorporated
into the County. There was a suggestion that because the population of both
185 NA ED 22/180 Circular 1397 Raising of school leaving age. 186 CAS CC/ED/1/1/16 Education Minutes 1929. 187 CAS CC/ED/1/1/16, ibid., show that there were 6 classes of over 70 children and 31 classes with between
50-60 pupils. 188 At Carway, Gwynfryn, Trimsaran, Five Roads, Mynydd Cerigg, Tumble, Glanamman, Tycroes and
Nantygroes See CAS CC/ED/1/1/18 Education Minutes 12th February, 1931. 189 CAS CC/ED/1/1/18, ibid. 190 CAS CC/ED/1/1/22 Education Committee, 1934.
81
authorities fell below the required levels to be a Part III authority they should both
relinquish their responsibility for education.191 Integration of the three authorities
would mean a much more cost effective system and one which would allow cross
border catchments and easier reorganisation.192 The proposal was not accepted by
either Part III authorities and by 1934 the Carmarthenshire LEA was discussing
whether the Board of Education would contemplate any reorganisation at all in view
of the “economies adopted by Government.”193
There is no evidence that the Diocese of St Davids made any plans for the
reorganisation of their schools in Carmarthenshire, but HMI M.H. Davies put forward
some tentative ideas for non-provided senior education to Carmarthenshire County
Council. He recognised that the siting of any new schools would be critical and took
as an example the area around St Clears. There were six non-provided schools in
the immediate vicinity with an approximate child population of four hundred which
could provide a viable secondary school with the necessary facilities. This idea was
transferred to Llandovery and a number of other areas although some schools would
be very small.194 The proposals were not met with any great enthusiasm by
Carmarthenshire LEA and were not accepted as it planned to delay a complete
reorganisation because of the organisational difficulties it faced. Although
Carmarthenshire established four central schools during the early 1930s, two
hundred and thirty one all-age unreorganised elementary school remained catering
for thirty thousand school children.195
Glamorgan LEA adopted a very proactive approach to the “Centralisation of
Schools”196 and planned a radical reorganisation which included converting the five
new elementary schools under construction into central schools. The curriculum of
central schools would be secondary in nature with a rural, industrial or commercial
bias depending on the location of the school. However, selective secondary
education would be expanded wherever possible. Despite these proposals the
economic situation slowed the reorganisation process considerably and was still
191 The population of Llanelly Urban District was 38,416 with a child population of 6,474. Carmarthen
Borough population was 10,310 with a child population of only 1,494. 192 CAS CC ED/1/1/22 Education Committee Meeting 12th April 1934, p. 3471. 193 CAS CC/ED/1/1/22 ibid. Twenty nine centres were proposed in all. 194NLW SD/ED 7-10 Diocesan Education Minutes Some Notes For Consideration and Discussion on
Reorganisation In Carmarthenshire, M. H. Davies HMI 3rd June 1937. 195 NLW SD/ED 7-10, 3rd June 1937, ibid. 196 GA GC/EDEE/4 Glamorgan Education Committee Minutes, 15th January 1929.
82
underway place in 1939.197 There was no suggestion that voluntary schools were to
be absorbed into the state school system as the Education Committee felt that this
would be “regressive in character.”198
Cardiff LEA was very reluctant to make any changes to provision,199 and
because of this, was put under considerable pressure by the Board of Education. It
was instructed to reduce the cost of elementary education which was considered
excessive compared to other neighbouring local authorities and told the Board
would be prepared to review the question of grant when it received the authority’s
proposals for savings.200 In 1929, in common with other local authorities, Cardiff was
faced with having to reduce class sizes in accordance with Board of Education
Circular 1397 to a maximum of forty at senior level and to fifty at primary level, which
would produce difficulties in the supply of teachers and accommodation across the
city.201 To complicate matters still further, the inconsistency of pupil numbers and
the raising of the school leaving age to fifteen would mean a shortfall in
accommodation of almost two thousand places. In 1929, secondary accommodation
in Cardiff consisted of six secondary schools, one technical school; the Smith Junior
Nautical School and a number of continuation schools. In line with the local
authority’s policy of selective senior education, in February 1930, it decided to erect
two new secondary schools with accommodation for one thousand seven hundred
pupils and to find temporary accommodation for the remainder.202 There does not
appear to have been any intention of establish a central school sector in the city and
as late as 1939 there was only one, at Whitchurch, which was actually under the
management of Glamorgan County Council.
In 1929, Cardiff LEA questioned the wisdom of raising the school leaving age
because, as it had not actually been placed on the statute book, it was not a legal
requirement.203 This attitude prompted the Glamorgan branch of the National Union
of Teachers to put pressure on the Labour administration of 1930 to include a
proposal in their manifesto to make raising of the school leaving age a statutory
197 GA GC/EDEE/7 Glamorgan Education Committee Minutes, 1939. 198 GA GC/EDEE/4 ibid. 199 GA BC/E/1/30 ibid., 10th November 1929. 200 See GA BC/E/5/26 Education Committee Minutes, 1929. 201 GA BC/E/1/30 Cardiff Borough Council Education Minutes, op. cit. 202 GA BC/E/1/30 ibid. 203 ibid., 10th November 1929.
83
obligation “to allay the uncertainty that now exists.”204 The situation in Cardiff
remained almost unchanged until after the Education Act 1944 with the majority of
children attending all-age elementary schools. The large Roman Catholic school
sector in Cardiff found reorganisation difficult but by 1938 had planned to provide
“accommodation for 1,620 children in four new schools”205 at a cost of £56,665.
There is no evidence that the Church in Wales Diocese of Llandaff planned a similar
reorganisation of their schools.
The economy of Merthyr Tydfil Borough Council was badly hit during the
interwar years and this affected its ability to reorganise elementary education. The
crisis began in 1927 as pupil numbers fell dramatically and although the Board of
Education grant remained the same, it was offset by the fact that the reduction in
pupil numbers meant that the cost per pupil rose substantially. The LEA became
very short of money, and although funds did not run out completely, the rise in
teachers’ salaries in 1927 made this a close run thing. No money was available to
maintain buildings, and a further drain on finances was the fact that the local
authority was servicing loans that it had previously used to build new schools.
Conversely, the school leaving age began to rise almost by default, as large
numbers of pupils remained in both elementary and secondary schools beyond the
school leaving age as there was no local employment for juveniles. The fact that
education in Merthyr was free and the local authority provided meals, milk and
medical services was very beneficial to children whose parents were unemployed
or on low wages. This situation continued throughout the 1930s and in 1938 a large
percentage of children over fourteen years of age remained at school. The Juvenile
Committee of the local authority actively sought work for children both locally and
further afield and representatives from the Hornsey and District SOS Committee for
Merthyr visited the schools to encourage school leavers to consider working in the
London Boroughs. In spite of the difficult financial situation, welfare schemes for
children continued and reorganisation took place slowly.206
Although Rhondda Urban District Council had suffered badly during the
depression years it had established a reputation for providing high levels of free
secondary education and was ready to reorganise all its elementary schools. Its
204 GA UDR/E/1/13 Rhondda UD Education Committee Minutes, April 1930. 205 Catholic Herald, 12th August 1938. 206 GRO. B/MTE/1/1/11, Merthyr Tydfil Borough Council Education Minutes, 1938-1939.
84
communications with the Board of Education suggest that it was prepared to raise
a loan to facilitate the construction of new schools as these would be essential. The
Rhondda Education Minutes207 reflect the difficulties involved and show that a
number of head teachers would have to be made redundant or their salaries
reduced when schools were downgraded during reorganisation. Despite this, in a
letter to Rhondda Education Committee, the National Union of Teachers expressed
their concerns that any reorganisation would not be radical enough. It pointed out
that there was a danger in opening new schools that “perpetuated the existing
secondary school type, and holds that this tendency is contrary in spirit and intention
of the Hadow Report.”208 The letter also suggested that the curriculum planned for
any new schools should be broad and flexible espcially as it would be largely
experimental in character.209
In south and south west Wales elementary education remained largely
untouched by reorganisation. The Report of the Committee of Inquiry into the Anti-
Tuberculosis Service in Wales voiced concern for the health of the children who
spent large parts of their lives at rural schools. It commented that parents and local
authorities were too ready to accept poor, unhygienic conditions and especially
“primitive and most objectionable sanitary arrangements.”210 The report also points
to the fact that, although HMI frequently condemned the condition of school
buildings, their recommendations were ignored by the Board of Education and the
local authorities.211 The long term effect of poor school accommodation, poor diet
and lack of the provision of school meals was perceived as very injurious to the
health of the school child.
Education: National policy and direction before 1936
In 1929 with the return of a Labour administration, Sir Charles Trevelyan,
President of the Board of Education, was assured that he would be able to realise
Labour’s election manifesto pledge of raising the school leaving.212 This had been
central in its policy statement Labour and the Nation which had been committed to
207 TRL Rhondda UDC Minute Books, 1926-1939. 208 GA UDR/E/1/13 op. cit. 209 GA UDR/E/1/13 ibid. 210The Report of the Committee of Inquiry into the Anti-Tuberculosis Service in Wales and Monmouthshire
(HMSO: London, 1939), p. 191 211 ibid., p 191. 212 B. Simon, (1974) op. cit., p. 153.
85
“equal educational opportunity for every child.”213 Trevelyan was aware that the
recommendations of the Consultative Committee were not being used effectively214
and were certainly not totally in accord with Labour’s thinking. The secretary215 of
the Labour Education Advisory Committee suggested that Trevelyan consider a
draft document: ‘A unified system of post primary education’ in an effort to bring
Board of Education policy into line with that of the Labour party. The document was
highly controversial and included a common code for secondary education. It was
not well received and Maurice Holmes pointed out that if any form of common
scheme was established there would be a consequential loss of income to the direct
grant and endowed sector. This might mean that they would choose to leave the
state sector which would be damaging to the reputation of the Board. He also
pointed out that this would be contrary to the Hadow scheme, which suggested that
there should be different types of secondary schools “’to suit the varying capacity of
pupils and their varying after careers’ – more a Board principle as stated, perhaps,
than the Hadow philosophy.”216 There was a general consideration at the Board of
Education that the “proposals were ‘dangerous’.”217 Additionally, the minority Labour
administration of 1929 had more important issues to deal with than education.
Unemployment and depression were at a record high and overshadowed any other
matter, especially as Ramsey MacDonald was implacably opposed to raising the
school leaving age, believing that it would cause dissension across the political
spectrum. There was a high degree of negativity from the Chancellor218 about any
extra spending on education.219 In spite of this many Labour party members wanted
radical action but were warned in no uncertain terms that some sections of the party,
employers in particular, would not countenance the removal of cheap labour from
the work place.220
The idea of a common school was not new and was becoming widely used
in the United States of America,221 and there were similar and growing demands for
213 B. Simon, (1974) op. cit., p. 154. 214 ibid. p 154. 215 Barbara Drake, secretary to the Labour Education Advisory Committee and niece of Beatrice Webb. 216 NA ED 24/1651 in B. Simon, (1974) ibid., p. 155. 217 ibid., p. 155. 218 Philip Snowden, Member of Parliament or Colne Valley. 219 B. Simon, (1974), ibid., p. 154. 220 R. Barker, (1972) op. cit., pp. 58 – 59, 221 D. Rubenstein and B. Simon, The Evolution of the Comprehensive School 1926-1972 (Routledge and
Kegan Paul: 1973), p. 4.
86
equality in secondary education in Germany and France.222 There were also
elements of this thinking in the Bryce Commission Report which was critical of the
parallel system of elementary and secondary schools.223 It recommended that “All
children should be educated together ‘and thus enjoy in their youth common
interests and pursuits as the children of one country’.”224 In 1925, the Association of
Assistant Masters225 and the National Association of Labour Teachers226 both
suggested that a common secondary sector would remove social class barriers and
meet the many different needs of a school population. In 1934, the Trades Union
Congress presented evidence to the Consultative Committee of the Board of
Education227 in support of multilateral schools, a proposal which may have been
influenced by Welsh members who had had experience of attempts at
reorganisation in rural areas. Morgan Jones228 had argued the case for multilateral
schools in Wales for many years229 and in 1939, William Cove,230 reflecting on the
Spens Report, suggested that they would be a “microcosm of real democracy.”231
The 1936 Education Act
By the middle of the 1930s there was renewed agitation for a complete reform
of elementary education. The social observations of Caradog Jones232 and others233
acknowledged the poverty that existed in sections of the community and the lack of
opportunity for advancement within the education system. Other research234
identified that, because of the low quota of free secondary school places allowed by
the Board of Education, there was little chance of elementary school children gaining
a place. As a result: “the relation between ability and opportunity was low indeed”235
which resulted in a lack of an educated skill base and this was perceived as
222 Through the Einheitschule in Germany; the École Unique in France. D. Rubenstein and B. Simon op. cit. 223 Royal commission on secondary education, 1895 (Cmd 7862) (Bryce Commission). 224 Unreferenced in B. Simon, (1965) op. cit. in D. Rubenstein and B. Simon, (1973) ibid., p. 126. 225 The A.M.A. Journal of the Incorporated Association of Assistant Masters January 1925, ibid., p. 15 226 Education: A Policy. (National Association of Labour Teachers: 1930) in R. Barker, op. cit., p. 66 227 TUC Memorandum of Evidence to the Consultative Committee of the Board of Education, Trades Union
Congress Annual Report 1934, pp. 144-5 in R. Barker, ibid., p. 70. 228 Member of Parliament for Caerphilly, and Parliamentary Secretary to the Board of Education. 229 PP. Hansard, HC 17th June 1935. 230 Labour member of Parliament for Aberavon. 231 PP. Hansard HC 15th February 1939 in R. Barker, op. cit., p. 73. 232 D. Caradog Jones ed, The Social Survey of Merseyside Vol 1 (UPL, Hodder and Stoughton Ltd: 1934). 233For example J. Hanley, Grey Children (Methuen: London, 1937).; J. Boyd Orr, Food Health and Income
(Macmillan: London, 1936). 234 By the London School of Economics and published J. L. Grey and Pearl Moshinsky, Sociological Review,
Vol XXVII, No 5: (1935) quoted in B. Simon, (1974) op. cit., p. 254. 235 B. Simon, (1974), ibid., p. 254.
87
damaging to the future prosperity of Great Britain. There was also a growing
perception that the secondary sector overall was not providing the leadership or a
high level of technological skills which were required in a rapidly changing world. It
was clear that this situation had to change.
The British economy had begun to stabilise slowly, and by 1935 “national
income was up by as much as £386 million.”236 There was a growing feeling that
there was no longer a need to impose severe financial restrictions on education
unless it was with “a fixed intention to confine working-class children to a minimum
of elementary schooling under predominantly bad conditions.”237 The reluctance to
spend on education had been ongoing and in fact Ernest Evans238 noted in a debate
that the only time that education was discussed in the House was when estimates
were being discussed and even then these were “very limited in their scope.”239
Progress had been at a standstill for years and an article in Education240 pointed out
that “it is certain that the thumb-print of the Treasury is to be found on every page
of every regulation issued by the Board of Education during the last four years.”241
While there had been some reorganisation of elementary education in
England and Wales this had not always been in the best way. For example many
nursery and infant schools had been combined with junior departments to save
money and this was not in the interests of younger children.242 However, in Wales,
the number of schools on the Board of Education’s blacklist had almost halved243
and new schools were being built, despite the fact that pupil numbers were dropping
significantly.244 The demand for secondary education was high and in 1936 over
twenty two percent of children attended secondary schools in Wales, double the
figure in England.245 Most Welsh secondary education was either completely or
partially free of charge246 and local authorities had won the battle with the Board of
Education over this part of grant funding. The reputation of secondary schools
236 B. Simon, (1974) op. cit., p 197. 237 ibid., p 226. 238 Member of Parliament for Cardiganshire and later the University of Wales. 239 Hansard HC 17th June 1935 Vol 303 Column 90. 240 Education 14th June 1935. 241 Hansard HC ibid. 242 Hansard HC ibid. 243 Education in 1935 being the report of the Board of Education and the statistics of public education for
England and Wales., 1935-36 (Cmd. 5290). 244 In Wales there was a 3 percent fall in pupil numbers in 1935 and 4 percent in 1936. 245 B. Simon, (1974) ibid., See Table 4, p. 365. 246 This equated to 77.9 per cent of the secondary school population. 1935-36 (Cmd. 5290) ibid.
88
remained very high and there remained a consensus that central schools provided
an inferior education. Morgan Jones pointed out that, in his view, there were two
types of child: one academically minded the other vocationally inclined and the best
way to cater for both kinds of children would be in a “multi-bias school.”247
The discussion at Cabinet about the whole issue of education reform
acknowledged that there was “some measure of discontent in some quarters as
regards the Government’s educational policy”248 and an awareness that the Hadow
Report recommendations had not been as influential as had been hoped. It was
recognised that the next step forward was to raise the school leaving age and after
meetings between Government and the School Leaving Age Council it was agreed
to widen the discussion to all interested groups. The problems of funding non-
provided sector reorganisation emerged once again and “it had been made
abundantly clear that, unless they could be assisted by a building grant, the
denominations would not be able to play their proper part.”249 Government were very
reluctant to increase the grant as there was a feeling that if the non-provided sector
were more liberally funded it would make further financial demands after the school
leaving age had been raised. The President to the Board of Education,250 put
forward four possible suggestions for inclusion in future legislation. The first was to
raise the school leaving age to fifteen without exemptions for employment and with
maintenance allowance, and the second proposed raising the school leaving age to
sixteen with exemptions and no maintenance. This would revive the earlier Labour
Party idea of removing low paid juveniles from the workforce at a time of continuing
high unemployment. The last two returned to the proposals of the 1918 Education
Act and included continuation schools but these were discarded as being
impracticable. There were also major difficulties involved with implementing the first
two. Even if accepted, the ‘appointed day’ for raising the school leaving age would
have to be delayed until 1939 or 1940 to allow the local authorities to prepare.
Additionally, the costs were considerable, in excess of £2.5 million a year, much of
which would fall on council rate. The question of allowances was greeted with
hostility by Government supporters, as was removing the exemption clause. There
247 PP Hansard 17th June, 1935 ibid. 248 NA Cabinet Memorandum. Educational Policy Committee 2nd Report. Memorandum by the President of
the Board of Education, 15th July 1935 p. 39. 249NA Cabinet Memorandum. Educational Policy Committee, op. cit., p. 40. 250Oliver Stanley, Conservative Member of Parliament for Westmorland serving in the National Government.
89
was general agreement that many parents would not accept the fact that children
were being denied employment at fourteen years of age.
The Cabinet, after lengthy discussion, agreed that the proposal to raise the
school leaving age with exemptions for employment should be included in the
election manifesto.251 This was not met with unanimous approval even within
Cabinet. The Chancellor of the Exchequer reserved the right to intervene both on
the question of financing the scheme and the date for implementation as there were
beginning to be competing claims on resources from other departments. The Prime
Minister, Ramsey MacDonald,252 reluctantly agreed that the Board of Education
should consult on the matter. There were lengthy discussions between the
interested groups which were both damaging and delaying as the agricultural
industry and the Federation of Master Cotton Spinners’ Association were
vociferously opposed to any changes in legislation. In spite of these difficulties, by
1936 there was an intention to introduce a new Education Act that would raise the
school leaving age to fifteen. There would however be an exemption clause for
‘beneficial employment’ and this drew widespread criticism since, at the time, cheap
juvenile labour was in high demand. The 1936 Education Act was therefore
generally regarded “as a con.”253
The Education Act 1936 had few recommendations that would improve the
elementary sector and it remained very much below the standard of secondary
education.254 Although there was increased grant aid to enable the building of new
school accommodation this was to be delayed for three years and the appointed
day for raising the school leaving age was to be 1st September 1939. By 1938, even
the inadequate measures included in the Act began to be considered too expensive,
and there was discussion in Government as to whether the appointed day for should
be postponed. In the event the declaration of war on 1st September 1939 pre-empted
that decision.
251 NA Cabinet 38 (55) Conclusions of a Meeting of the Cabinet 18th July 1935. 252 Member of Parliament for Seaham, County Durham 253B. Simon, Education and Social Order 1940-1990 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1991), p. 28. 254 By 1938, only 63.5 per cent of all children over eleven years of age were in reorganised ‘modern’
schools’. C .L. Mowat, (1968) op.cit
90
The Spens Report
In 1933, contiguous with the demands for change in elementary education,
the Consultative Committee of the Board of Education under the chairmanship of
Will Spens255 was tasked with investigating the organisation and curriculum of the
secondary sector.256 Its most important role, however, was “to press for the
rationalization of a school system riddled with contradictions.”257 The matter of
secondary education remained largely unresolved and local authorities had
established a variety of schools interpreting education legislation as they saw fit.
Although the “Hadowism and its elaboration to classical tripartism”258 of the 1920s
remained, there was a growing agitation for a consideration of multilateralism. This
had been on the educational agenda for many years and the Trades and Labour
Councils pointed out that differentiation should only be on educational grounds “and
not social, marking merely different grades of social rank.”259 Agitation for change
had continued through the 1920s and the Trades Union Council made repeated
demands for a review of equality in education. This was to be revisited in the Spens
Report.
The nineteen members of the Spens Committee came from very varied
backgrounds and from this membership a number of sub-committees were
selected.260 One of the most important of these was the ‘code committee’261 which
dealt with the mass of evidence produced by witnesses and most particularly what
effect the Hadow Report, The Education of the Adolescent, had had on secondary
sector reorganisation. The Committee examined a number of issues and the
classical curriculum was central to these. This had gradually evolved into a “general
liberal curriculum, which was vaguely conceived as affording a preparation for the
255 Vice Chancellor of Cambridge University. 256 Report of the Consultative Committee on Secondary Education with Special Reference to Grammar
Schools and Technical High Schools (HMSO; London, 1938) (Spens Report), p. iv. 257 J. Simon, The Shaping of the Spens Report on Secondary Education 1933-38 An Inside View Part I.
British Journal of Educational Studies, Vol 25, No 1: (1977) 63 – 80, p. 64. 258 M. Hyndman, Multilateralism and the Spens Report: Evidence from the Archives. British Journal of
Educational Studies, Vol 24: (1976), 242-253, p. 243. 259 D. Rubenstein and B. Simon, (1973), op. cit. p. 5. 260 Membership included Lady Sheena Simon, Member of Manchester Education Committee; William
Brockington, member of the Burnham Committee and Director of Education for Leicestershire; T. J. Rees,
Director of Education, Swansea Borough Council; Rev Professor Joseph Jones, Moderator of the Free
Church Council, member of Breconshire County Council and the Federation of Education Committees;
Doctor Dorothy Brock, head teacher of the Mary Datchelor School. 261 J. Simon, op. cit., p. 65.
91
liberal professions.”262 Clearly this was not a suitable preparation for employment
for children who left school at fifteen or sixteen years of age. The situation had led
to demands for a different curriculum that would include technical and vocational
elements taught, perhaps, in a multilateral school. There was considerable support
for this, particularly from some sectors of the teaching profession who saw it as a
means of stopping segregation at eleven years of age. The Consultative Committee
recognised that the tripartism of the Hadow Report was not unconditionally
accepted, and re-examined the idea of a multilateral secondary sector. The Spens
Report stressed in its introduction, that the Hadow Report never actually ruled out
multilateral schools but rather recommended grammar and modern schools
because there almost no experience of a multilateral system. However, it was under
a “moral obligation at least to consider in its reports the merits of a multilateral form
of secondary education.”263Evidence to the Committee indicated that there were
considerable differences of opinion about multilateral schools.264
The Association of Headmistresses, the Association of Headmasters and the
Welsh Secondary Schools Association presented a variety of arguments against
segregation at eleven years of age and were strongly in favour of multilateral
schools. Other teachers’ unions were divided in their opinions and those working in
central or technical schools were adamantly opposed as they might be personally
affected in any reorganisation. While English local authorities and HMI wanted to
retain a tripartite system, Welsh local authorities were very enthusiastic about
multilateralism. They, like the members of the Welsh Secondary Schools
Association, saw it as an answer to the many organisational problems in Wales.
However, influential groups such as the Association of Directors and Secretaries for
Education were ambivalent. Although they agreed with the idea of increased parity,
they could not countenance multilateral schools mainly because there was a strong
argument that the curriculum and traditions of the grammar school “under heavy
criticism as it was”265 would overpower any new innovation in education.
In spite of the strength of support for multilateralism, the Consultative
Committee finally decided that all post primary schools should continue to follow the
262 Report of the Consultative Committee on Secondary Education op. cit., p. 350. 263 M. Hyndman, (1976), op. cit., p. 243. 264 M. Hyndman, ibid., gives considerable detail of the opinions of various educational groups. 265 J. Simon, (1977) op.cit. p. 71.
92
tripartite system. The only exception to this could be in rural areas where the child
population was small and a multilateral school might be considered. The
Consultative Committee relied heavily on the evidence provided by their earlier
report Psychological Tests of Educable Capacity266 when they made their decision.
This had pointed out that it was possible to predict children’s general intelligence
from an early age and “if justice is to be done to their varying capacities, require
types of education varying in certain important respects.”267 This was strongly linked
to curricular differentiation and the need to provide appropriately for each group of
children. However, the Report did note that the classical curriculum of secondary
schools, reinforced by an examination system, had not taken into account the
growing educational demands for technical education.268 This was in contrast to the
curriculum of the elementary sector where reorganisation had taken place and LEAs
had been able to introduce curricula “of high educative value on non-academic lines
with a certain bearing, more or less direct, on industry, commerce, and
agriculture.”269 The Report concluded that the secondary curriculum should be
broadened and “thought of in terms of activity and experience rather than of
knowledge to be acquired and facts to be stored.”270
The Board of Education was unenthusiastic about these conclusions.
Maurice Holmes wrote in the preface of the Spens Report that the Consultative
Committee had had to deal with a very complex subject and if the recommendations
were accepted it would involve considerable change. The suggestions to make all
secondary education free was firmly discounted and the equalisation of ‘modern’
schools with other types of secondary education was considered too expensive and
would disturb the arrangements for the existing prestigious grammar school
sector.271 The recommendation of the Spens Report aroused little interest outside
the world of education. The Times reviewed it unenthusiastically, especially as it
suggested fundamental educational change during a period of national uncertainty.
There was however, an acknowledgment that while the world had moved on,
education had stood still.272 The recommendations were generally welcomed by the
266 Psychological Tests of Educable Capacity, (HMSO, 1924.) 267 Report of The Consultative Committee, (1938) (Spens), pp. 123-25, quoted in D. Rubenstein and B.
Simon, op. cit., p. 17. 268 Report of The Consultative Committee, (1938) ibid., p. 350. 269 Report of The Consultative Committee, op. cit., p. 352. 270 ibid., p. 363. 271 B. Simon, (1974), op. cit., p. 267. 272‘The Right Schooling’ The Times Dec 30 1938.
93
Labour Party which was keen to bring all secondary schools under one umbrella. In
contrast, the Trades Union Congress soon realised that, although the Report
advocated raising the school leaving age, the three types of schools it promoted
would continue to segregate children at eleven years of age and this would not
increase parity in education or equality in later life.273 It strongly advocated
multilateralism as the only way forward.
In February 1939, in a debate that called for better technical and vocational
education the divisions in educational philosophy between the political parties
emerged. Annesley Somerville274 suggested that the local authorities should be
consulted urgently to determine how the recommendations of the Report could be
included in their plans. He suggested that the Board look to the example of rural
endowed grammar and independent schools which were developing more diverse
curricula and suggested that some of these ideas could be transferred into the state
sector. William Cove responded that Somerville had spoken “in the spirit of
enlightened Toryism and he did it in such a way as to safeguard what I might call
the historic preserves of the Tory party.”275 He suggested that the Consultative
Committee had ultimately turned away from multilateral schools because they were
“a microcosm of real democracy,”276 and as a result they had to find a compromise
solution. Cove noted the contradictions in the report. He referred to the fact that the
Report suggested that the number attending grammar secondary schools should be
only fifteen percent of the total child population and recommended a levelling of
places throughout England and Wales. This would mean that the number attending
secondary schools in Wales would be drastically cut:
“Let them try it on in Wales. Let any Government try the levelling down of our secondary places in Wales, and they will find the popular front stronger than they have ever seen it in this country.”277
The outbreak of war meant that the proposals of the Spens Report were shelved
along with the 1936 Education Act only to emerge as the central plank of the
Education Act 1944.
273 TUC Minutes, unreferenced in B. Simon, (1974) op. cit., p. 266. 274 Conservative Member of Parliament for Windsor and a former master at Eton College. 275 Hansard, HC 2nd February 1939, ibid. 276 ibid. 277 Hansard, HC 2nd February 1939 op. cit.
94
Conclusions
The inter war period was one full of the promise for education. The
sacrifices made by the people during the First World War had led them to believe
that there would be a better life and standard of living at its end and the Education
Act 1918 offered some promise of this. There would be reform and greater access
for elementary school children to a new central school secondary sector which, it
was hoped, would offered greater parity of opportunity. Unfortunately this was not
to be and for education the interwar period was generally one of stagnation.
Although the Education Act 1918 offered a huge opportunity for reorganisation
economic circumstances conspired to delay progress. During the interwar period
education was subject to continual austerity measures from the Geddes, May and
Ray committee which delayed development and had a devastating effect on many
aspects of the service. It is clear that the cuts made to education finance reflected
the low priority placed on it by Government and this, together with the social and
political obstacles put in the way of reform confirmed the way education, and
especially the elementary sector, was regarded. Throughout the period, the Board
of Education made every effort to protect the prestigious secondary sector from the
worst effects of the economic downturn to ensure that it remained intact and
unaffected. The result of the economic downturn in England and Wales was that the
reorganisation of the elementary sector proposed in the Education Act 1918 and the
later Education of the Adolescent were seriously delayed in most areas and it
remained a poor provision for the majority of children.
This was especially the case in south and south west Wales where structural
unemployment had devastated the economy. Most LEAs planned to make some
changes after the Act but these were frequently thwarted by extrinsic factors that
prevented implementation. The HMI Reports for south and south west Wales show
a dismal picture of elementary education with poor standards, inadequate facilities
and poor trained teachers. This situation was further complicated by the large
numbers of non-provided schools which added to the problems of reorganisation
after both the Education Act 1918 and the publication of the Hadow Report in 1927.
The LEAs found it almost impossible to reform the elementary sector without full
control of all schools because there were insufficient pupil numbers to organise
viable primary and secondary sectors. Similarly neither the Church in Wales nor the
95
Roman Catholic church had the funds or pupil numbers to reorganise effectively.
Planning for reorganisation was also badly effected by the demographic shift in
population caused by unemployment and this had the additional effect of greatly
reducing rate income. In contrast, the secondary sector continued to flourish and
expand as far as the economic situation of the period would allow. Although the
sector in south and south west Wales remained selective it was mostly free to all
pupils and this remained the case despite strong opposition from the Board of
Education. LEAs came under enormous pressure to change their policies but they
resisted this throughout the period. In much the same way some, like Merthyr Tydfil,
offered children free meals and healthcare during the depression years which
helped unemployed parents significantly.
Although the economic circumstances of the period were significant it
becomes clear that the differences in political philosophy about education was
undoubtedly a major factor for the delays to the reorganisation of the elementary
sector. The Conservative party clung to its philosophy of laissez faire, the prestige
of the endowed and independent sectors and its determination to retain the sub-
sets of education. Labour presented a far more ambiguous position. In general
terms it sought parity and equality of opportunity through better provision, and
championed the idea of bilateral or comprehensive schools. However, it also
showed a strong inclination to retain the prestigious grammar schools clearly
indicated in Tawney’s Labour party policy document. These different political
standpoints accompanied the increasing power of the Labour party at a local level
in south and south west Wales and it becomes clear from primary sources that
Labour controlled local authorities were far more likely to implement progressive
education change than were Conservative run authorities.
While the influence of the Board of Education was considerable it lacked the
statutory powers to enforce change, and as a result it covertly used the influences
of the Reports of the Consultative Committee to try to do this. Certainly these
prefaced legislation and established a purposeful ideal for future proposals. It has
also been suggested that the Reports published during the period were manipulated
by the political parties in ways which best suited their educational ideas and
philosophy. The legislation of the period although designed to substantially improve
elementary education failed because it was intrinsically inadequate and allowed
96
local authorities to prevaricate over implementation. Consequently, for education,
the dismal interwar years were “A period of lost opportunity, a period of effective
enquiry followed by ineffective action, a period of singular sterility.”278
278Sir Percy Watkin. Permanent Secretary of the Welsh Department of the Board of Education in J. A. Davies
Education in a Welsh rural County. 1870-1973 (UWP: Cardiff, 1973), p. 186.
97
Chapter 4 Evacuation 1939 – 1945 “That social cyclone, the second world war, not only destroyed homes; it also swept millions of children from the school environment in which they were being taught.”1
This chapter examines the effects that the Second World War had on
education in England and Wales. The Second World War came at the end of a very
problematic time in the history of education as the austerity measures of the interwar
years had been at odds with the planned reforms. Elementary education remained
in an uneasy middle ground, hindered on one hand by the prestigious secondary
schools, and the difficulties of reorganisation on the other. During the five years from
1939 to 1945 over a million children were evacuated or displaced in some way and
their education suffered accordingly. This important period in education history is
often overlooked despite the fact that evacuation has long been considered by some
historians as one of the most influential factors in the drive towards post-war social
reconstruction. This has been a matter for debate but it is certainly true that
education came under close scrutiny during the war time period and there were
continuing demands from the Labour Party, teachers’ unions and other
organisations for reform. Evacuation revealed, in particular the state of elementary
education, and it became evident that changes would need to be made.
Planning for Evacuation
The bombing of London during the First World War had altered official
perceptions about how a future armed conflict would affect the civilian population.2
As a result, in 1925 a decision was made that, in the event of another war, “les
bouche inutiles”3 should be evacuated from London and other large metropolitan
areas. It has been suggested4 that these plans arose principally out of an
understanding of how difficult it would be to protect schools from aerial
bombardment as the provision of suitable Air Raid Precautions5 in schools would be
1 T. Brosse, War Handicapped Children, Report on the European Situation (Publication No 439 of the
United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization: Paris, 1950). 2 See N. Hanson, First Blitz (Transworld Publishers: London, 2009) for an account of the bombing of London
and particularly the destruction of Upper North Street School, Poplar in which a number of children were
killed pp. 134-136. This incident did much to raise concern over the welfare of children in the event of
another war. 3NA CAB/24/175 Report of the Sub Committee of the Committee of Imperial Defence 29th Oct, 1925, p. 13
and translated as ‘unproductive useless mouths’. 4 G.A.N. Lowndes, The Silent Social Revolution (OUP: Oxford, 1969). 5 From now on abbreviated to ARP.
98
both difficult and expensive. It was agreed6 that the easiest solution would be to
completely abandon the education service in vulnerable areas and evacuate all at-
risk groups.7 This would have the added advantage of lessening demands on local
services; allow school buildings to be used for other purposes and release education
staff for war work.
Planning for ARP and evacuation began in secret, and this lack of inter
departmental discussion led to later problems. Lowndes suggests that it was
inexplicable, although he points out that there was a perception that the British
public would not accept the idea of another war. Certainly, he believed that the
frightening scenario being depicted by the Air Ministry and other government
departments would have dented public confidence had details been released.
Lowndes felt that the estimates of bombing and consequential damage were
exaggerated, and had the information produced by the bombardment of Barcelona
during the Spanish Civil War been used by government, much of the huge
disorganization that followed would have been avoided.8 Added to this was the
widespread pacifism present in British society which was at its height in 1935. This
was supported by both non-conformists9 and Anglicans10 and reinforced by popular
fiction.11 A number of different movements were established to support peace12 and
the Labour Party had a deep, though muddled, commitment to peace and
internationalism.”13 Similarly, the Welsh Nationalist Party had strongly pacifist views
which could be traced back to the First World War and continued after 1939.14
6 NA CAB/24/175 op. cit. 7 These included unaccompanied school children, the elderly, mothers with young children and the
handicapped and disabled. The reasons for the evacuation of vulnerable groups have been well documented
and are of no immediate interest to this research. See R. M. Titmuss, Problems of Social Policy (HMSO:
London, 1950); N. Gärtner, Administrating ‘Operation Pied Piper’ - how the London Council prepared for
the evacuation of its schoolchildren 1938-1939. Journal of Educational Administration and History, 42, 1:
(2010) 17-32; M. L. Parsons, “I’ll Take That One” Dispelling the Myths of Civilian Evacuation 1939-1945
(Beckett Karlson: Peterborough, 1998). 8 G.A.N Lowndes, (1969) op. cit., pp. 192-194. 9 R. Pope, Building Jerusalem: non-conformity, Labour and the social question in Wales, 1906-1939 second
edn (UWP: Cardiff, 1998) p. 165. 10 S. Parker, ‘Blessed are the Pacifists’: E. W. Barnes of Birmingham and Pacifism 1914 -45. Midland
History, Vol. 34 No 2: (2009) 204-219. 11C. L. Mowat, Britain Between The Wars (Methuen: London, 1968) p. 537. 12 Peace Pledge Union established in 1936 by Canon Sheppard; Anglican Pacifist Fellowship established in
1937 for example. 13 A. Marwick, Britain in the Century of Total War. War Peace and Social Change 1900-1967 (Penguin:
Harmondsworth, 1970) p. 103. 14 D. H. Davies, The Welsh Nationalist Party 1925-1945 A Call to Nationhood (UWP: Cardiff, 1983) pp 112-
114.
99
The Evacuation Scheme was overseen by the Ministry of Health which, in turn,
handed the responsibility to local councils, some very small “with a solicitor as part-
time clerk, a typist and an office boy or two”15 which would not have had experience
of critical organisational tasks. Billeting, the central issue in evacuation, was further
devolved to the Housing Departments of local authorities. By 1938, planning for this
logistically complicated operation was still incomplete, a fact attributed to a lack of
information about shelter provision, without which, little progress could be made.16
Gosden suggests that many of the criticisms of the evacuation scheme would have
been avoided had the Board of Education been in charge of arrangements as
“They would clearly have entrusted preparations to the LEAs instead of the Housing Authorities, many of which were too small and inadequately staffed to deal with a problem concerned primarily with children.”17
Although it was clear that the Government was planning for a lengthy war18 little
consideration was given to the effect that this might have on education and neither
the Air Raid Precautions Act, 1937 nor the Civil Defence Act, 193919 made any direct
reference to schools. The Ministry of Civil Defence initially refused to pay for air raid
shelters in schools,20 and the direct result of this was the decision to evacuate. The
relationship between these two was critical because unless the provision of suitable
air-raid protection could guarantee the safety of school children then evacuation was
the only, and preferred, option.21 As a result a decision was made in early 1939, that
in the event of the outbreak of war all schools in evacuating areas would close
immediately and all education provision would cease.22 There is no evidence that
any use was made of the experiences of evacuation gained during the Spanish Civil
War and “the Anderson Committee made no reference to or sought the advice from
the members of the community who had actually been involved in the evacuation
scheme in Cambridge.”23 This earlier evacuation had coloured public perception to
15 R. M. Titmuss, (1950) op. cit. p. 144. 16 PP. Hansard House of Commons, 14th April and 28th April, 1938, Vol 334, col, 1296 and vol 335, 17 G.A.N. Lowndes, (1969) op.cit. p. 205. 18NA ED 136/112, Long term policy: evacuation arrangements. Question of compulsory evacuation,
compulsory registration of school children in the special evacuation towns. 19 Civil Defence Act 1939 2 & 3 Geo 6 Ch 31 20 Hansard HC 8th March, 1940, Vol. 358, Col. 733. 21 Later in the war the Board of Education did begin to pay for ARP in schools but only after a number of
children and teachers had been killed. See P.H.J.H. Gosden, Education in the Second World War (Methuen:
London, 1976). 22 LMA EO/WAR/37 Board of Education, Air Raid Precautions in Schools, Circular 1467, 27th April 1939. 23 M. L. Parsons, (1998), op. cit., p 12.
100
the British evacuation, provoked antipathy towards evacuees and drew objections
from landlords about housing evacuees in their property.
The initial planning for evacuation divided England24 into three: neutral,25
reception and evacuation areas.26 During this early phase Wales, in its entirety, and
some of the English counties27 were excluded as reception areas, but by 1939 all
were included in the Scheme. This classification of areas caused considerable
discussion and
“Two hundred local authorities in England and Wales28 graded as reception asked to be ranked as neutral and another sixty wanted to be scheduled for evacuation. It is significant … no authority asked to be a reception area.”29
Llanelly Borough Council, for example, wrote to the Ministry of Health in 1940
making representation that its status as a reception areas should be reclassified
because of its industrial activities.30 The response from the Ministry was “that it is
not possible to make piecemeal alterations while the present evacuation
arrangements are being prepared and that the Council’s representation would be
considered.”31
In August 1939, Neville Chamberlain issued a statement confirming the
urgency of evacuation as a sudden attack from the air was expected. The main
concern was that it would be impossible to evacuate large numbers of mothers and
children once hostilities had begun.32 Local authorities were warned that they would
24 Scotland and Northern Ireland had their own and different evacuations plans 25 Some urban areas such as Cardiff, Swansea, Bristol, Nottingham and Plymouth were designated as neutral,
classified as not suitable as reception areas but not considered to be targets for bombing attacks
26London, Newcastle, Gateshead, Leeds, Bradford, Sheffield, Hull, Liverpool, Manchester, Salford and
Birmingham. See Report on Committee of Evacuation with a covering memorandum by the secretary of state
for the Home Department 1937-1938 (Cmd 5837).
27 The English counties that were excluded were Cornwall, Devon, Somerset, Dorset, Suffolk, Norfolk,
Cambridgeshire, Leicestershire, Nottinghamshire, Shropshire and Herefordshire. 1937-1938, (Cmd 5837)
Appendix C, ibid., p. 42.
28 Scotland and Ireland both had separate evacuation plans 29 R. M. Titmuss (1950) op.cit., p 32. 30CAS AC 446/34 Llanelly Borough Council Committee Minutes. 1940 Meeting 1st April 1940. Burry Port
and Kidwelly local authorities were also asked to join this action. School log books from Llanelly report that
there had been numerous small tip ad run bombing raids in the area by this time although these incidents are
not mentioned in the Committee Minutes. See also Hansard, HC 25 May, 1939, Vol 347, Col 2488-90, for a
discussion about the status of Llanelly. 31 CAS AC 446/34 ibid. 32 NA ED 136 /112 op. cit., Secret Statement – Evacuation, Neville Chamberlain, 25th August, 1939.
101
be expected to put the evacuation plan into action at short notice,33 and a BBC
broadcast announced that all schools in evacuating areas would be opened to
explain the procedures to children.34 On 1st September 1939, evacuation began.
The logistics of the scheme was very simple and it was this simplicity that was
caused so many of the later problems. The idea of putting large groups of evacuees
on mainline trains and accommodating them en route was logistically astute but
failed in that it did not take into account of “the makeshift measures in the evacuation
areas where facilities were barely adequate for the local population.”35 The other
criteria used was the level of accommodation in reception areas estimated on
surveys undertaken by the Housing Departments.36 These were often inaccurate
and led to some evacuees being placed in squalid or dangerous billets.37. Although
little is known about the quality of accommodation in south and south west Wales,
The Report of the Committee of Inquiry into the Anti-Tuberculosis Service in Wales
and Monmouthshire38 clearly records the unacceptable condition of housing in many
reception areas. While rural areas came in for particular criticism there was
considerable overcrowding in industrial towns and often “The conditions are sad in
the extreme … evidence of great poverty … a great many of houses are quite unfit
for human habitation.”39
The difficulty in finding suitable and sufficient accommodation for evacuees was
compounded by misinformation from the Ministry of Health about the numbers
planned for reception areas. For example, in 1939, the Western Mail40 reported that
that although a large number of evacuees from London and Birmingham were
expected, few actually arrived.41 This kind of confusion was a common occurrence
33 NA ED 136 /112 op.cit., copy of a confidential letter issued on 30th August 1939 to all evacuating and
receiving local authorities. 34 ibid., copy of Broadcast Instruction, issued on Saturday, 26th August, 1939. 35 N. Middleton and S Weitzman, A Place for Everyone, A history of education from the eighteenth century to
the 1970s (Gollancz: London, 1978) p. 203. 36 This was generally undertaken by teachers, health visitors or others with a connection to the community.
Parsons makes reference to a report written by the Medical Officer of Amlwch Urban District Council
expressing concern about the suitability of visitors who “may be regarded as unwelcome visitors …
especially if their qualifications are inadequate.” North Wales Chronicle, 10th February, 1939, p. 13 cited in J.
Wallis North Wales: A Case Study of the Reception Areas under the Government Evacuation 1939-1945
Unpublished thesis p. 63, Flintshire Record Office in M. Parsons, (1998) op. cit., p. 51. 37 M. Parsons, (1998) ibid., p. 51. 38 The Report of the Committee of Inquiry into the Anti-Tuberculosis Service in Wales and Monmouthshire
(HMSO: 1939). 39The Report (1939 ibid., p. 185. 40 Western Mail, 1st September 1939. 41 Carmarthen and Glamorgan received only a very small percentage of the expected evacuees. See GA
RDC/6/1/64 Cardiff RD Council were led to believe that they should plan to receive approximately 4,500
evacuees. In the event only 81 unaccompanied children arrived in 1939. Some mothers and children did also
102
and in many instances this led to evacuees being billeted inappropriately and to
Titmuss commenting that
“the indiscriminate handing round of evacuees … inevitably resulted in every conceivable kind of social and psychological misfit. Conservative and Labour supporters, Roman Catholics and Presbyterians, lonely spinsters and loud-mouthed, boisterous mothers, the rich and the poor, city bred Jews and agricultural labourers, the lazy and the hard working, the sensitive and the tough.”42
This crude method of distribution revealed the underlying religious and racial
intolerance in England and Wales. Certainly, in some areas Jewish and Roman
Catholic evacuees faced varying levels of discrimination.43 The anti-Semitism
present in Great Britain during the interwar years was “part of the social dislocation
in Britain”44 and “can be seen as synonymous with racism.”45 These attitudes were
commonplace and Professor Tanner,46 speaking at a conference in 2008 pointed
out that “David Lloyd George made anti-Semitic remarks although one of his closest
friends was a Jew. That was part and parcel of the way people spoke in society.”47
There is a perception that that anti-Semitism was less of a problem in Wales than in
the rural evacuation areas of England, although some instances were recorded in
the northern counties.48 Anti-Catholicism, however, was “endemic in Wales,”49 and
in the industrial areas and larger towns it remained as an aftermath of the Irish
immigration of the nineteenth century. It was kept alive by Nonconformist ministers
with “sermons of fire and fury.”50
arrive but no data is available for these. At Llanelly for example “Preparations had been completed for
receiving double the number that actually arrived.” See NA ED/134/378 Report No 2 p. 1. 42 R. M. Titmuss (1950), op. cit., p. 112. 43 See T. Kushner, Horns and Dilemmas: Jewish Evacuees in Britain during the Second World War.
Immigrants and Minorities, Vol 7: (1988) 273- 291; S. Parker, Faith on the Home Front: Aspects of Church
Life and Popular Religion in Birmingham 1939 – 1945 (Peter Lang: Bern, 2005). 44 R. M. Titmuss, (1950), ibid., p. 112 in T. Kushner, (1988), ibid., p. 279. 45 W. Gallager, Anti-Semitism: What it means to you (Communist Party of Great Britain: London, 1971) in
C. Knowles, Labour and Anti-Semitism in R .Miles and A. Phizacklea eds, Racism in Political Action In
Britain (Routledge and Kegan Paul: London, 1979), p. 50. 46 Professor Duncan Tanner, director of Research and professor of History at Bangor University. 47 R. Clark, Discovering the troubled history of Jews in Wales. Western Mail, March 12th, 2008 quoted at a
conference, Jewish Life in North Wales, held at Bangor University in March 2008. 48 J. Wallis, A Welcome in the Hillsides? The Merseyside and North Wales experience of Evacuation 1939-
1945, (Avid Publications, Merseyside, 2000) p. 151. 49 T. O. Hughes, When was Anti-Catholicism? A Response. Journal of Ecclesiastical History, Vol 36 No 2:
(2005), 326 -333, p. 306. 50 ibid., p. 316.
103
From the historiography, it becomes apparent that there were disturbing,
entrenched attitudes in reception areas: deep rooted racial prejudice, inbuilt class
snobbery, bigotry and social Darwinism.51 Crosby points to the wide and influential
membership of the eugenic groups52 and considers that the ideas promoted by them
were subtle and pervasive with even medical conferences “increasingly dominated
by the eugenic debate.”53 These influences were widespread but had no consistent
ideology. Freeden suggests that eugenics could be shown to be considered to be
“an exploratory avenue of social reformist tendencies of early twentieth century
British political thought”54 which also exemplified the complexities of new ideologies.
The influence of the eugenics school of thought was both reflected in Our Towns: A
Close Up,55 and in the commonly held views in some sections of society. Harris
suggests that these influences related mainly to the research of Booth and Rowntree
which confirmed the inner core of self imposed poverty caused by alcohol and
character weaknesses and a larger outer core caused by illness, lack of financial
resources. She believes that these “perspectives were increasingly reflected in
public debate”56 and were particularly prevalent during the first wave of evacuation
in rural reception areas.
A second obstacle to successful evacuation was the rigid observance of the
class system in Great Britain that was an ”historical legacy”57 unlike that in other
industrialised societies.58 Since the First World War attitudes had changed
somewhat but the class divisions remained and were revealed starkly during
evacuation 59The surveys60 that were carried out during the period made much of
this, and the social mores of the working classes were widely denigrated. The
51 T. L Crosby, The Impact of Civilian Evacuation in the Second World War (Croom Helm: 1986), p. 3. 52 These included for example Cyril Burt, Neville Chamberlain, Richard Titmuss and George Auden who
was appointed Senior Medical Officer for Birmingham in 1908 in T. L. Crosby, ibid., p. 4. 53 T. L. Crosby ibid., p. 4; M. Freeden Eugenics and Progressive thought: A study in ideological affinity. The
Historical Journal, 22 3: (1979) 645-671, adds to this cross party and cross culture membership by including
R. M. Titmuss; Sidney Webb, L.T. Hobhouse, D. Caradog Jones and Harold Laski. See also Parker, S.,
‘Blessed are the Pacifists’: E. W. Barnes of Birmingham and Pacifism 1914 -45. Midland History, Vol. 34
No 2: (2009), 204-219. 54 M. Freeden, ibid,, p. 645. 55 Hygiene Committee of the Women’s Group of Public Welfare, Our Towns: A Close Up (Oxford
University Press: Oxford, 1943). 56 J. Harris, Private Lives, Public Spirit: Britain 1870-1914 (Penguin: Harmondsworth, 1993) p. 205. 57A. Marwick, Class, Image and Reality in Britain, France and the USA since 1930 (Collins: 1980) p. 30. 58 J. Stevenson, British Society 1914-1945 (Penguin: Harmondsworth, 1984) p. 340. 59 R. McKibbin, Classes and Cultures: England 1918 -1951 (O U P: Oxford, 1998) p. 229. 60 Our Towns A Close Up (1943), op. cit.
104
reactions to evacuees in some reception areas was, in many cases, extreme.
Almost without exception, there was criticism of their physical condition and
behaviour which was not limited to any particular reception or evacuation area. The
outcry, initially in the press, was immediate and vociferous61 and there were
constant complaints. In a debate in the House of Commons in September 1939,
Members of Parliament raised a number of issues about the way the evacuation
scheme had been managed. The lack of proper organisation was central to the
debate and there were very strong criticisms of the Government Departments
involved. Sir Henry Fiddes,62 for instance, expressed his amazement at the
complacency of the Minister of Health towards evacuation.63 The ongoing criticisms
and “stories much enhanced in the telling”64 drew public attention not only to the
Evacuation Scheme but restarted the debate about education provision.
Apart from a few neutral areas, the whole of Wales was designated as a
reception area and, although evacuation there did not promote the same levels of
resentment as it had in some areas of England, in Oxfordshire and Herefordshire
for example,65 it did arouse strong nationalist feelings that continued at some level
throughout the war.66 At the centre of the dissent was the Welsh National Party
which became a vociferous opponent of evacuation. The Party had a strong pacifist
policy and objections to evacuation was seen as part of this, as well as being a
threat to the Welsh identity. This was primarily due to the fact that Wales was to be
used as a reception area for English local authorities, to the apparent detriment of
Welsh tradition and society.67 Saunders Lewis68 went a step further and said that
“Welsh villages would become English barracks so that the RAF could bomb Berlin
and Munich in the knowledge that the children of England were safe.”69 This general
trend continued when the Nationalist Party complained to the Ministry of Health
about English evacuees being sent to Wales but was told that the nationality of
children was irrelevant. There was an attempt to get the neutral areas of Newport,
61 See for example BRL. Schools and Education File, Birmingham Post; LRL. Llanelly Star, 62 Member of Parliament for Dumfriesshire. 63 PP. Hansard House of Commons, 14th September 1939, Col 745-886 Vol 351. 64 J. Macnicol, The Evacuation of Schoolchildren, in H.L. Smith (Ed) War and Social Change: British
Society in the Second World War (MUP, Manchester, 1986), p. 6. 65 See T. L. Crosby, (1986) op. cit.; M. L. Parsons, (1998), op. cit. 66 NLW Does Wales know there’s a war on? Western Mail Sept 21st, 1944. 67 The Welsh Nationalist, February 1939 p. 3, in J. Wallis, (2000.) op. cit. 68 Saunders Lewis, 1893 –1985 was a poet, historian, and political activist. He was a founder of Plaid
Genedlaethol Cymru (National Party of Wales) which became Plaid Cymru. 69 D. H. Davies, The Welsh Nationalist Party 1925-1945 A Call to Nationhood, (UWP: Cardiff, 1983) p. 231.
105
Cardiff and Swansea changed to evacuation areas and the children evacuated into
safer Welsh areas. The National Party wrote to local authorities asking for their
support but this was overwhelmingly refused.70 Ultimately it was proposed that
Wales should welcome evacuees and ‘Welshicise’71 them through kindness.
Evacuation to south and south west Wales
There was an expectation in 1939 that local authorities in south and south west
Wales would receive large numbers of evacuees but, initially at least, this failed to
happen. The largest contingent, of just over one thousand adults and school children
from Liverpool, was evacuated to Llanelly72 in 1939 although preparations had been
made to accommodate far more.73 The Llanelly Star reported:
“Llanelly has always enjoyed an enviable reputation for extending a cordial and hospitable welcome to ‘strangers within the gate’ and now that citizens are having to be evacuated ‘Sospanville’ is playing a part nobly in various directions.”74
The unaccompanied children came from both elementary and secondary schools
and HMI immediately identified differences between the two groups. It was noted
that it as far easier to billet secondary school children than those from elementary
schools as many of the latter were verminous and had to be sent to the Hostel for
Destitute Girls for cleansing.75 The question of these unclean children was
discussed at local authority level although it is apparent that the School Medical
Officer had withheld detailed information about the extent of the matter in Llanelly.
One elected member asked why the fact that many evacuees were “verminous and
filthy”76 was being kept a secret when it was being openly discussed in the House
of Commons.77
70 CAS AC 446/34 Llanelly Borough Council Committee Minutes, 1940. 71 NLW Plaid Cymru Records, Letter, Gwynfor Evans to J. E. Jones, 2nd September, 1939 in D. H. Davies,
op. cit. p. 233. 72 NA RG 26/76 Evacuation of school children: Ministry of Health schedules of movements by area under
the Government evacuation scheme, p. 59. 73 NA ED 134/378 Llanelly, 74 LRL Llanelly Star Saturday, September 9th, 1939. 75 NA ED 134/ 378 HMI Report, No 2, p. 1. 76 LRL. Llanelly Star, September 23rd, 1939. 77 See for example Hansard House of Commons 14th September 1939 Col. 745-886 Vol. 351.
106
Almost as soon as the evacuees had settled in Llanelly, the ‘drift back’ to
Liverpool began. Numbers decreased steadily, and by January 1940 only a third of
those evacuated remained.78 HMI reported that it was a common practice for a
group of Liverpool parents to pay for one mother to visit Llanelly to collect a group
of children, despite the fact that many did not want to return.79 This drift back of
evacuees was common to all reception areas throughout the evacuation period. It
was of particular concern and was “perhaps the harshest verdict on the
government’s preparations.”80 An approximate estimate is that of the 29,167
evacuated to Wales in 1939 only 14,755 remained by January 1940, a decrease of
forty nine per cent.81 This situation was repeated throughout Great Britain and by
February 1940 only 477,000 remained in the reception areas out of the three million
originally evacuated.82 By the middle of 1940 the pattern of evacuation had changed
as, during the early part of the year, there had been a re-distribution of evacuees
from the coastal areas of south east of England and the Medway towns83 “as a
prelude to the second big move.”84 The Western Mail reported in May that a very
large number of evacuees had arrived in the valley towns and were made very
welcome.85 The majority of evacuees were secondary school children who had been
already been evacuated to the south east of England but were now being
redistributed to safer areas. By August 1940 there were a total of 47,465
unaccompanied school children billeted throughout Welsh local authorities86 with
over five thousand in Carmarthenshire and seventeen thousand in Glamorgan.
Some areas were completely overwhelmed and there were difficulties in finding
accommodation for this new wave of evacuees especially as many householders
made every effort to avoid billeting if they had had evacuees billeted with them
previously.87
78 Only 285 unaccompanied children remained. There is no data for adult evacuees See Appendix 4. There
was a small trickle of evacuees in this four month period but the number still remained very low. 79 NA ED/134/378 Evacuation Report Llanelly Borough, 1939. 80 J. Macnichol, The Evacuation of School Children in H.L. Smith ed, War and Social Change (MUP:
Manchester, 1986) p. 14. 81 NA RG 26/76 op. cit. 82 NA HLG 10/247 Memo of ARP Co-ordinating Committee, 12, April, 1940, in J. Macnicol, op. cit., p. 14. 83 For example the LCC Folkestone School Group moved into Glamorganshire and became the LCC
Tredegar School Group after they moved there in May 1940. The schools were spread over a wide area from
Radyr in Cardiff to Newport and into the valleys as far as Abertillery and Tonypandy, LMA LCC/GE 11132. 84 R. M. Titmuss, (1950) op.cit. p. 355. 85NLW 7000 Child Evacuees Come to Wales Western Mail, 18th May 1940: p. 5. 86 NA RG /26/27, op. cit. Table 4. 87 See GA RDC/6/1/64 Government Evacuation Scheme Committee, 17th March, 1940; GA.
RDLL/T/38/GES.
107
In September 1940, when the bombing of London began in earnest, the
Ministry of Health was ready to begin a second evacuation. The first wave had
depended to a large extent on the fact that it was organised around an intact school
system which no longer existed. This caused a number of problems not least the
fact that there were no central collection points for children and it was planned to
group elementary school children with teachers from the same area.88 There had
been lengthy discussions with teaching associations about this second evacuation
and they had been warned that the process “would be much more difficult and
nothing like as tidy and orderly as in 1939.”89 The second wave was carried out over
a much longer period and although there was generally a poor uptake, forty eight
thousand unaccompanied children were moved out of London alone, followed by a
‘trickle’ of almost fifteen thousand during the following year.90 Large numbers also
left Birmingham91 and Liverpool92 but neither city evacuated93 such a large
percentage of their school population as London or Kent. This second evacuation
amounted to over a million in all,94 but the numbers were very fluid. In the Rhondda
area for example it has been suggested that “At varying times 33,000 mothers and
children were officially billeted in the area.”95 This figure cannot be verified but in
September 1941 there was a total of 9,046 evacuees there.96 In the second wave,
mothers with children outnumbered unaccompanied school children, and by
October 1940, there were a total of over sixteen thousand mothers and children
billeted in Glamorgan.97 In Carmarthenshire Rural District there was a total of over
five thousand mothers and children as well as a large number of unaccompanied
school children. This would have put a considerable strain on the local infrastructure,
88 LMA LCC/EO/WAR/1/098 Plan IV 2nd, Large Scale Evacuation Plan. Reference Paper ER, 28th May
1940. This also happened in Birmingham. MLPJ Private Archive, Interview with Mrs B. Loveluck,
evacuated teacher from Birmingham. 89 LMA LCC/EO/WAR/1/098 ibid, Memorandum to Mr Clayton from Mr Rich, 28th May 1940. 90 NA RG 26/76 op. cit. December, 1942. 91 NA RG 26/76 ibid, December 1942. There were 22,113 unaccompanied children from Birmingham. See
also E. Hopkins, Elementary Education in Birmingham during the Second World War. History of Education,
Vol 18: (1989) pp. 242-255. 92 NA RG 26/76 ibid. There were 11,718 unaccompanied children from Liverpool. 93 Very few of the children from Birmingham or Liverpool came to either Carmarthenshire or Glamorgan
during this evacuation. The majority of Liverpool children were sent to the counties of North Wales although
there was some overspill into Cardiganshire and north Carmarthenshire. The majority of Birmingham
children were evacuated into Monmouthshire. 94 R. M. Titmuss, (1950) op.cit. p. 355. 95 RCL. Petition for a Charter of Incorporation, (1952) p. 40 in E. D. Lewis, The Rhondda Valleys (Phoenix
House: London, 1959) p. 261. 96 NA RG 26/76 - this total was made up of 4,543 unaccompanied children with 568 teachers, helpers and
other adults. There were also 1,434 mothers with 2,483 children under five. 97 NA RG 26/76 the majority were in Merthyr Tydfil and the Rhondda
108
especially when put in the context of school accommodation98 as large numbers of
children were being billeted in areas where schools were, in many cases, insufficient
and inadequate for local children. These difficulties were exacerbated by the blitz
on Swansea99 and Cardiff100 when, in its aftermath, large numbers of children were
evacuated to safer areas in Carmarthen and Glamorgan. It was inevitable that the
first large scale evacuation in September 1939 caused the most controversy and
discussion. Later evacuations were much smaller;101 better organized and, because
of the changing circumstances of war, accepted as necessary
During the early part of 1941, invasion was considered a strong possibility
and the Board of Education issued directives to all local authorities about what they
should do if this took place. At Swansea, the Director of Education wrote to all head
teachers reminding them of his expectations in the event of a critical emergency.
The role of teachers would depend on whether schools were open or closed: all
teachers should ensure that, if open, the work of the schools was to continue but if
closed “there will be many tasks to which teacher can usefully put their hands, such
as visits to children’s homes, organising some sort of home tuition, using their
influence to combat rumours and to allay any signs of panic.”102 Schools should not
be closed except in the gravest local emergencies and parents should be advised
that children must attend school as normal. Arrangements should be made for
secondary school pupils to attend their nearest school and head teachers should
ensure that they were provided with enough homework to allow them to continue
their education in the short term.
Air Raid Precautions in Schools
The legislation put in place by the Civil Defence Act 1939,103 allowed the
requisition of any buildings deemed suitable for defence purposes without reference
to the owner. It also allowed material alterations to buildings to make them fit for
purpose. Responsibility for the decisions regarding Air Raid Precautions were
98 See for example CAS ED/BK/695/2/4 Llangunnick (Llangynog) Vaughn’s Charity School. 99 The worst attack was in February 1941 although there had been sporadic raids throughout 1940. 100 Cardiff was subject to bombing attacks throughout the war but the most intensive raids were in 1941. 101 Ministry of Health statistical data is not available for all evacuation waves. See however, R. M. Titmuss,
(1950), op. cit., See Appendix 9 Government Evacuation Scheme p. 562. 102 WGAS E/S 31/4/5 Letter from Director of Education, Swansea Borough Council to all Head teachers. 103 Civil Defence Act 1939, 2 & 3 Geo 6 Ch 31.
109
controlled by the civilian Police Forces who were responsible for national security.
While there had been no intention to provide ARP in schools there had been one to
use school buildings to support the war effort. In urban areas where the risk of attack
was greatest the majority of school buildings were well situated and generally
provided with all the basic amenities required by military and civilian personnel. The
extensive material damage done to school buildings in all areas of England and
Wales is generally overlooked as a factor in the deterioration of education provision
and elementary schools in particular, were overwhelmed by the harm done by
requisition. There are no reports of similar damage to secondary schools, although
the use of some parts of the buildings had an adverse effect on the curriculum as
gymnasiums and domestic science rooms were of particular interest to the groups
involved in ARP.104 In south and south west Wales, despite the fact that there did
not appear to have been any immediate threat of attack, some schools were partially
or completely requisitioned by civilian or military defence personnel for the duration
of the hostilities.105 In September 1939, in Glamorgan alone, thirty four schools were
identified as First Aid Posts, and Wardens’ Posts were set up at a further thirty two
others. In Pontypridd, for example, one school was wholly taken over as a recruiting
depot and much of Mill Street Central School as a First Aid Post.106 HMI considered
that this kind of event did not necessarily interfere with the smooth running of a
school107 although it was reported that in many instances extensive irreversible
structural damage was done to school buildings without reference to “either the
Director of Education or myself,”108 but which had apparently been sanctioned by
the Chief Constable.
While large school buildings might have been able to cope with the loss of
accommodation this was not the case at small schools. At the three classroom St
Athan Council School the local authority was presented with a “fait accompli”109
104 At Albert Road Girls Schools Penarth the CDS. Room was taken over as a mess room for ARP. NA ED
134/372 p. 3. 105 For example Penybont Boys and Girls Schools at Bridgend and Albert Road Boys and Infants Schools in
Penarth were closed for the duration and children were forced to work double shift systems at other schools.
Seven schools in Cardiff were also requisitioned by the ARP. NA 134/372. 106 NA ED 134/203 Evacuation Section, Pontypridd UD, 27th April, 1940. 107 NA ED 134/372, ibid. 108 NA ED 134/368 Report No 3, 6th September, 1939. HMI reports that troops were using “the lavatory
basins and WC’s” in Carmarthen Girls Grammar School. 109 NA ED 134/372 Glamorganshire p. 4. 109 At Albert Road Girls Schools Penarth the CDS. Room was taken
over as a mess room for ARP. NA ED 134/372 p. 3. 109 For example Penybont Boys and Girls Schools at Bridgend and Albert Road Boys and Infants Schools in
Penarth were closed for the duration and children were forced to work double shift systems at other schools.
Seven schools in Cardiff were also requisitioned by the ARP. NA 134/372.
110
when the two classrooms were taken for a First Aid Post and Depot and it proved
impossible to find other school accommodation. This disrespectful attitude to
schools was common and the newly built Morfa Infants and Nursery School at
Llanelly was requisitioned by the Medical Officer of Health and the children housed
in poor temporary accommodation110 while classrooms were re-fitted as a casualty
station. HMI Mr M. H. Davies wrote in September 1939 that
“I have all along urged the LEAs to point out to the ARP people how essential it is to retain school accommodation for school purposes, but it does not seem to have had effect. However I shall keep these places under observation and may submit formal reports in due course.”111
It is clear that education in war time was a very low priority for Government
departments and this is reflected locally in the lack of co-operation between the
various organisations. There was a recollection that the service had recovered from
the disruption of the First World War and there appeared to be no doubt in the minds
of officials that it would again. The Board of Education Circular112 published in 1938
clearly placed responsibility for negotiating ARP arrangements in the hands of the
Local Education Authorities and that “the primary consideration must be for the
children’s safety rather than their education.”113
Education in Reception Areas
When planning for war began there was a clear underlying principle at the
Board of Education that education provision in reception areas should remain intact
to provide services during evacuation. While this was the case, it was continually
disrupted by evacuation matters and air raids. The continual arrival and departure
of evacuees caused organisational problems to schools as class sizes changed and
space had to be found for evacuated groups. There was considerable drift back
during the whole evacuation period but there appears to be some evidence114 that,
109 NA ED 134/203 Evacuation Section, Pontypridd UD, 27th April, 1940. 109 NA ED 134/372, ibid. 109 NA ED 134/368 Report No 3, 6th September, 1939. HMI reports that troops were using “the lavatory
basins and WC’s” in Carmarthen Girls Grammar School. 109 NA ED 134/372 Glamorganshire p. 4 110 NA ED 134/368 Carmarthenshire ibid. 111 NA 134/368 Carmarthenshire. 112 Board of Education Circular 1461, (3 Jan 1938.) in P.H.J.H. Gosden, (1976.) op. cit. p. 8. 113 P.H.J.H. Gosden, ibid, p. 8. 114 See for example in Our Towns, A Close Up, op. cit.
111
while in general, secondary school children tended to stay evacuated, elementary
school children returned home wherever possible. It has been suggested that this
was because the scheme was drawn up by “minds that were military, male and
middle class”115 who underestimated working class attitudes towards children
although others propose that it was due to a more complex set of factors. Research
into returning London evacuees show that the greatest proportion were from the
poorer East End of the city and suggest that “Economic and educational poverty,
and a strong sense of family solidarity”116 were key factors. Added to this was the
fact that elementary school children were frequently widely dispersed throughout
rural areas and it was difficult for them to have any group cohesion.
Secondary school children on the other hand had much better support
mechanisms. They were usually evacuated as a whole school and because of the
nature of their curriculum and examination system, were retained as far as possible
as a unit with their own specialist teachers.117 All the evidence shows that they had
a much better educational chance than elementary school children. The prestige
attached to the sector meant that much more effort was made to match them with
suitable partner schools because their “particular needs could probably only be met
by arranging affiliations with schools of the same type and sex in the receiving
area.”118 The relatively high number of secondary schools in south and south west
Wales made it an obvious reception area. Special schools119 and overseas
secondary schools120 were also evacuated in their entirety and remained so
throughout the war. The need for a higher level curriculum was implicit for secondary
schools but not for the elementary sector. Circular 1474121 made suggestions and
comments about the education of evacuated children and made a clear distinction
between the facilities needed for the two different sectors. There was an assumption
115 M. Cole, How Evacuation Miscarried Time, 2nd Sept 1940: http://www.time .com 116 E. H. Bernert and F. C. Iklé, Evacuation and Social Cohesion of Urban Groups. The American Journal of
Sociology, Volume 58 No 2: (1952) 133-138, p. 135. 117 See The Story of the Mary Datchelor School 1877-1977 (Hodder and Stoughton: London, 1978). 118 P.H.J.H Gosden, (1976) op.cit. p. 9. 119 A number of Special (and Approved) Schools were sent to Carmarthen and Glamorgan. GA. DX 631/1
Cardiff Rural District Council Minutes 8th July 1940 “and calling attention to the mentally defective children
due to arrive at Taffs Wells Station on the day of evacuation who are to join others at the Social Services
camps at Ogmore (42 boys) and Rhoose (21 girls).770 children arrived from Birmingham. Medway
Children’s home was evacuated in its entirety to private accommodation in Glamorgan GA PA 20/41
Administration of the Government Evacuation Scheme. 1939-1946 120 The Czech Government in exile established a State school for refugees at the Abernant Lake Hotel in
Llanwrtyd Wells for children from 11-18. 121 Schooling in an Emergency: Suggestions for the Education of Children Transferred to the Reception
Areas (HMSO: Board of Education, London, 1939).
112
that elementary school children would be kept busy with extra curricula activities
and their time: “would be best spent on such subjects as can be taken in an ordinary
classroom without special apparatus … this means in elementary schools ‘The
Three Rs’.”122 Conversely, it was thought that secondary schools, because of the
importance of the curriculum, “will probably suffer greater loss than elementary
schools in the absence of specialised equipment which is normally accepted as
indispensable.”123 This Circular, contemporary newspapers and many HMI
reports124 make a clear distinction between the two sectors and, in some instances,
the attributes of children who attended the different types of schools. There was a
certain deference given to secondary school children that conferred on them a
status that reflected their position in the social strata of the period. For example, in
1939 at Llanelly, unaccompanied school children came from both elementary and
secondary schools and HMI immediately identified differences between the two
groups as the later “were of a good type and the billeting of them has been an easy
matter.”125 This sometimes extended to admiration for secondary school members
of staff and the head teacher of a Llanelly central school reported “Attended Rotarian
lunch in honour of Dr Brook, head of Mary Datchelor School.”126
Some major difficulties were encountered by evacuated secondary schools.
First was finding a partner school with sufficient accommodation that would enable
the evacuated school to retain its identity, and allow teaching a full curriculum to
examination level. The retention of school identity was seen as vital because it
affected the position of teachers and in the case of Roman Catholic schools, their
ability to offer denominational teaching in provided schools. Some thirty grammar,
county, central or technical schools were evacuated into south and south west
Wales,127 and even though there were a considerable number of secondary schools
in the area, they were often oversubscribed and this inevitably led to overcrowding.
The second problem was finding sufficient billets to accommodate large number of
122 Schooling in an Emergency op. cit., p. 12.
123 ibid., p 9 124 For example a local newspaper recorded the arrival of Coloma Convent School Croydon: “The evacuees
included a superior lot of girls who were in the Secondary Schools of the London County Council.”
Unreferenced http://www.llandeilo.org/catholic3.php. 125 NA ED 134/378 HMI Report No 2 p 1. 126 CAS ED BK 566/2 Llanelly Girls Central School Log Book, 26th July, 1941. Dr Brock was a member of
the Fleming Committee: The Public Schools and the General Educational System. Report of the Committee
on Public Schools appointed by the President of the Board of Education in July 1942 (HMSO: 1944). 127 See Appendix 1. Schools evacuated to Carmarthen and Glamorgan. This is not a complete list as the
names of evacuated schools were often omitted from records. It also may be noted from this Appendix that
some schools were moved or split during the time they were evacuated.
113
children in close enough proximity to a school to allow daily attendance. This
became more problematic as the war lengthened because of the contraction of safe
reception areas as the enemy changed tactics. There was also competition for
accommodation between the Ministry of Health to house evacuees, and the
Ministries of Labour to house employees involved in industrial production.
Juxtaposed against these difficulties was the opposition in reception areas, some of
which were actively hostile to any further billeting of unaccompanied children. Cardiff
Rural District Council, for example, was forced to threaten to invoke their statutory
powers and introduce compulsory billeting because the initial response was so low.
In the event, and after much coercion accommodation was found for over a
thousand evacuees in 1940.128 Billeting Tribunals were common,129 especially
amongst the middle classes of Carmarthen Borough and Cardiff. It became
increasingly difficult to billet long term evacuees as some householders became
weary with the extra responsibility.
The arrival of Sir Roger Manwood’s School130 in Carmarthenshire is an
example of these difficulties. The school was first evacuated to Penclawdd in 1940
but the village was found to be too small and isolated to be a permanent base for
the school. The boys were then moved to Pibwrlwd Farm Institute but, from 1943
onwards, were billeted in private houses.131 The head teacher later wrote:
”Billeting was the biggest headache of all, for it is ‘very much a human problem, bristling with psychological questions of personal tastes, attitude, feelings, adjustments, and the boys and billeters who found themselves mutually compatible were very lucky.”132
HMI wrote in 1940 that there were not sufficient educational resources in
Carmarthen Borough for the six hundred evacuees who were billeted there because
it was already being used by the Army who had commandeered parts of schools
and a number of houses.133
128 GA RDC/6/1/64 Government Evacuation Scheme Committee 28th March 1940. 129 For example in Carmarthen Borough. CAS. Carmarthen Borough 231 Evacuation Box; GA RDC/6/1/64
Cardiff Rural District. 130 An endowed grammar school from Sandwich, Kent. 131 There were a number of Billeting Tribunals in regard to evacuees. CAS 231 Carmarthen Borough
Minutes. 132 J. Cavell and B. Kennett A History of Sir Roger Manwood’s School, Sandwich, 1563-1963 : with a life of
the founder (Published for the Governors by Cory, Adams and Mackay: 1963) p. 150. 133 NA ED 134/199 Carmarthenshire Memo to Inspectors, E 426 Reception Area – Carmarthen.
114
When the Sir Roger Manwood’s School was billeted in Carmarthen it shared
the premises of Queen Elizabeth Boy’s Grammar School. The Minute Book reveals
that in August 1940, the Clerk to the Governors wrote to the Carmarthen Education
Authority protesting about the fact that the Sir Roger Manwood’s School was
evacuated to the school without any consultation. The Governors instructed the
Clerk to enquire into the financial aspects of Sir Roger Manwood’s occupation of the
school especially in regard to the wear and tear on laboratories and other specialist
equipment. The same enquiry was made about the evacuation of the Addey and
Stanhope School from Lewisham, and Governing Body Minutes make it clear that it
was making a contribution to the County school’s finances and had settled well into
the school community.134 In other areas the attitudes towards sharing school
premises were quite different. In 1940 the Amman Valley County School was joined
by sections of Roan Girls and Boys School from North London and amicable
arrangements were made, both for financial arrangements and sharing facilities.135
By the middle of 1940, as a result of Plan IV,136 large numbers of elementary
school groups were moved into the reception areas. It was planned that they would
be sent to rural areas where there was billeting which had not been used for
evacuation previously. Unfortunately billeting did not always match with school
accommodation and HMI reported that eight hundred children were due to be
evacuated to the Newcastle Emlyn area and thought this number
“excessive for the available school account. The schools are scattered, and small and the premises, water and sanitation of many of them are unsatisfactory. The area is intensely Welsh, so that the amalgamation of small groups of children in the classes of the local schools is not desirable if the linguistic policy of the schools is to be maintained.”137
One London County Council Group was housed in Graig Vestry and included
evacuees from “babies upward” and one senior boy who was in receipt of a
secondary special place.138 Children from a number of evacuating areas were sent
to the area139 and provided with makeshift education in schools at Pencader, Brynhir
134 NA ED 134/199 op. cit., p. 144. 135 CAS ED BK 48 Amman Valley County School Governing Body Minute Book 6th November, 1942 136 LMA. LCC/EO/WAR Records of the London County Council Education Officer’s Department relating to
emergency wartime measures, including evacuation. Plan IV was the second wave of evacuation. 137 NA 134/199 Memo to Inspectors E 426 Reception Areas – Carmarthenshire. 138 CAS ED/BK 400. 139 CAS ED/Bk/647/2/5/5, New Castle Emlyn Group of LCC School No. 63845 Pencader Section – Mixed
and Infants, November 1940 - September 1941.
115
and Tabernacle Vestry. For most of the period they lived in The Beeches, the old
grammar school hostel at Pencader.140
School Log Books record typical school routines during the period.141 At the rural
Parkmill Mixed and Infants on the Gower Peninsular, for example, there were no Air
Raid Precaution arrangements and during the second half of 1940 day time bombing
raids on Swansea were very frequent. This meant that in addition to the disruption
of continual air raids there was a constant trickle of unofficial and official evacuees
arriving unannounced at the school. In October 1940 the head teacher wrote that
“This was the Day of Days. We had everything except an air raid warning.”142 A party
of forty eight evacuees arrived from London which made total of one hundred and
sixty two children in a school which had accommodation for ninety five. HMI made
attempts to find additional school accommodation but none was available in the
isolated and rural area and the head teacher was instructed by the Director of
Education not to accept any more evacuees. The eventual and unsatisfactory
solution was for the school to work on a shift basis with evacuees, and by 1941 the
school had become home to two hundred and ninety five children. This situation
continued for almost a year until the raids on Swansea eased and the London
County Council evacuee groups could be were dispersed to other schools.
It was inevitable that the influx of large numbers of children and teachers
would cause some problems. In Mountain Ash for example, there had been an
almost complete breakdown in relations between the evacuated schools and the
Local Education Authority. The Kent local inspector reported that there was
“a failure of the two races to understand each other. This is observable elsewhere, but nowhere so clearly as in this rather isolated and very self-centred community. It is unfortunate that, especially in the depressed mining areas such as Mountain Ash, a feeling of antagonism in general has grown up in recent years, and incoming teachers have had the full benefit of this.”143
140 http://www.pencader.org.uk/Two and MLPJ Archive. Two young brothers were evacuated from Liverpool
and were housed in the hostel for some time. They remained in Pencader for the remainder of the war. They
did not see their mother for five years and although they were kindly treated, the eldest especially was very
angry that his education had been neglected. Both returned to Liverpool speaking Welsh fluently. 141 WGAS E/W 25 1/3 Parkmill Mixed and Infants Logbook; WGAS E/ PT 3 1/1, Sandfields Girls Council
School Log Book; WGAS. E/S/12/1/1, Manselton Girls Council School Log Book for example. 142 WGAS. E/W 25 1/3, Parkmill Mixed and Infants Logbook. 143 KHLC C/E 14/7/3 Visits to Elementary Schools in Reception Areas – Mountain Ash visited 16th and 17th
December 1940.
116
The Inspector held an unsatisfactory meeting with Sheerness head teachers144 and
later told the Director of Mountain Ash Local Education Authority that there was
much antipathy towards evacuated teachers, and difficult interpersonal relationships
had developed between individual teachers from local and Kent schools.145 This
kind of situation was not unknown, as some evacuated teachers considered
themselves to be far more advanced, in educational terms, than their colleagues in
reception areas.146 An element of this perceived superiority is apparent in a report
to the Director of Kent Local Education Authority about Merthyr Tydfil Borough
Council. It was pointed out that this small authority which had different standards to
those in Kent and its officers were “quick to take offence, prone to be suspicious,
inclined to magnify their office at the expense of the teaching staff.”147 In other areas
the situation was quite different and good relationships developed. Secondary
school head teachers reported that their schools had been warmly welcomed and
the facilities were good.148 These comments reflect the very mixed reception
evacuated schools received and the Kent inspector wrote after a visit to Glamorgan
LEA that, in general, “ where difficulties exist they are local in character. It is no use
expecting South Wales to be in perfect step with Kent.”149
Opinions on Evacuation.
In 1941 the Commission of the Churches complained that it had not been
consulted “at any stage”150 about evacuation plans and commented on the fact that
out of the “20,000 elementary schools in the country, nearly half rank as church
schools: 9,000 Church of England; 1,300 Catholic.”151 The main complaint was that
no account had been taken of the religious needs of evacuees, either at school or
in the community. While there would have been suitable places of worship to meet
the religious needs of most children, this was not the case for either Jewish or
Roman Catholic evacuees. There was large Jewish Community in south and south
144 KHLC C/E 14/7/3 ibid Report to Director Kent LEA 14th November 1940. 145 At Pontypridd for example the Chatham County School for Girls was not given a very cordial welcome by
the Head Mistress of Treforest County School. KHLC C/E 14/7/2 Report to the Director Visits to Secondary
etc Schools in Reception Areas 27th November 1940. 146 For example G.A.N. Lowndes, (1969) op.cit. p 206; P.H.J.H. Gosden, (1976) op.cit. 147 KHLC C/E 14/7/2 Report of South Wales and Monmouth Kent Evacuated Parties 25th - 31st Oct 1941. 148 KHLC C/E 14/7/2 ibid. 149 KHLC C/E 14/7/2 ibid. 150 Evacuation Reviewed: Why the Churches were not consulted. Catholic Herald, 28th March 1941. 151 Catholic Herald, 1941 ibid.
117
west Wales152 and the Welsh Jewish Project153 notes that many Jewish refugees
arrived in Wales during the 1930s both to study and set up businesses. While some
Jewish children encountered problems during evacuation154 there is no evidence of
overt discrimination in south and south west Wales. There are however many
examples of a lack of understanding of the faith. A number of children from the
Kindertransport were placed with both Jewish and Christian families throughout the
area and although many were able to retain their faith, others were placed in homes
where they “were subjected to conversion attempts.”155 The log books for Cardiff
schools offer a few additional details and note that special arrangements were made
for the welfare of Jewish children in the city where there was a large Jewish
community.156
Roman Catholic evacuees had a very different experience and were put
under considerable pressure from the Roman Catholic church to retain their faith at
all costs. Archbishop Hinsley was adamant in his letters to the Board of Education
that Catholic schools should not be evacuated to areas where there was no suitable
church.157 There had been clear guidance in the Encyclical on Christian
Education158 that could not be ignored. There was a belief “that education was not
complete unless it allowed for religion to permeate the whole of a child’s life,”159 and
Archbishop Hinsley had met with the President of the Board of Education to insist
that this should be the case.160 In view of this advice there had been some
instances161 where the parish priest from an evacuated parish put pressure on
parents of evacuated children to ensure their swift return home so they would not
be exposed to other religions or practices. There was a real concern that the
152 There were approximately 20 small Jewish communities although these had declined in number during the
depression years. www.jewishgen.org/jcr-uk/wales.htm 153 http://welshjewishheritage.tumblr.com 154 See J. Welshman, Churchill’s Children: The Evacuee Experience in Wartime Britain (Oxford University
Press: Oxford, 2010). Welshman recounts the experiences of a Jewish head teacher evacuated with her Stoke
Newington school to Shefford in Bedfordshire; T. Kushner, (1988), op. cit. 155 http://welshjewishheritage.tumblr.com, The Second World War, 1933-1945. 156K. Strange, Cardiff Schools and the age of the Second World War: The Log Books, - a documentary
history http://resources.hwb.wales.gov.uk/VTC/ngfl/history/.April 1939, Cardiff Education’s Secondary
Schools Committee recommends `that arrangements be made for Moritz Wagschal and Siegfried Wagschal,
Jewish refugee children, to be admitted to Canton High School for Boys…and that …in view of the special
circumstances of these cases, the Committee decided to excuse payment of the school fees’. 157 NA ED 134/204 Rhondda. 158 Encyclical of Pope Pius XI on Christian Education to the Patriarchs, Primates, Archbishops, and other
Ordinaries in Peace and Communion 31st December 1929. http://w2.vatican.va/content/pius-
xi/en/encyclicals/documents/hf_p-xi_enc_31121929_divini-illius-magistri.html 159 T. O Hughes, (1999) op. cit. p. 131. 160 NA ED 134/204 Rhondda Unreferenced letter from Board of Education 24th May 1940. 161 NA ED 134/378 Llanelly.
118
religious needs of Roman Catholic could not be met in the reception areas. This was
a particularly difficult situation in south and south west Wales where there were few
Roman Catholic churches or schools and it was almost inevitable that some sort of
incident would take place.
In response to a letter from the Board of Education, the Director of Rhondda
Local Education wrote that it would be impossible for him to carry out Cardinal
Hinsley’s request to find school places for Roman Catholic evacuees in Roman
Catholic schools. The Director pointed out that there was only one small Catholic
school in the authority and this could not possibly accommodate the two schools
that had been evacuated.162 The schools would have to share premises but would
be able to retain their separate identity, and children would be billeted near one of
the four Catholic Churches wherever possible. However, this was not the end of the
matter. In September 1941, an evacuated teacher from a Cardiff school “raised at
N.U.T. meetings the question of the legality of R. C. and other ‘non-provided’ pupils
receiving their own distinctive form of religious instruction in Council School
premises.”163 In addition, a rate-payer also contacted the Local Education Authority
raising the matter of the legality of this situation. The Director wrote to all schools
explaining that a decision had been taken by the School Management Committee
that teachers of non-provided evacuated schools would be allowed to give
denominational religious instruction on Council school premises. There were
however real concerns that if this decision became public knowledge it would be
very damaging and this would have unfortunate repercussions.164 Sir Wynn Weldon
wrote to give the Board of Education’s view on the “objections raised by some
busybody,”165 and the decision taken by Rhondda Education Committee. He pointed
out that while it was clear in education legislation that no denominational religious
instruction could be given on Council school premises, the conditions of evacuation
had not been envisaged. Schools that preserved their identity when on Council
premises would not be regarded as public elementary schools and in these
circumstances denominational religious instruction could be given. The Director
agreed that this advice would prevent any further objections and the recorded
162 NA ED 134 /204 Letter from Director of Education Rhondda LEA to the Secretary Welsh Department
Board of Education 25th May 1940. 163 NA ED 134 /204 Letter from T. H. Lewis HMI to Sir Wynn Weldon 22nd September 1941. 164 NA ED 134/204 Letter. 22nd September 1941 op. cit. 165 NA ED 134/204 Letter, Sir Wynn Weldon to W. Morris Jones Director, 24th September 1941.
119
evidence suggests that head teachers of Catholic schools were generally happy
with their treatment during evacuation.166
Teachers and their role in Evacuation.
Teachers were the mainstay of the evacuation scheme167 and were totally
responsible, in loco parentis, for many thousands of children during a very
dangerous and unpredictable period. One teachers’ union journal summed up their
new role suggested that they were performing a national service, as great as any
other, as they were ensuring the safety of evacuated children so that parents could
continue with war work.168 It has been estimated that during the first wave of
evacuation in 1939 ninety thousand teachers and helpers were evacuated with
unaccompanied school children.169 This number fluctuated throughout the course of
the war as circumstances in the reception areas changed. By September 1944,
about seven thousand teachers and helpers remained evacuated with over a quarter
of million children.170 While this reduction was due in part to the fall in the number
of evacuees, it was also the result of the assimilation of evacuated children into
classes in local schools. Strict war time economies were also exercised by the Board
of Education and a memo told HMI to remind LEAs that the pupil : teachers ratio
met the agreed formula.171 They were also reminded that class sizes could not be
reduced in neutral areas to make supervision easier when there were air raids.172
These restrictions were not only needed because of economic reasons, but because
there was a severe shortage of teachers. This was due in part to conscription but
complicated by the fact that when provision was expanded in evacuated areas many
teachers were still needed in reception areas. There was constant disruption to
staffing as teachers were called up for active service and had to be replaced by
uncertificated, inexperienced staff, by married women returners or, as in some areas
of Carmarthenshire, by student teachers. In addition staff were
166 NA ED 134/378 Llanelly. 167 Times Educational Supplement, 14th September, 1940 in H. C. Dent, Education in Transition: A
Sociological Study of the impact of war on English Education (Kegan Paul: London, 1944) in M. Lawn and
G. Grace (Eds), Teachers: The Culture and Politics of Work (Falmer Press: Sussex, 1987) p. 50. 168 Schoolmaster and Woman Teacher’s Chronicle, cxxvi/1577, 31st August, 1939, in P. Cunningham & P.
Gardiner ‘Saving the nation’s children’: teachers, wartime evacuation in England and Wales and the
construction of national identity,’ History of Education, 1999, Vol 28, p. 327. 169 P. Cunningham and P. Gardner, (1999) op. cit., p. 28. 170 R. M. Titmuss, (1950) op. cit. p. 562. 171 NA ED 22/228 Memo to Inspectors Wales No 551 17th April 1940, p. 1. 172 NA ED 22/228 ibid p. 1.
120
frequently absent to attend ARP courses and other war related events although
some, strangely, were given leave of absence to spend an exchange year in the
United States of America.173
While there was a drive to reduce the numbers of teachers some latitude was
given in reception areas with a 25:1 ratio of teachers to pupils to account for extra
responsibilities and the constant change in the numbers of evacuees.174 This was
also considered essential for evacuated elementary groups because teaching space
was scare and groups frequently had to be split to fit any available accommodation.
The deployment of secondary school teachers appears to have been much less
problematic. The records of the Mary Datchelor School175 evacuated to Llanelly
show that when a home school was re-established in London the two branches were
maintained simultaneously, and some staff returned home while others remained
with evacuated pupils. It was common that once education provision in evacuated
areas was increased, teachers were withdrawn from reception areas and HMI
advised that if LEA found difficulty in retrieving their teachers from reception areas
they should be informed.176 The contractual difficulties faced by teachers were
complex and those who were left unemployed by the closure of schools in
September 1939 were deployed to other work, such as running rest and emergency
feeding centres. It has been suggested that while teachers responded to the
demands of war time they also found them “tiring and demoralising”177 as they
“were loaded down with new civilian duties, such as fire watching, and the duties that coalesced around teachers … The school day was often indeterminate in length and holidays became another kind of work, entertaining and minding children.”178
In 1941 the Ministry of Labour asked the Board of Education to force all schools to
remain open in the holidays to look after the children of working mothers and to care
for evacuees. Teacher Unions were vociferous in their objections, especially as it
was doubtful whether many elementary children would attend schools during the
173 GA E/MT/17/3 Pen Garn Du Council School Log Book shows that Grace Owen, head teacher was given
leave of absence to visit schools in America in September 1939. She returned to duty in March 1941. 174 WGAS E/S 32/1/1 Swansea Evacuated Children; WGAS E/S 32/1/2, Manselton Group. In 1941, in
Carmarthen and Glamorgan there were 602 evacuated teachers with 26,506 unaccompanied children. 175 The Story of the Mary Datchelor School 1877-1977 (Hodder and Stoughton: London, 1977). 176 NA ED 22/228 Memo to Inspectors Wales No 551 17th April 1940 p. 1. 177 M. Lawn, What is a Teacher’s Job: Work and Welfare in Elementary Teaching in M. Lawn and G. Grace
(Eds), Teachers: The Culture and Politics of Work (Falmer Press: Sussex, 1987) p. 61. 178 M. Lawn, ibid p. 61.
121
holidays.179 Where schools remained open, teachers worked a shift system with
colleagues to ensure that they had some holidays.180 There are suggestions
however that these arrangements were not necessary for secondary age children
as they “preferred to spend their time as they chose.”181
Teachers made every effort, through their unions,182 to negate the effect of
evacuation and the war time period generally. London teachers,183 were heavily
involved in the planning of the first and subsequent evacuations,184 and requests
were made to the authority to be evacuated with husbands, wives or friends or
preferably not to be evacuated at all. They complained of their isolation in reception
areas and many found themselves in unusual and lonely situations.185 There were
no standard billeting allowances for teachers and they were often in straitened
circumstances, especially as many had families and children who they wanted to
visit regularly but found the cost prohibitive.186 A letter from the Secretary of the
London School Masters Association to the Board of Education pointed out that no
evacuated teacher chose his or her destination, some of which were very isolated,
and it was very difficult for them to travel home.187
Although some of the contemporary surveys referred to teachers in glowing
terms this was not a complete or accurate picture of their attitudes during
evacuation.188 HMI reports record instances of personality differences between
evacuated teachers who appeared to consider themselves superior to local
teachers.189 It was inevitable that under these circumstances there would be
resentment between the groups. In Glamorgan, the Kent local inspector records the
many problems caused by the head teacher at Three Crosses, and where
179 NA ED 11/238 I.A.A.M. to Board, in P.H.J.H. Gosden, The Evolution of a Profession, (Basil Blackwell:
London, 1972) p. 118. 180 CAS ED/BK/695/2/4 Llangunnick (Llangynog) Vaughn’s Charity School – Log Book. 181 NA ED 134/203 Replies to Memo to inspectors M.S. No. 225, (General). 182 In general terms the teachers of different sectors of education were represented by different unions e.g.
National Association of Schoolmasters Union of Women Teachers represented secondary school teachers and
the National Union of Teachers represented elementary teachers. 183 LMA LCC/EO/WAR/01/083 Consultations with teachers’ associations. The first evacuation from London
was code named ‘Operation Pied Piper.’ 184 LMA LCC/EO/WAR/01/083 ibid. 185 LCC WAR/5/5 List of LCC Evacuated Schools, 1939 shows that female teachers were frequently billeted
in public houses in the South Wales valleys. 186 S. Isaacs, The Cambridge Evacuation Survey(Methuen & Co: London, 1941) p. 185. 187 LMA LCC/ED/WAR/01/083 Consultations with teachers’ associations. 188 For example S. Isaacs, op. cit.; Barnett House Study Group, London Children in War-Time Oxford,
(OUP: London, 1947). 189 See for example G.A.N. Lowndes, (1969) op.cit.
122
evacuated teachers had behaved unreasonably.190 There were as many instances
of disagreements between teachers as there were instances of teachers working
well together. These experiences undoubtedly played a significant part “in the
forging of a more homogenous post war professional identity.”191
The responsibilities of teachers during the period cannot be underestimated
and unfortunately there were a number of instances of very serious illness and death
amongst evacuated teachers.192 This was also the case amongst evacuated
children: some had serious accidents, some died and illness was a constant threat
to welfare. For example, the head teacher of the evacuated Sandwich Grammar
School was preoccupied by the fact that diphtheria was prevalent in the area.193
Diphtheria was widespread at the time and school closures because of it were very
frequent.194 It was clear that Kent children had not been vaccinated before
evacuation,195 but, by 1941, the majority of local authorities in south and south west
Wales196 had instigated vaccination programmes and evacuated children were
included in these.197
Standards of Education and Examinations
Standards in education during evacuation are hard to measure because few
records were kept. However, it is clear that what was expected of elementary and
secondary school children, in terms of learning outcomes, was quite different. In the
secondary sector, entrance arrangements, the curriculum and examination system
continued remained almost intact. In contrast, the education of elementary school
children, whether evacuated or not, was considerably effected by a lack of
190 KHLC C/E 14/7/3 Report to the Director Visits to Elementary Schools in Reception Areas, 16th
November 1940. 191 P. Cunningham and P. Gardner, (1999) op. cit. p. 334. 192 KHLC C/E/4/7/3 Memorandum to Director November 1940. 193 Evacuated to the Swansea area. 194 The Health of the School Child. Report of the Chief Medical Officer of the Ministry of Education for the
years 1939-1945 (HMSO: 1945) Chapter V indicates that there were high levels of infectious diseases:
diphtheria, scarlet fever, measles and whooping cough, for example throughout the war years. WGAS
E/S/12/1/1 Manselton Girls Council School Log Book reports on 13th September 1940 at the same time as it
was receiving serious daily air raids that it has been closed for a week because of a Diphtheria outbreak; See
also CAS. C/ED/L 16 Llanelly 195 KHLC C/ E 14/7/2 Kent Evacuated Parties 31st October 1941. 196 CAS WWH/2/2 Annual Report of the School Medical Officer for year ending 31st December 1939; 197 KHLC C/E 14/7/2 Kent Evacuated Parties, 31st October, 1941; CRO. WWH/2/2, Annual Report of the
School Medical Officer for year ending 31st December 1939; In Swansea for example WGAS E/SB 71 /2/63
Education Health Committee 8th Jan 1940.
123
equipment and accommodation.198 As a result, “the war increased the proportion of
children who got very little and the proportion of those who got a great deal,”199 and
elementary school children from disadvantaged families were most affected. It is
difficult to establish the extent of educational retardation because little testing was
carried out during the period but when London County Council tested 3,000 thirteen
years olds in 1943, comparative results from 1924 showed delay of about one
year.200 Similarly the results of a survey carried out in 1941 at Southend on non-
evacuated and evacuated returners showed that there:
“was a very marked loss among the non-evacuees amounting to an average retardation of several months more than the actual period that had been spent without schooling. On the other hand evacuees had not only maintained the rate of progress … but had shown a marked improvement.”201
These results, although not scientific, appear to show that children who had
benefited from a stable education in reception areas did better than those who had
had disrupted provision at home. In 1946, tests carried out by the Armed Forces on
men who had spent their last three years at school in the period between 1939 1942
showed a drop in standards and there was a significant increase in men classified
as educationally backward.202
Evacuation presented a number of pedagogical difficulties for elementary
school teachers, particularly the need to adjust the curriculum to accommodate
individual school circumstances. There has been some discussion about whether
the circumstances of evacuation led to a more child centred curriculum203 but this is
generally thought untrue. Parsons204 suggests that curricula changes were enforced
by circumstances and geography, and not by any altruistic efforts on the part of staff
to improve teaching and learning. The teacher union journals205 provided guidance
in developing a curriculum for elementary school children, and oral evidence
suggests that the circumstances of teaching when evacuated was extremely
198 P. Gardner, ‘The Giant at the Front: young teachers and corporal punishment in inter-war elementary
schools, History of Education, Vol 25 1996 p 144. 199 E. Hopkins, (1989) p. 242. 200 P.H.J.H. Gosden, (1976.) op. cit. pp. 73-74. 201 ibid., p. 74. 202 P.H.J.H. Gosden, (1976) op cit. p. 74. 203 For example G.A.N. Lowndes, (1969) op.cit. 204 M. Parsons, War Child: Children Caught in Conflict, (Tempus: Stroud, 2008) p. 50. 205 The Schoolmaster & Woman Teacher’s Chronicle – the Organ of the National Union of Teachers, for
example.
124
difficult.206 There were problems associated with sharing a classroom with a local
teacher and trying to provide quiet written activities was extremely difficult. Long
nature walks were the obvious answer when the weather permitted, an activity often
suggested in Board of Education advice to teachers.207
Secondary school teachers did not have these problems, as the curriculum
was circumscribed and centred round the examination system. The whole question
of entrance into secondary schools and payment of fees during the period of
evacuation was problematic, and a matter of great concern to the Directors of
Education in Wales.208 At the start of evacuation it had already been agreed by the
Board of Education209 that no child should be deprived of a secondary school place
because they had been evacuated. It is clear however, that this was not always the
case, especially when a child held a free place outside the receiving local
authority.210 This acceptance of the right to a secondary education was complicated
by the fact that the entrance examination system was extremely complex. For
example Cardiff Local Education Authority and other local authorities set their own
examinations, marked their own papers and arranged placements in schools in
either reception or evacuated areas.211 This lack of commonality was very difficult
to manage for evacuated local authorities, and evacuated teachers were very
concerned about having to train pupils for examinations they felt were less rigorous
than those in their home areas.212 In Carmarthenshire, where there were many small
groups of evacuees scattered widely across rural areas, the evacuated local
authorities of London, Croydon, Essex, East Ham, West Ham, Kent, Middlesex,
Surrey and Great Yarmouth decided to hold a common entrance examination and
jointly wrote to the Director of Education asking for assistance in gathering evacuees
together and finding a space for them to sit the examination.213 Children sat a
common special place examination during the four years of evacuation in over two
206 MLPJ Private Archive, Interview with Mrs Betty Loveluck. Teacher evacuated from Birmingham to the
Vale of Glamorgan 207 Schooling in an Emergency, suggestions for the education of children transferred to the reception areas,
Circular 1474 (HMSO: 1939). 208 NLW Minor Deposit 701 Executive Committee of Directors and Secretaries of Education (Wales and
Monmouthshire) Minutes 20th October, 1939. 209 ED 138/58 Board of Education Administrative Memorandum 205. 210 PP. Hansard House of Commons 27th February 1940 Col 1861-2034 Vol. 357. 211 Some schools in evacuated areas were reopened after 1941 although many parents chose to allow their
children to remain evacuated. For example the Mary Datchelor School reopened in Camberwell to be able to
offer places to new entrants even though the senior pupils remained evacuated in Llanelly 212 KHLC C/E 14/7/3 Visits to Elementary Schools in Reception Areas, Report to the Director 14th Nov 1940. 213 CAS CC/ED/1/1/29 Education Minutes 18th December 1941 p. 14.
125
hundred local authority areas in England and Wales.214 The examination system
was particularly disadvantageous to elementary school children evacuated into rural
areas as many who had obtained a scholarship to a secondary school frequently
found it impossible to find a place.215
Education in Neutral Areas
While evacuation has been considered to have been the most disruptive
element to education in wartime, other factors were equally distracting. In spite of
the fact that south and south west Wales did not experience bombing raids to the
same extent as some other areas, it was still badly affected. The neutral areas of
Swansea and Cardiff, in particular, came under both prolonged day and night time
raids over long periods and intense bombing over short periods.216 In both areas
day time raids resulted in constant interruptions to the school day and night time
raids mean that children were frequently tired and fretful. Inadequate ARP
provision217 in most elementary schools meant that children were dispersed to their
homes during air raids. When schools did have air raid shelters, they were damp
and unpleasant and inappropriate places for children to be for long periods.218 Over
the course of the war large numbers of children were evacuated, both officially and
unofficially from neutral areas which inevitably added to the disruption of
provision.219 Bombing raids on Cardiff began in the summer of 1940, and although
there does not appear to have been any damage to schools there was a constant
disruption to routines and very low attendance.220 The raids usually involved only a
214 LMA LCC/ED/EO/WAR/01/238. 215 http://www.bbc.co.uk/history/ww2peopleswar. Lyn Jenkins spent much of the war as a private evacuee in
Nantgaredig. She had passed the entrance examination to a Middlesex Grammar School but was unable to
find a suitable school place in Wales. She said “One of my achievements as an evacuee was learning to knit.
However, it was a very disturbing time for me as a child and my education did suffer.” This is not uncommon
and a Liverpool boy evacuated to Llanybydder told MLPJ at interview that he deeply resented his lack of
educational opportunity during evacuation. He had spent more time helping the local farmer than at school. 216 WGAS E/PT 3 1/1 Sandfields Girls Council School Log Book; CAS Ed Bk 566/2 Llanelly Girls Central
School. 217 The majority of schools with ARP were secondary schools. See CAS ED/BK 48 Amman Valley County
School – Governing Body Minute Book. 218 WGAS E/ PT 3 1/1 ibid. 219 NA RG 26/76 Government Evacuation Scheme. Normal population of evacuation Areas and the Number
remaining in these areas at the First of October 1941. Cardiff CB: 28,106 – 24,756; Swansea CB: 25, 803 –
20,000; Newport CB: 13147 – 12,597. A large number of children under five years of age were also
evacuated, 2,500 from Swansea alone. 220“At a meeting of Cardiff’s Education Committee `The Director reported that since 15th July, 1940, air raid
warnings had been sounded during thirty school sessions causing a total loss in school time of nearly
eighteen hours’ CCL, Cardiff, Education, 1939-40, p 264 in K. Strange, op. cit.
126
few aircraft but bombing and machine gun strafing caused wide spread panic.
During the early period of the war Cardiff was bombed more frequently than any
other area of England and Wales, and members of national Civil Defence
organisations visited to see how the city was coping.221 In January 1941, the first
major night time raids caused damage to forty one elementary schools.222 The
Primary HMI, Captain T.J. Evans, wrote to Sir Wynne Weldon,223 to report that
although Cardiff children were back at school, attendance was very low, affected by
heavy night time bombing and very bad weather.224 He also stated that the repairs
at two worst damaged LEA schools225 would cost approximately £19,000.226 In the
aftermath of this raid, twenty six per cent of Cardiff parents decided to have their
children evacuated.227
Many parents had already made their own private arrangements and it was
thought that six hundred and seventy one children had been unofficially evacuated
but “This is probably an understatement.”228 Bombing continued throughout the
spring of 1941 and caused further destruction, including the total loss of
Marlborough Street Boys’ and Girls’ Council Schools. A further eleven schools were
bombed during May 1943 and serious damage was done to many more. At Howard
Gardens High School for Girls, the damage was so severe that pupils were sent
home and only recalled when notices were placed in the local press. 229 Metal Street
National School Boys’ Department was completely burnt out and the Girls’
Department was severely damaged by water. During this raid six children were killed
and eleven injured. After each major raid all schools in the Borough were closed
and children from damaged schools were diverted with their teachers to other
schools which caused further disruption to provision.
In Swansea the situation was very similar and the head teacher of Manselton
Girls Council School230 reported endless airs raids between July 1940 and July 1941
221 D. Morgan, Cardiff: A City at War(1998) p. 47. 222 NA ED 134/247 Cardiff. 223 Permanent Secretary to the Welsh Department Board of Education. 224 NA ED 134/247 Cardiff, ibid. Permanent Secretary to the Welsh Department Board of Education. 225 Kitchener Road Infants and Canton High School. 226 NA ED 134/247 Cardiff. 227 GA D/DX 504/19 – 1941 Notes about the evacuated Cardiff children to Afan Valley area: Glyncorrwg,
Abergwynfi Cymmer and Dyffryn Afan. See also a list of evacuated Cardiff schools and their destinations in
K. Strange, op. cit., pp 109-111. 228 NA ED 134/247 Cardiff Report on Air Raid January, 1941. 229 NA ED 134/247 Cardiff Report of Air Raid on Cardiff 17th -18th May 1943. 230 WGAS E/S/1 Manselton Girls Council School Log Book.
127
as well as three nights of very heavy raids in May 1941. During this period the school
day did not start until eleven o’clock and finished early during the winter months
because of the blackout. There were attempts to maintain some normality but it is
clear that the constant disruption was taking its toll on the attendance levels of
children. Staff were also frequently absent.231 While the education system was
dislocated during this intense bombing, log books report that children themselves
were not overtly effected by air raids or other disruption and considered them
“charming little episodes’ – a break in school life monotony.”232
By June 1941 Swansea parents decided to have their children evacuated and
a mixed group of children were sent to rural Carmarthenshire. The Log Book233 for
the evacuated section of Manselton Girls School offers a very valuable insight into
the demands and conditions of evacuation. It records that eighty children from a
number of Swansea schools accompanied by eight teachers were divided between
eight schools on the Carmarthen-Pembrokeshire border around Trelech. Children
of all ages were evacuated and stayed for varying periods. Some were collected
immediately by parents while others stayed for five or six months. The details
included in school log books give an indication of the constant disruption to
education by factors such as lack of resources; staff movement; child related
incidents and visits by parents. As the number of evacuees decreased so did the
number of teachers. This necessitated constant reorganisation, and children were
frequently moved between teachers and schools. The two log books, one from the
evacuated from Manselton Girls School and one from the home school, gives an
interesting insight into war time education and it is clear that both parts of the school
were badly affected by the conflict.234
The End of Evacuation
The Evacuation Scheme lasted for the duration of the war and considerable
numbers of unaccompanied children remained in the reception areas throughout the
period. It functioned “as a kind of disguised welfare agency from about 1941
231 This was noted frequently in both HMI reports and school log books. Some teachers were absent on a
regular basis with trivial illnesses. 232 K. Strange, op. cit. p. 59. 233 WGAS E/S 32/1/2 4th October 1941 – 23rd September 1942. 234 WGAS E/S 32/1/2.
128
onwards”235 as there was always a need for short term accommodation for
vulnerable groups. By 1942, a weariness had developed in the reception areas and
there was a clamour to end evacuation but there was also a perception that there
were too many risks remaining to do this. Plans were in place for D-Day but there
was still no obvious end to the war so the scheme remained in place. The end of the
war in Europe brought some relief but it is clear that education remained very
disrupted and disorganised. The General Purposes Sub Committee of the London
County Council reported on the condition of schools there.236 and estimated that for
the first three years of the war the majority of secondary school pupils were in
reception areas237 but this number altered dramatically as the attacks on London
lessened. In 1944 over eight thousand London County Council secondary school
children remained evacuated although some secondary schools had been reopened
to cater for the lower forms as younger un-evacuated children passed scholarship
and needed school places.
By early 1944, the number of evacuees in England and Wales had dropped
considerably238 but the flying bomb attacks on London in July reversed this situation.
Operation Rivulet239 was put into action and unaccompanied school children and
mothers were sent out of danger zones into any area where accommodation could
be found. It has been estimated that 307,000 mothers and children and a further
552,000 unofficial evacuees left London and the south east, supported by
Government free travel vouchers and billeting certificates. While Mass Observation
reported that this was the most successful evacuation240 it does not appear to have
been the case in Wales. In Carmarthenshire, for example, the one hundred and sixty
six mothers with young children, two hundred and eighty unaccompanied school
children; a boys’ secondary school with eight masters, and one hundred and seventy
one elementary school children proved difficult to accommodate.241 There were
instances where “children had been sent down without teachers”242 as was the case
235 R. M. Titmuss, (1950) op.cit. p. 425. 236LMA LCC/EO/WAR/ 01/210 Criticisms of Evacuation General Purposes Sub Committee 20th June 1945 237 In 1940 for example out of 16,025 secondary school children only 901 remained in London. Over 5000
had already sought private evacuation before the outbreak of war in 1939 238 In March 1944 only 123,000 unaccompanied children; 130 mothers and children and 55,000 other adults
remained evacuated in England and Wales R. M. Titmuss, ibid, p. 42. 239 LMA LCC/EO/WARJ 1/194 gives a full account of Operation Rivulet that took place during that year. 240 Mass Observation Bulletin, Dec 1944-Jan 1954 in T. Kushner, (1988) op. cit. p. 281. 241 CAS CC/ED/1/1/31 Education Minutes August 1944. 242 NLW 170,000 Women and Children Evacuated. Western Mail July 21st 1944.
129
at Vaughn’s Charity School.243 In Llandeilo, the local authority had to find
accommodation for four hundred mothers and children despite the fact that they
were already billeting large numbers of evacuees.244 Under these circumstances,
the Billeting Officer decided to inform the Welsh Board of Health that they could
house unaccompanied children, but not mothers because there was “a big event
coming on at Llandebie, the Welsh National Eisteddfod.”245
In Glamorgan “throughout July 1944 thousands of official and unofficial
evacuees of all ages poured into Pontypridd and the Rhondda Valleys from the
London area.246 Operation Rivulet only lasted a few weeks247 but despite this it drew
almost as much criticism as did the first in 1939. The focus of criticism was on the
organisation of the scheme itself, and this was reported widely in local and national
press. London newspapers were extremely vociferous about the treatment that
evacuees had apparently received in some areas.248 At Pontardawe, for example,
billeting volunteers were accused of “hawking children from house to house,”249
although this was refuted by the Welsh Board of Health. Accusations of
unfriendliness were strongly denied and the Chairman of the London County Council
expressed his satisfaction about the treatment that children had received in Port
Talbot250 and evacuated head teachers recorded similar views.251 While the third
evacuation did not last long it was extremely disruptive and local services was once
again put under extreme pressure.
The Ministry of Health had been planning the end of evacuation for some
time and in many ways it was as logistically difficult as it had been at the
beginning.252 Elementary school children had been scattered widely over reception
areas and secondary school children preparing for examinations would need to
243 CAS ED/BK/695/2/4 Llangunnick (Llangynog) Vaughn’s Charity School – Log Book. 244 NLW Saturated with Evacuees Protest. Western Mail July 17th 1944. 245 NLW Western Mail ibid. 246 D. Powell, Pontypridd at War: the Second World War at Home (Merton Press: Cardiff, 1999) p. 138. 247 NA ED 134/203 Replies to Memo to Inspectors MS No 225 (General). At the end of June 1944 there were
479 evacuees in the Pontypridd areas. By the beginning of September there were 2,200. 248 The Clapham Observer published “a long letter from ex-Capt J. E. Tillard of St Dogmaels Cardigan in
which the writer made very scathing comments about Wales and the Welsh people among whom he came to
live six years ago” in NLW Does Wales know there’s a war on? Western Mail Sept 21st 1944. The letter
further commented on the fact that St Dogmaels Workhouse had been used to house evacuees. 249 NLW. Evacuees: Volunteer Staff Vindicated Western Mail July 24th 1944, 250 NLW London Pleased with Warm Hearted Welsh Western Mail September 6th 1944, 251 NLW Llanelly’s Evacuees: Answer to Critics Western Mail September 6th 1944. 252 R. M Titmuss, (1950) op. cit. p. 431.
130
remain evacuated. There were other considerations as many homes in the
evacuation areas had been damaged or destroyed by bombing and would need to
be inspected before evacuees could return; parents had been killed and home
circumstances had changed. In 1945 The Times reported that “Evacuees number
hundreds of thousands and even when the moment comes to give the final ‘all clear’
timetables will have to be fixed and other final arrangements made.”253 Local
authorities were sent precise instructions about the transfer of children back to the
evacuation areas. Mothers and children still billeted in Rhondda Urban District
began to leave on special trains in June 1945 although many evacuees remained
as they had either been made orphans or had no suitable accommodation to return
to. These children were passed into the care of the local authority under the terms
of the Ministry of Health Circular No. 225/45 with all costs being met by the
authority.254 Evacuees and refugees from Belgium, the Channel Islands, Eire and
Northern Ireland were given permission to return255 but Children’s Overseas
Reception Board evacuees return was delayed until 1946 although many of these
remained evacuated to complete their education.256
The final event of evacuation in south and south west Wales was in 1946
when Rochester and Chatham Councils invited children from the reception areas
for a week long official visit “as an expression of gratitude for the great kindness
shown to the Rochester and Chatham children during the war years.”257
Conclusions
The historiography of evacuation clearly shows that its primary intention was
to ensure the physical safety of all vulnerable groups, and undoubtedly it did serve
this purpose well. Unfortunately it also had the unintended consequence of seriously
damaging education provision in England and Wales and it is clear that there was a
total disregard on the part of the Government for the education and welfare of
253 The Times 4th April 1945. 254 TRL Rhondda Urban District Council 1945-1946 Government Evacuation Scheme. School Management
Committee 18th June 1945 p. 1253. 255 The last file in the evacuation series for Glamorgan Education Authority contains copy letters and
circulars about these transfers. GRO GD/E/16/7. 256 P. Y. Lin, National Identity and Social Mobility: class, empire and the British government overseas
education of children during the second world war. Twentieth Century British History, Volume 7 Issue 3
(1996) 310-344, p. 329. 257 TRL Rhondda Urban District Council 1945-1946 (1945) op. cit. Education Committee.
131
millions of school children. The lack of planning for evacuation immediately before
the outbreak of the Second World War led to a series of very damaging events which
took a number of years to rectify. It has been clearly identified that no consideration
was given to the aftermath of the events in Spain and the evacuation of many
unaccompanied school children to Great Britain that followed. It is also the case that
the Ministry of Health, which was in charge of the process, had clear priorities. These
focused mainly on the evacuation of hospitals, the elderly and infirm and mothers
and children, and it is clear that there was interest or understanding of the needs of
unaccompanied children, especially in terms of education and welfare. Their
haphazard billeting in 1939 is evidence of this, and undoubtedly this was
instrumental in the animosity towards evacuees in many areas.
The effect that evacuation had on education cannot be understated and many
factors were detrimental to the service in some way. Although it does not directly
impact on this research perhaps the most important was the complete closure of
schools in evacuating areas. This had serious consequences for non-evacuated
children and early returners as well as on the working lives of teachers, many of
whom were deployed to other work and were lost to the profession. Even after a
partial service was resumed in evacuated areas there was a very high level of
absenteeism; one and a half million children received no education at all, and the
lack of resources and lack of attainment added to “all the traumas of the complete
disruption.”258 In the reception areas while circumstances were quite different, they
were equally as damaging and disrupted.
Education in south and south west Wales had experienced the full effects of
the depression during the 1920s and 1930s and was still largely unreorganised.
There were many small rural schools where poor standards were the norm and
which provided a very inadequate environment for many thousands of
unaccompanied evacuated elementary school children. These evacuees were the
most likely to return home almost immediately and primary resources and anecdotal
evidence indicates a number of issues. Although Lowndes, for example, chose to
paint an idealistic picture of evacuee’s life in the countryside it is abundantly clear
that this was not a true reflection of its reality. Many were taught an unsatisfactory
curriculum, in over crowded and poorly resourced all-age elementary schools, and
258 R. Lowe, ed (1992), op. cit., 1992) p. 9.
132
education for the vast majority was meagre. They had restricted educational lives
and it was frequently the case that they had no opportunity to transfer to a secondary
school as there were often no places available locally. This affected their future life
chances and led to a sense of personal deprivation.
Conversely, children from secondary schools had a much better chance of
receiving a high standard of education. In general, they were evacuated as a whole
school with familiar teachers and continued to follow an appropriate curriculum.
Although, evacuated secondary schools generally had to share premises with local
schools they had access to the necessary resources for teaching and learning,
science laboratories for example. They also had the advantage of remaining as a
cohesive group with a substantial support mechanism. This was very advantageous
and it was the case that secondary school children were the least likely to be early
returners and many remained in reception areas to take their final examinations after
evacuation had ended. They were also treated with a degree of approbation that
appears to mark their place in society. Certainly, the more affluent circumstances of
the sector allowed it to protect its educational environment as well as provide better
social care to pupils.
It is unfortunate that there is little detailed primary evidence about education
during evacuation both because of the decision to reduce the amount of record
keeping kept by schools, and as Parsons reflects evacuation was largely removed
from the public consciousness. It is clear however, that almost all evacuated children
led severely dislocated lives and although this aspect is not discussed in the
research the anecdotal evidence of evacuees indicate that this is was
commonplace. However, it is also doubtful that evacuation alone precipitated
educational change but it was influential in that it raised an awareness of the
inequality within the education system. It is ironic that alongside the turbulence and
disruption of evacuation the Board of Education was planning for substantial
change. Jones refers to this and suggests that
”as with the First World War any analysis of the impact of the war of 1939-1945 must centre around the disruption caused and the movement for reconstruction. The permanent loss of opportunity for many individuals has to be balanced against opportunities for rethinking fundamental educational policies.”259
259 G. E. Jones, Controls and Conflicts in Welsh Secondary Education, (UWP, Cardiff, 1982.) p. 179.
133
Chapter 5 – Reconstruction
“It has been remarked that the periods of great educational activity have synchronised with wars and the Second World War was no exception.”1
This chapter examines the construction of the Education Act 1944. The time
period runs consecutively with that of the previous chapter which examined the
effects that evacuation had on education during war time. The disruption of the
education system at the start of the Second World War was a turning point in public
opinion, and new aspirations brought about by the hardships of war began to
emerge. There was a growing realisation that it would be impossible to return to “the
stagnant, class-ridden society of the 1930s”2 after the end of the war. Dent, writing
in the Times Educational Supplement began to identify the weaknesses in the
education system, and why it was unable to meet the changing demands of society.
He suggested that if there were to be significant change in this situation there would
have to be far more equality in education provision at the end the war.3 These views
collectively “put an end to any immediate prospect of continuing the efforts of mild
reform which had been apparent in the last four years of the interwar period”4 and
promoted a groundswell of antipathy towards Government education policy. This
became even more urgent in the early months of the war when the inadequacy of
planning for education in war time was realised. The criticism was intense. The
haphazard evacuation of thousands of children into reception areas where provision
was barely adequate for local children was, in many cases, disastrous. The planning
for ARP had been focused solely on the protection of life, and the social and
educational implications of evacuation were of little consequence to Government
planners. This chapter examines the criticisms of evacuation, the loss of education
in war time, and the first attempts by the Board of Education to introduce a
purposeful new Education Act. It also considers the role played by R.A. Butler, the
President of the Board of Education, in the negotiations with the organisations that
had an interest in education. Additionally, the chapter scrutinises the implications of
the planned changes to education in Wales, and the ongoing efforts by some Welsh
groups to achieve devolution for the service.
1 Education 1900-1950. The report of the Ministry of Education and the statistics of public education for
England and Wales for the year 1950 (Cmd 8244). p. 9. 2 B. Simon, Education and Social Order 1940-1990 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1991), p. 35. 3 ibid., p. 36. 4 P.H.J.H Gosden, Education in the Second World War (Methuen: London, 1976), p. 237.
134
Overview
During the first month of the war over one million adults and children from
England and Wales were evacuated, and of these approximately half were
unaccompanied school children.5 Many children quickly returned to their home
areas where education provision had been abandoned. It soon became apparent
that “many thousands of children in our large towns are running wild”6 and this
placed the Board of Education and local authorities in an invidious position. The
urgent need to retain children in the reception areas had to be balanced with
providing a service for the large number of children returning to the evacuating
areas. However, if the decision was made to reopen schools it might indicate to
parents that evacuation was no longer necessary. This would anyway have been
very difficult because in evacuated areas a considerable amount of school
accommodation had been acquired by the civil and armed forces, and there was a
shortage of teachers. This combination of factors made reopening schools very
difficult and was further complicated by the continuing waves of evacuation, shortly
followed by the sporadic return of evacuees. The unpredictability of pupil numbers,
especially in heavily evacuated areas, made planning for education almost
impossible.
LEAs in different regions came under different pressures. Some Part III local
authorities in evacuated areas were very badly affected as they lacked the
“administrative resources to cope with emergency situations”7 and Margate, for
example, was without any education provision for over a year. In heavily bombed
areas such as Portsmouth and Liverpool the night time ‘trekking’8 meant that
children were too tired to take advantage of any education on offer. It was, however,
the lack of activity by London County Council which most coloured public
perceptions towards education and made it a focus for close examination. It soon
became evident that there was no education provision in London for the many
returning evacuees,9 and large numbers of children were ‘running loose’ around the
5 NA RG 26/76 Evacuation of school children: Ministry of Health schedules of movements by area under the
Government evacuation scheme, 1939-1942 6 Running Wild. The Times, 25th October, 1939. p. 9. 7 P.H.J.H Gosden, (1976), op.cit., p. 41. 8 ibid., p 49. 9 Estimated at 1,600 during weeks of heavy bombing. NA ED 138/26 Savage to Holmes in P.H.J.H. Gosden
(1976), op. cit., p 49.
135
streets.10 The LEA came under considerable pressure to reopen schools, and by
July 1940 an “emergency service had become well established.”11 However,
provision was inconsistent, generally part-time12 and attendance fluctuated wildly.
By August 1940, officials at the Board of Education began to consider that the
London County Council was “too defeatist in its attitude … It was thought that the
attitude of certain local officials was that elementary education in London was of
little importance and hardly worthwhile.”13
Criticism of war-time education was widespread and few House of Commons
Sittings passed without a question or comment about some aspect of provision. Sir
Percy Harris14 pointed out that, while the quality of education had been poor before
the war, it was now disgraceful: “education has been an afterthought, one of the last
subjects to be discussed … I say that the last six months were the worst period for
education than any other.”15 Sir Percy suggested that the Board of Education
showed lack of vision and had not recognised problems when they had arisen. He
commented that although “The real criminal was Herr Hitler”16 the Board had done
nothing to prevent children missing at least six months of education. William Cove17
was equally condemnatory, pointing out that “the Department has neglected its duty
since the war broke out.”18 He reacted to a trivial comment by Chuter Ede19 about
the rosy glow that evacuated children had acquired in the country and asked
whether the Board of Education actually knew the condition of schools in the
reception areas or the fact that very young children, in all areas, were habitually
being used in menial employment. He also referred to the large numbers of
damaged schools that were not being repaired or replaced because building
materials were not being released, despite the fact that there were high levels of
unemployment amongst builders. There was a growing perception that the Board of
10 NA ED 136/116 Report of Inter-Departmental Committee on Compulsory Evacuation, 28 Nov 1940, in
P.H.J.H Gosden, op. cit., p. 42. 11 ibid., p. 41. 12 The Board of Education estimated that the majority of children received little education as full time
actually equated to one three hour session a day and part time only an hour and a half. 13 P.H.J.H. Gosden, ibid., p. 42. 14 Liberal Member of Parliament for Bethnal Green West. 15 HC Sitting, 5th March 1940, Col. 173-354, Vol. 358. 16 ibid. 17 Labour Member of Parliament for Aberavon. 18 Hansard HC 5th March 1940, ibid. 19 Labour Member of Parliament for Mitcham. Member of the National Union of Teachers. Parliamentary
Secretary to the Board of Education
136
Education had accepted “with equanimity”20 the fact that the education of a
generation of children was lost because it had failed to made adequate
arrangements for education in war time. Cove recalled that in November, 1939, the
Board had been given a clear mandate to ‘get on with the job’ but that it had allowed
other Government departments, such as the Ministry of Health, to interfere and
dictate policy: “This is so serious that the Board of Education should wake up and
give some sense to the country that they are guiding the ship of education.”21 This
kind of comment was common and, in April 1940, the National Union of Teachers,
sent a deputation to the Board of Education with a very critical document: Education
in Wartime. This commented on all aspects of the service: the appropriation of
schools by the military authorities; the housing of children in inadequate and
dangerous alternative buildings; the retention of schools in dangerous areas and the
way teachers were being treated. The National Union of Teachers pressed strongly
for the reintroduction of “full time education of the highest standard.”22
There were also other criticisms not directly associated with the quality of
education provision. These stemmed from a growing perception that the influence
of religion in society had dimished considerably since the start of the twentieth
century. Industrialization and urbanisation23 have been put forward as causal factors
in this decline, but “the erosion of the network of Church involvement in the
communal life of English society”24 is also considered to have been significant.
Regardless of the reasons for this developing secularisation, the influence of religion
on education was, to a large extent, maintained. Cannon points out that this was
two fold. There was an “influence of religion in the schools themselves,”25 as well as
a strong religious presence in policy making. By 1940, however, there was a view
from both the Roman Catholic Church26 and the Church of England that “England
20 H. C. Dent, Education in Transition: A Sociological Study of the impact of war on English Education
(Kegan Paul: London, 1944), p. 7. 21 Hansard HC 5th March 1940, op. cit. 22 ‘War-Time Educational Deficiencies: N.U.T. Deputation to the Board.’ The Schoolmaster Woman
Teacher’s Chronicle. 18th April, 1940. 23 R. Pope, R. Building Jerusalem: non-conformity, Labour and the social question in Wales 1906-1939,
second edn (UWP: Cardiff, 1998) for example. 24 S. Parker, Faith on the Home Front: Aspects of Church Life and Popular Religion in Birmingham 1939 –
1945 (Peter Lang: Bern, 2005), p. 17 25 C. Cannon, The Influence of Religion on Educational Policy, 1902-1944. British Journal of Educational
Studies, 12 (2): (1964) 143 – 160, p 143. 26 K. Elliott, Between two worlds: the Catholic educational dilemma in 1944. History of Education, Vol 33
No 6: (2004), 661-682.
137
was in danger of becoming an irrelgious country.”27 A leader in The Times reported
that large numbers of children were completely ignorant of any religious matters, a
fact that was perceived to be related both to a decline in Sunday school attendance,
and to the fact that in some schools, religion was not taught as part of the curriculum.
It was argued that it was essential that a country which was “professedly Christian”28
should re-examine the teaching of of religion in the state education system.
The place of religion in society had already been brought to the fore in
December 1939, when Pope Pius XII addressed he College of Cardinals29 to ouline
the Five Points for Peace which he considered essenial to bring a sense of well
being back to the world. In 1940, these points were augmented by others devised
by the Roman Catholic Church, the Free Churches and the Church of England which
emphasised the importance of the family as a social unit, and the need for all
children to have equal opportunities in education to meet their own particlular
needs.30 A series of letters to The Times from religious leaders31 and the National
Society32 accompanied demands for increased religious teaching in schools,
supported by the publication of a number of pamphlets which were widely advertised
in The Times.33 These events firmly established the church’s position in regard to
any changes in education provision that were already being planned. In August
1941, R. A. Butler, President of the Board of Education, met a deputation from the
Anglican and Free Churches to discuss the Five Points for Peace.34 This marked
the start of a series of extensive discussions with faith groups to try to reach an
agreement over the position of denominational education in England and Wales.
The most frequent meetings were with the Church of England but those with the
Roman Catholic, Free Churches and Jewish organisations were much less
frequent.35 Although discussions were generally cordial “there was a hint of the old
27 S. J. D. Green, The 1944 Education Act: A Church –State Perspective. Parliamentary History, Vol 19,
Issue 1: (2000), p. 152. 28 Religion and National Life, The Times Feb 17, 1940: p. 7 in S. J. D. Green, ibid., p. 152.
29 Address (in questo giorno) of Pope Pius XII to the Sacred College of Cardinals on Christmas Eve 1939.
The Catholic Truth Society. http://www.iwm.org.uk/collections/item/publication/80002234. 30 Cosmo Cantuar, Cardinal Hinsley, Walter H Armstrong, William Ebor. Foundations of Peace; A Christian
Bias: Agreement among the Churches, The Times Dec 21 1940: p. 5. 31 Richard Southwark, Religion and the Nation: the present obstacles, The Times Feb 23rd 1940. 32 Caroline B Bridgeman, The United Front, The Times Feb 27 1940 33 CofERC NS/10/5/15 Pamphlets in Education, Vol 15, No 30 Christian Education.; NS/10/5/15 Pamphlets
in Education, Vol. 15, No 28, Evangelism through Education, Opportunities for Advance in Time of War. 34 Cosmo Cantaur, Archbishop of Canterbury; Cardinal Hinsley Archbishop of Westminster; Walter H.
Armstrong, Moderator Free Church Council and William Ebor, Archbishop of York There was no
representation from the Church in Wales or the Jewish faith at this meeting 35 BodL CPA RAB 2/1 Outline of How Educational Reconstruction Grew 1944, p. 2.
138
animosity”36 between the different religious organisations when, for example, Dr
Scott Lidgett37 commented that there were “submerged rocks”38 in the way of
progress.
The condemnations of state education reached a climax in 1941. There was
a quite remarkable consensus for reconstruction and a real perception that there
could be no return to pre-war education or standards. Despite this, there was no
unanimity of policy about a new structure and each of the influential groups put
forward their ideas, based loosely around their identifying ideologies of education.
Agitation by the Labour Party for education reform had continued unabated
throughout the interwar years although there was little consistency in their demands.
Tawney’s ‘Secondary Education for All’39 was their agreed position but the actual
shape proposed for secondary education was unclear. However, during the mid-
1930s, the Labour Party had entered a period of “reinvigorated left wing
revivalism.”40 The militant National Union of Labour Teachers suggested the
complete removal of the existing education structure and its replacement with
‘common’ secondary schools with different curricula to meet the needs of all
children. Barker suggests that “This proposal was both totally egalitarian, and in the
context of educational values then current in the party, totally utopian.”41 Labour
Party thinking at the time remained in favour of selective grammar schools although,
at the same time, was looking for parity within the system. Multilateral schools were
seen as a solution to this dilemma, and some Members of Parliament, including
George Tomlinson,42 considered that it had a “practical air about it”43 as well as
electoral advantages. However, there was little unanimity within the Labour Party
about education and it continued to vacillate both about policy and implementation.
36 BodL CPA RAB 2/1 op. cit., p. 1. 37 Theologian and Minister of the British Methodists. Alderman of the London County Council. Vice
Chancellor of the University of London. 38 BodL ibid., p. 1 39 R. H. Tawney, Secondary Education for All: A Policy for Labour (The Education Advisory Committee of
the Labour Party: London, 1926) 40 R. Barker, Education and Politics 1900-1951 A Study of the Labour Party (Clarendon Press: Oxford,
1972), p. 66. 41 ibid., p. 67. 42 George Tomlinson, Member of Parliament or Farnworth, Lancashire. He was appointed as Minister of
Education in 1947 in the Labour administration after the death of Ellen Wilkinson.. 43 R. Barker, ibid., p. 73.
139
The Conservative Party, on the other hand, was determined that any change
to the system would be minimal and the “sub sets”44 of elementary and secondary
education would remain. It had presided over the Geddes Committee cuts to
education during the 1920s as well as those of the May45 and Ray46 Committees in
the 1930s, and while these had had little effect on secondary schools the elementary
sector had suffered considerably. The Conservative party was implacably opposed
to raising the school leaving age, influenced by the lobbying of industrialists, in order
to maintain a supply of cheap labour. However, the advent of war and the need for
political parties to work co-operatively gave the Labour Party an opportunity to put
pressure on the Conservatives, and the Coalition government “proved to be the
greatest reforming administration since the Liberal government of 1905-1914.”47
Although the Coalition Government was overwhelmingly Conservative “mostly of the
old-fashioned sort,”48 there was also a small group who were more progressive in
terms of reform. These, together, with strong Labour influences49 resulted in a new
political middle ground50 that reflected a popular demand for reform but which
ultimately could not conceal or overcome the deep divisions between the parties.51
Agitation for reform in Parliament was accompanied by a series of pamphlets
from different interest groups which laid out their philosophy and ideas for
reconstruction. The first report of the Conservative Central Committee on Post-War
Problems: Looking Ahead: Educational Aims52 stood apart from the other published
analysis of education provision “by virtue of being almost wholly a philosophical
treatise.”53 It stressed that the role of the State in education provision should ensure
that future citizens would understand and be intellectually fit to fulfil their obligations
44 B. Simon, (1991), op.cit., p. 25. 45 The Committee on National Expenditure (May Committee) was set up to suggest ways the government
could curb expenditure. It was chaired by Sir George May. It recommended, in 1931, extensive public sector
spending cuts, including cutting unemployment benefit, and increased taxation. See B. Simon, (1974), op.
cit., pp. 171-178 46 Report of the Committee on Local Expenditure (England and Wales) 1932 (Cmd 4200). This
recommended aggressive cuts to the education budget particularly in respect to teachers’ pay. See B. Simon,
(1974.) ibid, pp. 187-192. 47 P. Addison, The Road to 1944: British Politics and the Second World War (Pimlico: 1994), p. 14. 48 B. Simon, The 1944 Education Act: A Conservative Measure? History of Education, (1988), 31-43, p. 41. 49 B. Simon, (1988) ibid., p. 42. 50 P. Addison, ibid., p. 14. 51 K. Jefferys, British Politics and Social Policy during the Second World War The Historical Journal, Vol
30: (1987), 123 - 144. 52 Looking Ahead: Educational Aims The First Interim Report of the Conservative Sub-Committee on
Education. Central Committee on Port War Re-construction (Conservative and Unionist Party: 1942). 53 H. C. Dent, (1944), op. cit., p. 185.
140
to society.54 It questioned the diminishing role that religion played in British life and
drew attention to the fact that the Conservative Party favoured the Church of
England above other denominations.”55 However, the document also suggested that
the State should be even handed to all religious groups by recommending that a
common syllabus for religious education was used in all schools. The Report was
fulsome in its praise of the independent school sector, which it believed had
contributed greatly to the development of leadership in Great Britain, and should be
retained at all costs. Looking Ahead: Educational Aims was severely criticised by
some members of the Conservative party “who according to their particular brand
of conservatism variously described it as “‘pale pink slosh’ or ‘undiluted Fascism!”56
Dent however, suggests that the views the report put forward “were essentially
sound”57 and unlike other memoranda on education published during the period
“analyses and seriously grapples with fundamental issues.”58 Its major failing was,
however, to fully understand the relationship between the state and the individual
within education provision.
While the Conservative Party presented a somewhat negative philosophy,
other groups concentrated on developing a new structure for secondary education
and raising the school leaving age. The actual shape of the structure was less clear,
but multilateral education was beginning to emerge as the front runner for provision.
Raising the school leaving age was a unanimous aim across a spectrum of
educational groups and the political parties to the left of centre.59 At the 1942 Labour
Party Conference, Harold Clay moved a Resolution that demanded education
provision that centred on the child, not on parents ability to pay school fees.60 The
focus of Clay’s proposals was equality, and he demanded that local authorities
should be forced to ensure that all children received the same level of provision.61
While the Resolution was seconded, the Associated Society of Locomotive
Engineers and Firemen delegate moved an amendment that the school leaving age
should be raised to sixteen instead of fifteen even if attendance in the last year was
part-time. There were demands that Government should be pressed to deal
54 Looking Ahead, op. cit., p. 38. 55 Looking Ahead, ibid., p. 26. 56 H. C. Dent, (1944) op. cit., p. 188. 57 ibid., p. 188. 58 Ibid., p. 188. 59 B. Simon, (1991), op.cit., p. 50. 60 PHM Labour Party Conference Report (Transport House: 1942), p. 140. 61 Labour Party Conference Report, ibid., p. 140.
141
immediately with the anticipated problems of shortages of accommodation and
teachers, “because practically every Party believes in increasing the school leaving
age at present.”62
In 1942, the Trades Union Council produced a pamphlet, Education After the
War,63 outlining its proposals for post-primary education. It presented the long held
aspirations of the Labour Party, ‘Secondary Education for All’ with the proviso that
this should be provided in multilateral schools. The school leaving age should be
raised immediately with no exemptions, with a definite date set for raising to it to
sixteen, and continuation schools should cater for the post sixteen age group who
were not in full time education. These latter would provide a general curriculum
“but the aim should be to create in each student a social awareness, a sense of citizenship, and a true sense of his own responsibility for the full development of his own capabilities as a human being.”64
The undated memorandum Britain’s Schools laid out the proposals of the
Communist Party and although not offering any radically different proposals for
reform, stressed that “The war has shown the need for an educational system free
from class privilege, providing greater technical and scientific knowledge, and
including improved welfare service.”65 In common with demands from other groups,
the Communist Party insisted that the school leaving age should be raised
immediately and all education should be free, with maintenance allowances paid to
all pupils without any means testing “so that financial considerations have no
influence in shaping a child’s career.”66 A major Communist Party aim was the
establishment of a school welfare service which would provide nursery education,
free meals, milk and medical treatment as these would remove the inequalities of
home circumstances.67
The Association of Directors and Secretaries of Education, although
supporting change, was less ambitious in its aims and proposed “adapting and
62 PHM Labour Party Conference Report op. cit., Cllr T. P. Riley (Litchfield D.I.P), p. 143. 63 Memorandum on Education after the War, (Trades Union Council, 1942.) 64 ibid., Paragraphs 27-28. 65 Britain’s Schools (Communist Party of Great Britain), p. 1. 66 Britain’s Schools, ibid., p. 17. 67 Britain’s Schools, ibid., p. 17.
142
expanding the educational system to meet post war needs.”68 It recognised that the
current system of elementary and secondary education reflected the “British
character rather than our democratic ideals”69 and to change this, all schools,
including the independent sector, should be merged into one free system. In the
short term, there should be a concerted effort to reclaim and repair school buildings
and to improve and extend teacher training to provide sufficient staffing to deal with
the raising of the school leaving age. Although there were some differences in ideas
and philosophy between the groups “there was a widespread and common
determination on a rapid and major thrust forward”70 in terms of reconstruction of
education provision.
The Green Book: Education After the War, 1941 – 1942
Pressure for education reform was constant during the first few years of the
war and widely reported in the press. The Times Education Supplement demanded,
through editorials and articles, that Government implement educational change as
soon as possible.71 Similarly, the Schoolmaster & Woman Teacher’s Chronicle
included editorials which suggested that the experiences of evacuation, and the
problems encountered by teachers made reform and change an imperative.72 The
events of the war, Dunkirk, followed by the Battle of Britain appeared to show that,
for Great Britain, anything was possible.73 The feeling of war time co-operation
reinforced this and the climate of optimism in the country led to “a passion for making
social reconstruction plans … Education was very much to the fore.”74
The pressure for reform did not go unnoticed at the Board of Education, and
in November 1940, Maurice Holmes75 wrote a Memorandum76 for internal
circulation, which set out some ideas for the future of education. He considered that
68 Education: A Plan for the Future, (The Association of Directors and Secretaries of Education OUP:
Oxford, 1942), p. 2. 69 Education: A Plan for the Future, ibid, p. 3. 70 B. Simon, (1991), op.cit., p. 51. 71 Times Educational Supplement, 25th Aug 1940, p. 319; 2 Nov 1940, p. 427, in P.H.J.H Gosden, (1976),
op.cit., p. 237. 72 Dr H. G. Stead, A Better Education Becomes Imperative, Schoolmaster & Woman Teacher’s Chronicle
2nd May 1940. 73 N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, A Place for Everyone: A history of education from the eighteenth century
to the 1970s (Victor Gollancz: London, 1976), p. 206. 74N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, op. cit., p. 207. 75 Permanent Secretary to the Board of Education. 76 Entitled Education After the War – this was never published externally.
143
in view of the continuing agitation from unofficial sources that it was important for
the Board of Education to lead and not follow in the matter of reconstruction. While
there was a possibility that Government might, in the future, set up an official
committee to consider the matter, it was important that the Board should be clear in
its own mind what would be needed for education post war, and that in this instance,
a formal committee with terms of reference would be “a mistake.”77 An internal
collective discussion, which also considered outside ideas and proposals, would be
most effective. The main focus was however, towards change and there was a clear
view that half-hearted measures in reconstruction would not be sufficient. As a
result, The Committee of Senior Officers on Post-war Educational Reconstruction
was set up in 1940.
The fact that many Board of Education staff had been evacuated to
Bournemouth, and their work load reduced offered a hiatus and the opportunity to
reflect on the “the educational problems which may arise when the war is over.”78
Maurice Holmes asked senior officials to consider what these might be and to
suggest some solutions. He proposed that the five Principal Assistant Secretaries
of the Board of Education79: together with HMI80 and a representative from the
Welsh Department81 meet unofficially and offer provisional suggestions on
reconstruction of the service. He insisted that they should plan for the long term and
work co-operatively “because only confusion will result if each branch thinks about
its own problems in isolation.”82 He also suggested that officials should take account
of the opinions about education reconstruction that were being published by “less
official authorities.”83
The correspondence between the unofficial committee in Bournemouth and
the remainder of the Board of Education officials based in London indicates that
there was a continual interchange of ideas with other Government departments.
Central to these was the proposal to change the way education was administered.
77 NA ED 136/212 Private Office: Files and Papers (Series II). Education After the War – Green Book
Drafting Papers Preliminary papers Internal Memorandum from Maurice Holmes. Port War Education
Reconstruction, 5th November, 1940. 78 NA ED 136/212 Undated Memorandum from Maurice Holmes Permanent Secretary to the Board of
Education. 79 G. G. Williams, W.C. Cleary, H. B. Wallis, S. H. Wood and N.D. Bosworth Smith. 80 F. R. G. Duckworth, R. H. Charles, W. Elliott and Miss Hammonds. 81 Wynn Weldon, Permanent Secretary for the Welsh Department. 82 NA. ED 136/212 Undated Memorandum. 83 NA ED 136/212 Undated Memorandum.
144
This would entail the removal of Part III local authorities and create larger units, at
county and borough council level which would oversee all aspects of education. It
was considered that this added power would “obviously appeal to the vanity and
self-importance of the L.E.As.”84 D Du B Davidson,85 pointed out that there were
arguments for and against larger Local Education Authorities but that “the low
average level of Directors of Education at present does not particularly encourage
one to accept the idea.”86 R. S. Wood87 wrote reminding Holmes of the “partnership”
that had developed between the Board and the Local Education Authorities and
while at the start of the relationship the Board was the senior partner the local
authorities had become confident and now jealously guarded their powers.88 As a
result the Board had become less influential and Wood suggested that the time had
come for the Board to take control and the lead on policy.89 He also suggested that
teachers’ organisations should be a third partner in the relationship and should be
involved in any planning processes. HMI should link the three groups.
The Committee of Senior Officers on Post-war Educational Reconstruction
begun their discussions by reviewing the terms of the Education Act 1936.
Continuation schools, although these had never proved viable or popular, were
central to their thinking and were to be improved and followed by
“some form of national service, less military, would be determined by the circumstances and national temper of the time. This will go a long way to breaking down class misunderstandings, and give us a real basis of national unity.”90
The elementary sector would be redefined. It would be divided into two, primary and
secondary as recommended in The Education of the Adolescent91 and the school
leaving age raised to fifteen There were lengthy discussion between the Assistant
Permanent Secretaries about what shape post primary education might take in the
future. It appears that Griffiths G. Williams, head of the secondary branch, and
William Cleary, head of the elementary branch had quite different ideas. Williams
84 NA ED 136/212, op.cit., Memorandum, D Du B D to unofficial Committee, November 1940. 85 Accountant General at the Board of Education. 86 NA ED 136/212. 87 Deputy Secretary to the Board of Education. 88 NA ED 136/212 Letter from R. S. Wood to Maurice Holmes, 8th November 1940. 89 NA ED 136/212 ibid. 90 NA ED 136/212 Education Reconstruction note Deputy Secretary R. S. Wood. 91 The Education of the Adolescent (HMSO: London, 1926).
145
considered the protection of the endowed grammar schools critical and wanted to
make them even more academic and selective.92 Cleary, on the other hand,
favoured multilateral schools which he saw as “politically essential,”93 as well as the
solution to many of the existing organisational problems. He suggested a two-year
common curriculum for all pupils with decisions about placement in either the
secondary, technical or modern options delayed until a child was thirteen. The issue
over the age of transfer to secondary school was an important one. One idea was
that all children should attend at modern school from eleven to thirteen when
selection would take place and “when a child’s own wishes were then clearer and
his parents were less likely to force an unsuitable career on him.”94 HMI
representatives considered this impractical as it would not allow sufficient time to
complete any worthwhile course of study. A further objection was that unless
transfer was made at eleven it would be very difficult to implement the proposal to
eliminate the Part III authorities because, it could be argued, that elementary
education would still remain in place. In addition, if the break was later that eleven
it would complicate the organisation of secondary schools and not allow enough
time for implementation of examination based curricula, particularly in languages. It
was predicted that a late transfer would cause a major problem in Wales where
there were “a large number of very small elementary schools and it is not easy to
face with equanimity a prospect of leaving boys and girls between eleven and
thirteen years of age to the tender mercies of many of the women head teachers
often working in premises which are inadequate.”95 The eventual arbitrator over the
process was Maurice Holmes, who claimed that he spoke for the President, and
decided that transfer from primary schools at eleven years of age would be most
appropriate. There is no evidence to suggest that this was in fact the case, and it is
generally thought that Holmes was presenting his personal views about the structure
of education.96
In December 1940, R. S. Wood wrote to colleagues in Bournemouth that
reconstruction planning was to include only politically acceptable elements.97 He
92 R.G. Wallace, The Origins and Authorship of the 1944 Education Act. History of Education, Vol 10, No 4:
(1981) 283-290, p. 283. 93 P.H.J.H. Gosden, (1976), op. cit., p. 247. 94 ibid., p. 256. 95 NA ED 136/212 Break in School Life. 96 R. G. Wallace, (1981) ibid.; K. Jefferys, British Politics and Social Policy during the Second World War.
The Historical Journal, Vol 30: (1987) 123 – 144.; B. Simon, (1988), op. cit. 97 NA ED 136/212 Policy and Planning for Post-War Education, p. 1.
146
suggested that “there are straws to be found in Cabinet papers and elsewhere which
indicate which way the wind is blowing.”98 This assumed that after the war,
reconstruction would need to be radical and “the order will still be ‘Forward March’,
not ‘As You Were’.”99 Wood pressed officials to be bold but not to abandon all the
old ideas and practices as there should be harmony between them, and new
thinking.100 He also pointed out that drawing up an outline plan was relatively easy
and based on the existing legislation of primary, secondary and further education.
His personal thoughts was that raising the school leaving age to sixteen would allow
for the completion of a variety of courses planned to meet the needs of both pupils
as well as the locality in which they lived. It would be necessary to give thought to
the organisation of secondary schools in sparcely populated areas and that these
might be multilateral. Key to the success would be that all schools should be under
one set of regulations and have parity of accomodation and staffing.
In January 1941, George Crystal101 requested that Maurice Holmes provide
some ideas for education reconstruction after the war.102 There was already criticism
about lack of progress, especially as “the anaesthetic effect of the Battle of Britain
and the concentrated night air raids”103 had begun to dissipate. He was anxious to
discuss what was already being done, and any proposals there might be for
reorganisation.104 Holmes’ response was that although a great deal of work had
already been completed, nothing had been decided but there had already been
consultation with local authorities and teachers unions.105 In 1940, the unofficial
committee of became the Committee of Senior Officers on Post-war Educational
Reconstruction. By the following May, it was ready to present memoranda published
as a Green Book: Education After the War106 for discussion. This was, in essence,
a mix of new ideas combined with retention of some previous legislation and earlier
recommendations. It was divided into thirteen sections and it became apparent,
during the discussions that followed that some were far more controversial than
98 NA ED 136/212 Policy and Planning for Post-War Education, ibid., p. 1. 99 ibid., p. 1. 100 ibid., p. 1. 101 Permanent Head of the Ministry of Health and Chair of the Cabinet Reconstruction Committee 102 N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, op. cit., p. 209. 103 BodL Conservative Party Archive RA. Butler Personal Files on Education 2/1 Personal Education File,
September 1943-May 1945: Outline of How Education Reconstruction Grew, 1944. 104 NA ED 136/212, Sir George Crystal to M. Holmes, 22nd January 1941. 105 NA ED 136/212, Holmes to Crystal, 24th January 1941. 106 N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, ibid., Appendix p. 390.
147
others. The forward of the document recognised that previous legislation had not
enabled education to reach
“the social ideal which the Prime Minister has set before us of ‘establishing a state of society where the advantages and privileges, which have been enjoyed only by a few, shall be far more widely shared by men and youth of the nation as a whole’ ”107
One of the major problems of previous legislation had been that it was not
mandatory, and as a result allowed local authorities to implement it as they saw
fit.108 The Green Book proposed changing the Board of Education to a Ministry
which would have far greater powers. It would also have full responsibility for all the
matters to do with children that were currently administered by different Government
Departments. There was also an intention to place responsibility for all education in
the hands of County or Borough local authorities. This rationalisation had been
proposed in the Hadow Report; in the recommendations of the May Committee109
and was in line with proposals of other Government Departments.110 There would
be a considerable simplification of organisation as, at the time, there were three
hundred and fifteen local education authorities in England and Wales and the Green
Book proposed that this number should be reduced to one hundred and forty six.
However, any restructuring of local administration had the potential to be difficult as
it soon became clear that Part III authorities had no intention of surrendering their
control of education without a fight.
The main plank of the Green Book’s plan for reconstruction was that all age
elementary provision would be replaced with primary and secondary schools. The
plan was that the secondary sector should be tripartite, and grammar, ‘modern’ and
technical schools which would offer individual children “the education from which he
is best capable of profiting.”111 However, if this reorganisation was to take place, a
solution had to be found for the problem of the non-provided sector which had
effectively prevented earlier education reforms. Although fewer in number, non-
provided schools were still numerous, and in 1938 catered for about thirty percent
107 N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, op.cit., p. 391. 108 Education Act 1918. 8 & 9 GEO. 5. CH. 39. 109 P.H.J.H. Gosden, (1976), op.cit., p. 295. For example. Middlesex had 12 Part III authorities and
Lancashire 27. 110 ibid., p. 296, 111 N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, op. cit., p. 393.
148
of children educated in England and Wales.112 Only a small percentage of these
pupils were in reorganised senior schools113 and none were in Wales. While
“sectarian and political interests”114 had been instrumental in supporting these
schools during the interwar years it was not always acknowledged that the close
association between the Anglican Church and the Conservative Party or between
the Non-conformist churches and the Labour Party had played a significant part in
the ongoing problems. It was clear that a solution to this would have to be found if
there was to be “any measure of large scale reform”115 as the problem was politically
sensitive. Delicate negotiations would be needed if they were to be overcome.
The Green Book proposed a solution of the problems of the non-provided
school system that was reasonably straightforward and largely financial. In simple
terms the local authorities would take over the management of all non-provided
primary schools but would be able to close any which were unviable or deficient. If
church authorities objected to this they would have to bring their school stock up to
a required standard. If religious groups chose to build their own secondary schools
they would have to finance these themselves and be responsible for all future
maintenance. There was no requirement for the LEAs to fund aided or endowed
grammar schools but if they chose to do so they could demand greater control over
their governance. The main bone of contention between the provided and non-
provided sectors remained the place of religious education in the curriculum. While
non-provided schools focused on denominational teaching, the state sector offered
a non- sectarian religious curriculum. It was proposed that an Agreed Syllabus of
Religious Education would be taught in all primary schools with a conscience clause
for staff and pupils.116 If any part of the non-provided sector refused to accept an
Agreed Syllabus it would remain outside local authority control and lose funding for
new schools. One major change would be in the new responsibilities of local
authorities in the appointment and dismissal of teachers in all primary schools, and
in agreement with the appointment of Governors at secondary level. The only
112 There were 10,533 voluntary schools in England and Wales catering for 1,374,000 children compared
with 10,363 council schools with 3,151,000 pupils. N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, op. cit., p. 225. 113 In 1935 there were 2,774 reorganised elementary schools in England and Wales. Of these 259 were
Church of England and 82 in Roman Catholic schools. Education in 1935 being the report of the Board of
Education and the statistics of public education for England and Wales 1935-36, (Cmd 5290), p. 39. 114 N. Middleton and S. Weitzman, ibid., p. 442. 115 M. Cruikshank, Church and State in English Education (Macmillan: London, 1964), p. 139. 116 S. G. Parker, R. Freathy and Jonathan Doney, The professionalisation of non-denominational religious
education in England: politics, organisation and knowledge. Journal of Beliefs & Values: Studies in Religion
& Education, Volume 37, Issue 2: (2016), 201-238, pp. 26-27.
149
exception to this would be that reserved117 teachers would be appointed by the
Managers but appointments would have to be approved by the local authority.
Maurice Holmes was determined that the document, Education After the War,
should remain confidential and disseminated only to educationalists. Politicians and
the public, ‘the amateurs,’118 would be excluded from discussion until a policy had
been decided119 as it was in no way a final document.120 The circulation list was
long,121 and in the event, it was “distributed in such a blaze of secrecy that it
achieved an unusually high degree of publicity.”122 The distribution list omitted a
number of significant religious bodies: the Roman Catholic Church, the Jewish
Community and the Church in Wales. The Bishop of St Asaph,123 pointed out that
although he had heard that there was an intention to introduce a new Education Bill,
the Church in Wales had not been consulted.124
Despite the attempts at secrecy, in early 1941 Herwald Ramsbottom125
began promoting the, as yet unpublished, ideas for reconstruction telling the
Workers’ Education Association and the National Union of Teachers that “The Board
was planning a new testament of education which would include raising the school
leaving age.”126 A month later he was reported as saying that continuation classes
would be a key element in any new legislation.127 These comments made
educationalists suspicious that the Government was planning, not reconstruction,
117 Those teachers with special training to teach denominational catechisms of a particular faith. 118 R.G. Wallace, (1981) op.cit., p. 283. 119 ibid., p. 283. 120 NA ED 136/212 Minute, M. G. Holmes, 13th May, 194. 121 Hansard HC. Written answers Thursday, 31st July, 1941. Columns: 1540-1570 Volume 373: Local
Education Authorities' representatives. Association of Education Committees. County Councils'
Association. Association of Municipal Corporations. Federation of Welsh Local Education Authorities.
London County Council. Association of Directors and Secretaries. Federation of Part III Education
Committees. Teachers' representatives. National Union of Teachers. Association of Head Masters.
Association of Head Mistresses. Association of Assistant Masters. Association of Assistant Mistresses.
Headmasters' Conference. Association of Principals of Technical Institutions. Association of Teachers in
Technical Institutions. Association of Technical Institutions. National Society of Art Masters. Tutorial
Classes, Joint Advisory Committee. Joint Standing Committee of the Training College Association and
Principals of Training Colleges. Universities, Consultative Committee of Vice-Chancellors and Principals.
Association of Principals of Recognised Training Colleges of Domestic Subjects. National. Froebel
Foundation. Churches. National Society. Catholic Education Council. National Free Church Council. Other
Associations. Central Welsh Board. Workers' Educational Association. Trades Union Congress. British and
Foreign Schools Society. 122 W. O. Lester Smith, To whom do the Schools Belong. (1942), p. 155 in R.G. Wallace, ibid., p. 286. 123 Chair of the Education Committee of the Church in Wales. 124 NLW SD/ED 22-30 Minutes of the Education Committee of the Governing Body of the Church in Wales
9th July 1942. 125 President of the Board of Education. 126 School Till 16, The Times Feb 19th 1941. 127 Education after the War, The Times March 17th, 1941.
150
but a return to the legislation of previous Education Acts. Certainly, it was thought
that as soon as conditions allowed the Education Act 1936 would be reinstated and
that raising the school leaving age would be replaced by the continuation classes
that dated from the Education Act 1918. However, the memorandum: Outline of How
Educational Reconstruction Grew suggests that Ramsbottom’s interventions were
a deliberate ploy “to steady public opinion, to raise morale in the educational world
and incidentally, to help the Department’s prestige.”128
The limited circulation of the Green Book caused a storm of controversy.
Articles in the educational press suggested that the secrecy surrounding the Green
Book was mystifying, and it was in everyone’s interest that its content was made
public as ‘this country does not favour reform by cabal or in camera.”129
Ramsbottom’s response was that it included embryonic views and had been
published only for discussion. Details would only be released when the Board was
ready to do so.130 This veil of secrecy continued even after R.A. Butler was
appointed as President in July 1941. He came under enormous pressure to release
the contents of the document to a growing number of interested and irritated
organisations. However, it was clear that the Board of Education officials wanted to
retain the high ground and not publish their ideas until they were certain of a good
response. While the name of R. A. Butler is synonymous with the Education Act
1944, his appointment as President to the Board of Education came after the
publication of the Green Book and he was not involved with its original philosophy
and ideas. These, apart from aspects of non-provided legislation, went forward
almost unchanged to the White Paper of 1943 and the Education Act in 1944.
Butler’s role was principally in diplomatically resolving the many difficulties that
arose the proposals for reconstruction.
Towards the White Paper, Education Reconstruction, 1942 – 1943
R.A. Butler was faced with a number of major obstacles in introducing new
legislation. Education had assumed a low priority and Churchill was determined that
nothing should detract from the war effort. However, the many criticisms of provision
during the first year of the war had forced Government to accept that change was
128 Bod L CPA RAB 2/1. 129 In the Times Educational Supplement for example, in P.H.J.H Gosden, (1976), op. cit., p. 266. 130 ibid., p. 266.
151
inevitable. This was despite the fact that the coalition government was dominated
by “the old fashioned traditional Tory type,”131 whose attitudes to education
published in two reports132 were “more akin to fascist ideology than democratic
reform.”133
The Green Book, Education after the War, identified three issues for change:
the reorganisation of the administration of education; the changes to the non-
provided sector and the proposed tripartite scheme for secondary education. As a
result, Butler was faced with a three pronged attack which began in 1942 and lasted
until 1944. Changes to non-provided provision were the most controversial of all the
proposals and the only one that underwent major changes before the publication of
the White Paper134 in 1943. It appears that some efforts were made to diffuse the
difficulties that surrounded this as officials did their utmost to give it “a tactical lack
of prominence.”135 In much the same way other controversial issues “were removed
from the official discussions by the President’s device of appointing special
enquiries.”136 After Butler’s appointment there was a period of intense discussion
between him and denominational groups.137 Briefing notes indicate that solutions to
the deep seated divisions were being sought to try to prevent any reawakening of
old religious animosities during a period when the nation should be fully focused on
the war effort. The Government needed to find a middle ground between the Trades
Union Congress and non-conformists who were demanding a secular system; the
Bishops of the Church of England who wanted denominational teaching in all
schools, and the Roman Catholic hierarchy who wanted the state to fund the
building of all their new schools.138
Over the course of the next few years Butler had long and extensive
discussions with various organisations in an attempt to reach an agreement over
the position of non-provided schools. The majority of these took place after the
131 B. Simon, (1991), op. cit., p. 66. 132 The two from the Conservative Sub-Committee on Education were ‘Looking Ahead’ Educational Aims
1942 and A Plan for Youth. See footnote B. Simon, ibid, p. 84. See also J. Harris Political ideas and the
debate on State welfare, 1940-1945 in H.L. Smith, ed War and Social Change (MUP: Manchester, 1986). 133 B. Simon, (1991.) ibid., p. 66. 134 White Paper: Educational Reconstruction (HMSO: 1943). 135 BodL CPA RAB 2/1 Memorandum Outline of How Educational Reconstruction Grew, p. 2. 136 BodL CPA RAB 2/1 ibid., p. 2. These were The Norwood Report 1943; the Fleming Report 1944; the
McNair Report 1944 and the Wolfenden Report 1944. 137 BodL CPA RAB 2/1 Memorandum ibid. 138 BodL CPA RAB 2/1 The Dual System Review of the Situation in the Light of Discussions, Sept. 1942.
152
publication of the White Paper: Educational Reconstruction, but preliminary talks
began as soon as Butler became President of the Board of Education. The meetings
were generally cordial139 but this cordiality did not extend to the negotiations with
the Roman Catholic Hierarchy. Negotiations between it and the Board of Education
were very difficult,140 and initially delayed because of the Archbishop of
Westminster, Cardinal Hinsley, objections to all proposals.141 As an example of this,
at a meeting with Cardinal Vance,142 Butler remarked on Cardinal Hinsley’s
“intemperate language”143 in a letter to the Chancellor of the Exchequer in which he
refered to the Green Book as “a shame, an iniquity.”144 The lengthy exchanges
between Butler and the Roman Catholic Hierarchy that followed, indicate that the
problem lay, not so much in the proposed changes, but in a determination by it to
force Government to build and maintain their schools. It wanted a return to the terms
of the Education Act 1936 where there was an intention to give grant aid to the non-
provided sector to build new schools and the Roman Catholic Church had made
substantial plans to take advantage of this generous offer.145 Even then, the Catholic
Education Council had been concerned that the Act was damaging because it had
“made a great incursion into the dual system in that it provided for syllabus
instruction only in voluntary schools where parents desired it.”146 Catholic demands
for new legislation were simple: hundred per cent grant for the erection of new
school buildings and absolutely no interference in denominational religious
education in their schools. Butler believed that it was important to be able to divorce
the Church’s determination to obtain funding from the settlment of the dual system
and that the large numbers of
“Catholics in England should be carried along with us and should, at any rate understand what we have in mind and not have meetings with the Bishop … complaining of the vindictive attitude in Government which does not exist.”147
At the same time as the Roman Catholic Hierarchy was demanding a high
level of state funding it had a fall back posiiton. This was to try to persuade the Board
139 BodL CPA RAB 2/1, ibid., p. 1. 140 AAW BO 1/189. 141 See AAW BO 1/189 and BO 1/190 Archbishop Griffin Papers. 142 Cardinal Vance had special responsibilities for education in the Diocese of Westminster. 143 NA ED 136/271 Memorandum R.A. Butler 19th November, 1941, p. 1. 144 NA ED 136/271, Memorandum 1941, ibid., p. 1 145 The Church of England submitted proposals for 230 new schools, the Catholic Church for 289. D. Gillard,
(2011) www.educationengland.org.uk/history. 146 NA ED 136/271 Interview Board of Education and Roman Catholic Deputation 26th June 1941. 147 NA ED 136/271 Memorandum to President 25th June, 1941.
153
of Education to adopt the model of denominational education similar to that of the
Education (Scotland) Act 1918 when all denominational schools were tranfered to
the local authorities. All teachers were ‘reserved’ teachers and the religious ethos
of the school automatically assumed that of the majority children. It was pointed out
that this scheme could not work in England and Wales, because in Scotland there
was no ban on denominational religious education in provided schools and there
were anyway very few non-provided schools. The reverse was true in England and
Wales and “there is not the slightest hope of the Scottish solution being acceptable
to the majority of English opinion: politically it is simply off the map.”148 However,
regardless of denominational and funding difficulties, the Green Book proposals
made it clear that reconstruction would take place whatever the circumstances. This
presented a major difficulty to the non-provided sector as over five hundred of their
schools were on the Board of Education’s Black List,149 and Managers were unable
to find sufficient funds to bring them up to “modern standards of hygiene, ventilation
and the like”150 without substantial financial support. The proposed solution to this
was that the Managers hand all responsibilities for their schools to the Local
Education Authorities who would either bring them up to standard or close them.
The second issue for debate was the place of religious teaching. The
proposals put forward in the Green Book was that all grant funded schools should
teach an Agreed Syllabus. The teaching of religious education and the position of
reserved teachers was complex and greatly affected the teaching profession. The
National Union of Teachers had not previously indicated their position in
discussions, but in January 1942, Butler met with Sir Frederick Mander151 to discuss
his member’s views on the dual system. It appears that the general consensus of
teachers was that while they favoured expansion of religious education teaching in
state schools, they disliked the continuing attitude the Churches, which they saw as
an obstacle to progress. They were particularly keen that religious instruction in all
schools should be non-denominational and treated like all other areas of the
curriculum with a nationally Agreed Syllabus inspected by HMI. They were totally
opposed to the clergy’s demand for right of entry into any school to inspect the
148 NA ED 136/271 op. cit. 149 NA ED 138/22 Preliminary draft and notes; copy of Green Book Education after the War. In all, 753
schools remained on the Board’s Black List of schools. 541 are non-provided schools. In Wales there were
115 black listed schools in total. NA ED 136/677 Education in Wales, Miscellaneous Papers. 150 NA ED 138/22 op. cit. 151 General Secretary of the National Union of Teachers.
154
teaching of religious education and implacably opposed to the abrogation of the
Cowper-Temple Clause. This became a matter for deep and searching debate after
the publication of the White Paper when the detail of reconstruction began to be
examined more closely.
The White Paper- Educational Reconstruction152
Opposition to the proposals of the Green Book was widespread. The
teachers’ unions “would have preferred a more drastic revision of the existing
system, the restriction of denominational responsibilities … the right to consultation
on the appointment of reserved teachers.”153 The Trades Union Congress
suggested that the non-provided sector should be arbitrarily removed; all religious
education should be from an Agreed Syllabus and denominational teacher training
colleges should be closed.154 The reactions of the various faith authorities were
mixed, although in general terms, they disliked the fact that in order to gain any
financial settlement they would have to relinquish a considerable amount of control
over their schools. The Church of England gave the proposals a “favourable though
not an enthusiastic reception”155 but other non-provided groups were adamantly
opposed. There was particular opposition to the changes in the appointment and
role of reserved teachers and the alterations to the Cowper–Temple Clause.156 This
was so strong that R. A. Butler decided that the latter “was still regarded as the ark
of the covenant by sections of the public too strongly convinced to be persuaded or
ignored.”157 As a result of these adverse comments it was decided to look for new
solutions to the problem of the non-provided sector which would be a definitive
solution and would go forward to eventual legislation.
The contents of the Green Book passed into the White Paper Educational
Reconstruction largely unchanged. The exception to this was the section on the dual
system of provided and non-provided schools. This was totally re-written by Chuter
Ede,158 presented as a White Memorandum and recirculated to all the organisations
152 White Paper: Educational Reconstruction (HMSO: London, 1943). 153 M. Cruikshank, op. cit., p. 149. 154 Memorandum on Education August Trades Union Congress 1942 in M. Cruikshank, ibid., p. 149. 155 M. Cruikshank, ibid., p. 149. 156 The Cowper-Temple clause in section 14 of the Education Act 1870 barred the teaching of religious
catechism or religious formulary which is distinctive of any particular denomination in the board schools. 157 Unreferenced in M. Cruikshank, op. cit., p. 149. 158 Permanent Secretary to the Board of Education.
155
on the Green Book list. It offered the non-provided sector a number of options. In
single school areas there would be a compulsory hand over of all non provided
schools to the local authorities. In return, the local authority would be responsible
for all costs incurred in the transfer but there would be no denominational teaching
or reserved teachers in these schools. The church authorities would have use of the
school on Sundays or when they were not in educational use. The second proposal
in the White Memorandum was to offer the non-provided sector a fifty percent grant
towards the cost of alterations, but not for the building of new accommodation, and
the local authority would retain rights of appointing and dismissing staff and control
denominational teaching. In addition, the Cowper-Temple Clause was extended to
grammar schools.”159 Once again, the proposals were met with substantial criticism.
Although the Free Churches were very much in favour of the removal of the single
school area status Anglicans were “aghast.”160 Butler was warned that the National
Society would object in the strongest terms: “The Church ‘had only got five mingy
points and was being made to give up all her schools.”161 The arguments continued
and by the time the White Paper was ready for publication an uneasy compromise
had been reached.
The agitation over denominational education had, to some extent, masked
the most controversial element of reconstruction: the structure of secondary
education. There had been clear indications throughout the Green Book that a
tripartite secondary system would be the preferred model, although the White Paper
pointed out that the conclusions of the Norwood Report162 would influence decisions
in this respect.163 The White Paper also referred to the fact that secondary education
in Wales, under the Welsh Intermediate Education Act, 1889, had developed into a
system that offered free and accessible provision and this aspiration was now within
the reach of all English pupils.164 This was in accord with Butler’s own philosophy
as his priorities were the same as those of Wales: equality of opportunity for all
children.165
159 M. Cruikshank, op. cit., p. 150. 160 ibid., p. 150. 161 ibid., p. 150, quoted from telephone conversation between Lord Selbourne and R. A. Butler. 162 The Report of the Committee of the Secondary Schools Examination Council on Curriculum and
Examinations in Secondary Schools (HMSO: 1943). 163 Board of Education. Educational reconstruction, 1942-43 (Cmd 6458) p 4. 164 ibid., p. 31. 165 G. E. Jones, Controls and Conflicts in Welsh Secondary Education 1889-1994 (UWP: 1982), p 192.
156
The White Paper drew particular attention to the place of the Welsh language:
“The policy of the Board has now been disassociated from the views about the Welsh language expressed by the Commission of Inquiry in 1846. It is now hoped that the encouragement of studies which are traditional in Wales will not be developed so as to form a barrier between Wales and its neighbours.”166
On the 16th July 1943 the White Paper Educational Reconstruction was
distributed to Members of Parliament and a House of Commons debate followed at
the end of July. In his introduction to the debate R.A. Butler explained the proposals
put forward in the Paper and that while he had had many discussions with religious
and political groups his main preoccupation had been focused on the needs of
children. He hoped that Members of Parliament would do the same in the
discussions that would follow.167 He focused on the two most contentious issues:
the reform of secondary education and a new approach to the non-provided sector.
This would ensure that there was choice within an “organic whole.”168 He suggested
that the present system of education was outdated and that the Hadow169
recommendations had only been partly successful. As a result there should be “a
radical reconstruction”170 which offered choice through three types of secondary
schools: senior, secondary and technical. He did not rule out experimentation with
multilateral schools and suggested that all schemes should be tried to see which
worked best. Butler also pointed out that the quality of some state education was
now so high that it was overtaking the popularity of independent schools and many
parents were abandoning these in favour of state secondary schools.
Butler spent some time explaining his thoughts on the non-provided sector
and reminded the House of the importance of religious organisations and the
significant role they had had in the development of education.171 His first point was
concerned with the teaching of religious education.172 Under the new proposals all
schools would teach an Agreed Syllabus that had been drawn up and agreed by all
denominations. It presented no particular doctrine and because of this did not affect
166 (Cmd 6458) op. cit., p. 31. 167 Hansard HC Sitting, 29th July 1943, Volume 39, Columns 1753-1928. 168 Hansard HC Sitting, 29th July 1943, ibid. 169 The Education of the Adolescent, (HMSO: 1926). 170 Hansard HC Sitting, 29th July 1943, ibid. 171 Hansard HC Sitting, 29th July 1943, Volume 39, Columns 1753-1928. 172 Hansard, ibid.
157
the Cowper-Temple Clause.173 Butler returned to the problem of the dual system
explaining that over half the schools in England and Wales were denominational
and this had largely prevented earlier reorganisations. In addition, in some areas
they provided the only education which had caused considerable resentment
amongst Nonconformists. It was clear that this situation had to change. Butler
explained the solutions he was offering, and the debate that followed offered a
variety of opinions. Professor Gruffydd,174 suggested that all voluntary schools,
perhaps with the exception of the Roman Catholic sector, should be abolished
“because they will be unnecessary and undesirable. Completely cut them out. Take over all schools and make them fully provided council schools. Pay their back debts and set them on their feet again.”175
Colonel Sir John Shute176 pointed out the many problems of the Roman Catholic
sector. Reorganisation under the Hadow Report recommendations had been
impossible because there had been no additional funding to help implement them.
He reminded the House that in 1935 all political parties had promised to give more
financial aid to the non-provided sector and although the Roman Catholic sector had
submitted a number of plans for new senior accommodation under the provisions of
the Education Act 1936 these had failed to come to fruition because of the outbreak
of war. The debate reflected the differing points of view within the House but in
general terms there was little concerted opposition to the White Paper. After the
debate Butler received cautious plaudits. Leo Amery wrote from the India Office “I
only hope the Government will have the courage to get on with your proposals
without undue delay. To my mind the best chance of the Coalition holding together
in the gap between the German collapse and the end of the war with Japan lies in
its doing big things boldly and seizing the imagination of the country.”177
Selby Bigge,178 who had been instrumental in drawing up the Education Act
1918, wrote that the smooth reception of the White Paper had been due in no
smallpart to Butler’s diplomacy and during the process.179 Butler had had a great
deal of covert support from the Archbishop of Canterbury who advised him privately
how to deal with the various church bodies, especially the National Society. After
173 Hansard, 29th July 1943, op. cit. 174 Member of Parliament for the University of Wales, 175 Hansard HC Sitting, 29th July, ibid. 176 Member of Parliament for Liverpool Exchange 177 BodL CPA RAB 2/2 Letter from L. Amery to R. Butler, 25th June 1943. 178 Permanent Secretary to the Board of Education 1911 -1925. 179 BodL CPA RAB, 2/2 Letter, ibid.
158
the debate a letter from the Archbishop explained his position and asked Butler not
to offer him any public thanks for his advice as he was already being regarded “as
a Quisling.”180
This support was a prelude to criticism. The National Union of Conservative
and Unionist Associations passed a resolution at their Central Council meeting that
suggested that the proposals on religious education were inadequate and that
Government should be more generous to the non-provided sector.181 Tawney
voiced concerns that the payment of fees in Direct Grant Schools would perpetuate
the social class divide in education.182 The Labour Party, the Trades Union
Congress, the Workers Educational Association and the National Union of Teachers
were of the opinion the White Paper included many good ideas but the time had
come for action.183 The greatest dissention, however, came from the non-provided
sector – the Anglican and Roman Catholic Churches.
Reform of the Dual System – the battle with the Churches
The reactions to the proposals for the non-provided sector were very
different. The denominational organisations aligned themselves on one side, and
educationalists, the Association of Directors and Secretaries for Education and the
Association of Municipal Corporations on the other. The latter were the power
brokers in education and their influence was paramount in any decisions that were
made at a local authority level. They were acutely aware that many of the problems
of non-implementation of education legislation during the interwar years had been
caused by the non-provided sector and they were anxious that a solution should be
found. However the views of religious groups in England and Wales were somewhat
different. While the Church in Wales was dis-established and was less influential in
some geographic areas, the Church of England remained the Established church
with a long history of power and influence over political and social affairs in England.
Its Bishops, unlike those of the Church in Wales, sat and made decisions in the
House of Lords. Their support in education reconstruction was therefore vital.
Somewhere between these two powerful groups were the teacher associations
180 BodL ibid., Letter William Cantaur Archbishop of Canterbury to R.A. Butler, 3rd August 1943. 181 Bod L CPA RAB 2/2 WP/43 Letter, Conservative & Unionist Association to R.A. Butler, 16th Nov. 1943. 182 BodL CPA RAB 2/3 Bill 12 Letter to R.A. Butler from R. H. Tawney, 21st December 1943. 183 B. Simon, (1991), op. cit., p. 67.
159
which were all capable of raising serious objections, especially at a local level. For
the most part, however, they were ambivalent about the non-provided sector and
were quite amenable to an Agreed Syllabus as long as there was no denominational
interference.184
The position of non provided education in Wales was, anyway, substantially
different from that in England. The level of sectarian differences had diminished
considerably185 since the The Welsh Church Act 1914,186 and there were far fewer
Church in Wales schools.187 While there was still animosity from non-confomist
groups but there was an opinion that even if the non-provided sector was not
removed by legislation, it would eventually disappear as schools fell into disrepair
and Managers could not finance maintaintence.188 Sir Wynne Weldon189 pointed out
that lack of Church funds had already reduced the number of non-provided schools
in Wales but if additional public funds were made available to them this might give
“a new lease of life to a system which is slowly dying, and might well be allowed to
die.”190 Weldon also suggested that the local authorities would have closed more
Church in Wales schools191 if they had had the funds to do so.192 He pointed out
that if the primary sector was to be reorganised effectively, many Church in Wales
schools would need to be closed or improved, but this must be done without forcing
local authorites to spend money on non-provided schools which would remain the
property of the Church.193 One of the problems of thee non-provided schools was
that they were frequently the only provider in a single school area. It was suggested
that, in these circumstances, attractive offers attached to voluntary transfer to the
state sector, should be made. The position of the Roman Catholic schools was far
184 See NA ED 136/465 for details of the negotiations between the Board of Education and the NUT in regard
to the safeguards that were put into place about teachers’ conditions of service. 185 See NA ED 136/677 Briefing Note, Wales and the Dual System, 25th March 1941. Unsigned but
initialled, probably from Sir Wynne Weldon. 186 It also changed the position of Church of England non-provided schools in Wales. See NA ED 92/23
Effect of Welsh Church Act 1914 on Church of England Schools in Wales. 187 In 1935 there were 573 non-provided schools in Wales. Although there is no breakdown into
denominations it may be assumed that the majority would have been Church in Wales schools. Education in
1935 being the report of the Board of Education and the statistics of public education for England and Wales,
1935-36 (Cmd. 5290) p. 85. 188 NA ED 136/220 Memorandum Sir Wynn Weldon Wales and the Dual System, 25th March 1941. 189 Permanent Secretary of the Welsh Department of the Board of Education. 190 NA ED 136/220 op. cit., p. 3. 191 Under Section 29 (2) (d) of the Education Act 1902. This allowed local authorities to remove or acquire
non-provided schools that had fallen into disrepair. 192 NA ED 136/220, ibid., p. 3. 193 ibid., p. 3.
160
less problematic as they had generally been established in industrial areas where
they were never the sole provider of education.
There were other problems in Wales. Although education legislation applied
equally to England and Wales it is clear that some aspects, for example bilingualism,
made education in Wales very different. This similarly applied to the Intermediate
sector as it was overseen by the Central Welsh Board not the Board of Education
and was funded differently. As a result, some aspects of the new legislation would
have to be changed to make it viable for Welsh LEAs.194 In fact Holmes, in a
response to R.A. Butler, remarked that while his predecessor Sir Amherst Selby-
Bigge had a notice on his desk that read ‘Don’t Forget Wales’ he kept this at the
forefront of his mind.195 The Association of Directors and Secretaries of Education
had already laid out their ideas for education reform in a pamphlet Education: A Plan
for the Future.196 This indicated that the current organisation of education was not
fit for purpose and much too closely aligned with social class.197 It commented on
the disparity of provision between the state and independent sectors and suggested
that the latter should be merged into the state system so there was parity of
opportunity. As an example, it pointed to the undue advantages offered to children
who attended independent schools, in terms of university entrance for example. The
Association had strong views on the non-provided sector and suggested that unless
it was removed reconstruction would be almost impossible.198 This was not based
on any hostility to religion but to the fact that its existence was an obstacle to
progress.199
Although the proposals to alter the position of the non-provided sector had
been substantially modified, Butler encountered strident opposition to funding
proposals and denominational teaching. The most important of these was how the
non-provided sector could fund new school buildings but still retain control over the
management of denominational teaching in their schools. Disagreements about the
validity of an Agreed Syllabus, together with the issue of the reserved teachers
194 NA ED 136/677 Memorandum Holmes to Butler, 18th December 1941. 195 ibid. 196 The Association of Directors and Secretaries of Education, Education: A Plan for the Future. ( OUP:
Oxford, 1942). 197 ibid., p 5. 198 The Association of Directors and Secretaries of Education, Education: A Plan for the Future ( OUP:
Oxford, 1942). p 15. 199 ibid., p 17.
161
developed into a major problem. This intensified when officers of the Board of
Education suggested that the number of reserved teachers should be strictly limited
and that head teachers should be excluded completely from reserved status. It was,
however, accepted that all the problems connected with the non-provided sector
had to be resolved so that reorganisation could take place swiftly and the Board
could get on with their primary role of educating children.200
After the publication of the White Paper, Butler had lengthy discussions with
denominational groups. The Church of England was divided about the proposals
and while it could see some advantages, their greatest concern was how they would
be able to finance reorganisation. In a letter, Lord Grey pointed out that although the
Anglican Church did not have an inexhaustible supply of funds it was determined to
retain as many schools as possible. The major anxiety was how an individual group
of Managers would be able to raise the loan to pay for improvements especially
when the Local Education Authority would retain a controlling interest in the school
building. A second concern was what would happen if the Managers defaulted on
the loan especially as some were “not all competent and efficient business
heads.”201 The points raised in the letter were discussed at the Board of Education.
The question of obtaining loans was generally dismissed with the comment that the
Roman Catholics had no problems in this respect “and their credit is surely no better
than the Anglican Church.”202 This interchange was followed by a meeting between
Butler and members of the National Society who had similar views to those of the
main body of the Anglican Church towards reconstruction. The same arguments
were produced. The Society could not afford to pay for any reconstruction although
it wanted to retain as many schools as it could. Butler reminded them that the White
Paper was the result of prolonged negotiations and that their representatives had
been involved in these. He also pointed out that the non-provided sector had been
unable to fund previous reorganisations. The Government could not therefore make
it easy for the sector to opt for aided status but would encourage it to maintain a
smaller number of schools and “do a really worthwhile job on them.”203 There was
an ongoing and often inconsequential discussion but Butler and the Board remained
steadfast in their determination to win the battle with the non-provided
200 BodL CPA RAB 2/1 The Dual System A Review of the Situation in the Light of Discussions to Mid-
September, 1942. 201 NA ED 136/462 Church of England Representatives, Letter from Lord Grey to Butler, 7th January 1944. 202 NA ED 136/462 op. cit. 203 NA. ED 136/462, National Society Minute Paper, 12th January, 1944.
162
sector. There were objections from the Church in Wales, particularly in regard to the
Agreed Syllabus, but Butler responded by saying that if the Church in Wales was
given preferential treatment this “might lead a revival of the difficulties which were
met in the past.”204
The responses from the Church of England were very mixed. The Bishop of
Gloucester, for example, launched a scathing attack on the proposals. He
suggested that children should only be educated to fit their station in life. For most,
he suggested, it was a waste of time for them to remain at school after fourteen
years of age. There was no point to training a boy to be a clerk when he was destined
to be a farm labourer. The Bishop considered that “Education is something
essentially spiritual. It means the influence of mind on mind, and the provision of too
ample funds and excessive equipment, materialises and degrades it.”205 He likened
some of the proposals to Nazism, especially any suggestion that education should
be unified and the non-provided sector removed. While these kind of objections
were not uncommon, Butler received considerable support from other clergy. Canon
W. J. Brown, in a long letter to the Yorkshire Post suggested that it was very easy
to be carried away by some of the detail of the White Paper and to lose sight of its
“full worth.”206 The Bishop of Butler’s own constituency of Saffron Walden gave
endless encouragement,207 as did the Archbishop of Canterbury. In January 1944
he wrote to Butler:
“I will try to see what can be done in the direction in which you feel that help is specially needed. You will remember the anxiety which I am in of showing enough sympathy with the die-hards on our side to secure waverers from going over to their ranks.”208
At the Church Assembly, the Archbishop came under personal attack because of
his support for reconstruction.209 The Bishop of London moved a resolution that
suggested that non-provided secondary schools should be funded in the same
wayas county schools. The debate that followed was generally highly critical of the
cost to the Church but the main issue for the majority of representatives at the
204 NA. ED 136/462 op. cit., Response to the National Society from the Board of Education. 205 NA ED 136/677. Arthur C. Headlam, Bishop of Gloucester. The Task of the Christian Church: an address
to the Gloucester Diocesan Conference. Undated. 206 NA ED 136/462 Fault-Finders and the Education Bill: Its religious side deserves more appreciation,
Yorkshire Post, 16th January 1944. 207 BodL CPA RAB 2/3. 208 NA ED 136/462 Letter from William Cantuar to R.A. Butler, 31st January, 1944. 209 ibid., Report of the Proceedings of the Church Assembly, February 1944.
163
Assembly was how they would be able to maintain their denominational teaching if
the proposals of the White Paper were accepted.210
While there was considerable infighting between the different groups within
the Anglican Church there was a general acceptance of the terms of the White
Paper. This was not the case for the Roman Catholic Church which offered
concerted, vociferous and adamant objections to any suggestions that it should
renounce denominational teaching in its schools or hand any of them to the LEA. It
remained intransigent and when the proposals for reconstruction became clearer its
reactions were intense. In a letter to The Times, Cardinal Hinsley voiced his concern
about the proposals which he saw as an attack on Roman Catholicism.211 He
pointed out that there could be no equality of educational opportunity for a minority
who were faced with a crushing financial burden because of their religious beliefs.
In early 1943, a Committee representing a range of Catholic views led by the
Archbishop of Liverpool, met with Butler.212 It became clear that the Catholic
Hierarcy was not interested in any offer which included an Agreed Syllabus, and
was adamant that all teachers in their schools should be practising Roman
Catholics.213 It would be unable to raise the fifty per cent of the cost of bringing all
their schools up to standard and the Bishop hinted that Government should provide
one hundred percent interest free loans. If this was possible they would welcome
the new Bill and do their best to remove the problem of single school areas. It was
pointed out that over the years the Catholic Church had provided large numbers of
school places, in areas like Liverpool, at no cost to the Government. In return the
Church was now asking the Government for help. Butler response was clear. The
Roman Catholic sector would not be treated any differently from any other, and while
he respected the fact that the Church intended protecting their doctrine, his major
concern was that all children received a good quality education. The sector would
reform in the same way as the rest of the schools. There would be a fifty per cent
grant towards improving existing accommodation and he might again return to the
provision of the Education Act 1936 which allowed for a seventy-five percent grant
to build new schools. This offer however was time limited. The deputation was
concerned with this, as planning for reorganisation would be difficult as some areas
210 NA. ED 136/462, Report of the Proceedings of the Church Assembly, February, 1944 211 Church Schools, Letter to the Editor, The Times Nov 1st, 1943. 212BodL CPA RAB 2/9 Board of Education. Memorandum, Discussions on the Dual System, p 1. 213 ibid., Memorandum Remarks by Archbishop of Southwark, p 1.
164
had been badly affected by bombing during the war, but Butler pointed out that he
could make no distinction between Roman Catholics and other faiths. The Bishop
of Lancaster responded that the deputation would have to consult with the Heirachy
“who would, he feared, consider that the community were being asked to face an
impossible burden under the proposals put before them.”214 He also asked how the
Government thought that the Church would be able shoulder this enormous financial
burden. Butler replied that, bearing in mind the timescale, the actuarial evidence he
had seen as well as the generous grants the Government were offfering, he had no
doubt that it was possible.215 The objections from the Committee remained, but the
Roman Catholic Church was left with two choices: it could either accept the grants
on offer and the accompanying intervention by the LEAs or, if it chose to remain as
an autonomous sector, would have to fund reorganisation itself.
Both the Roman Catholic and Anglican Church put Butler under considerable
pressure in a variety of ways, but especially through their support in Parliament.
Each group had supporters with considerable influence who lobbied to get a better
settlement. It was generally recognised, however, that the non-provided sector
would have to agree to the proposals. After the publication of the Education Bill216
Butler wrote to a number of newspapers thanking them for their support. The owner
of The Times responded:
”You are certainly well over the first hurdle and you are unlikely, I imagine
to encounter any insuperable difficulty in the House … I do not believe that
the RCs mean to do more than bargain very hard indeed.”217
Attitudes to education reforms in Wales
Although Welsh local education authorities had been included on the
distribution list for the Green Book, the Church in Wales had not. In 1942, the Bishop
of St Asaph, told a Governing Body Committee meeting that while he was aware
that negotiations with other denominations were taking place but the Church in
Wales had not been invited to take part in these. 218 The comments made by the
214BodL CPA RAB 2/9 Memorandum ibid., p 7. 215 ibid., p. 8. 216 Education, A bill to reform the law relating to education in England and Wales, 7 & 8 Geo 6. 1943-44 (4). 217 BodL CPA RAB 2/8 Letter from R.M.B.W, 31st January 1944. 218 NLW SD/ED/3-6, Minutes of the Education Committee of the Governing Body of the Church in Wales
Diocesan Education Minutes Dioceses of St David’s, 9th July, 1942.
165
Bishop of St Asaph are somewhat misleading because there was a definite
involvement of the Church in Wales in negotiations.219 While there was no longer
any direct administrative connection between it and the Church of England, there
was certainly a close relationship between the two, and it is clear that the Archbishop
of Canterbury was anxious to include Wales in negotiations.220 Butler met with the
Archbishop of the Church in Wales in 1942, and the letters that passed between
them after this meeting indicate the issues that were discussed. Butler reiterated
that there would be an obligation on Managers of non-provided schools to
implement new legislation “rapidly and nationwide,”221 and that he expected the
education service to make progress.222 The Archbishop passed on this information
to the Diocesan Education Committees for discussion but kept Butler’s comments
confidential:
“I carefully omitted any reference to you, and I concluded with this statement: ‘You will recognise that it will be very difficult for you or me, at this moment, to quote any authority for my statements, but I have very strong ground for making them, and your Committee had better assume the high probability of their correctness.”223
The Representative Body of the Church in Wales meetings that followed requested
Diocesan Education Committees “to consider with urgency”224 the Archbishop’s
advice. There was some debate about this and the Honorary Secretary, A. G.
Whitehead, pointed out that no documentation had been received from the National
Society so it would be impossible to comment on their proposals. As a result the
National Society was asked to clarify their position on a number of matters.225 There
is no evidence of the outcomes of these discussions, but it must be assumed that
the Church in Wales agreed with the proposals.226
219 CofERC ALW/2/4 Title Papers relating to the Watching Committee and the education bill, 1943-1944, 220 NA ED 136/237 Letter R.A. Butler to Archbishop of Canterbury, 1st October 1942. 221 ibid., Undated draft letter, R.A. Butler to Archbishop Church in Wales, 19th October 1942. 222 ibid. 223 NA ED 136/237 op. cit., Letter, Archbishop Church in Wales to R.A. Butler. 224 CinWA Representative Body of the Church in Wales Provincial Education Committee Meeting, 20th
November 1942. 225 CofERC ALW /2/4 Papers relating to the Watching Committee and the Education Bill. There is very little
available evidence about the relationship between the Church in Wales and other religious organisations but
it is known that Mr Whitehead was later invited to represent the Church in Wales on the Watching
Committee of the Church of England. 226 See NA ED 136/462 for details of these discussions.
166
The circumstances surrounding the non-provided sector was slightly different
in Wales. The political discord that had accompanied the Education Act 1902 had
not been forgotten, but while non-conformity remained embedded in Welsh society
there are suggestions that it was becoming less antagonistic. There had been
cordial meetings between the Governing Body of the Church in Wales and Welsh
non-conformist groups, and there was a growing perception of a distinct change in
relations between the two. There were new opportunities for closer co-operation,
especially over the Agreed Syllabus, and: “The eagerness and readiness of the one
side to see the point of view of the other have been most marked.”227 Regardless of
this, the Federation of Education Committees was almost unanimously agreed228
that the non-provided system in Wales should be removed.229 As a result of this, in
August 1943, after the publication of the White Paper, the Bishop wrote to R. A
Butler to report that he was aware that meetings were being held to try and remove
Wales completely from the new legislation.230 He indicated that the Church in Wales
would strongly resist these proposals231 because “Churchmen were of the opinion
that if autonomy was granted there would be a wholesale and ruthless dis-
establishment of the Church Schools in Wales.”232
The Federation of Education Committees (Wales and Monmouthshire) was
made up of representitives of all local education authorities and was exceptionally
influential and powerful. It had overseen the discussions about reorganisation during
the interwar years; presided over the abolition of secondary school fees in Wales,
and the proposals to raise the school leaving age in 1936. In 1941 it set up a sub-
committee to consider the proposals of the Green Book.233 The Federation, chaired
by Sir William Jenkins,234 felt very strongly that needs of Wales were not being fully
considered. Its main concern was the removal of the non-provided sector and that
227 CinWA Representative Body of the Church in Wales Governing Body Education Meeting 20th July 1944. 228 There were some objections. Cardiff Education Authority for example suggested that “that in the national
interest the present time is importune to consider the question of the dual system.” NLW Minor Deposit 701.
Executive Committee of the Federation of Education Committee (Wales and Monmouthshire) Minutes, 27th
July 1943. 229 ibid., 28th January 1943. 230 NA ED 136/237 Wales - Discussions with Archbishop of Wales, Bishop of St. Asaph, Sir William
Jenkins, M P. and the Central Welsh Board. Letter Bishop of St Asaph to Butler, 23rd August 1943. 231 ibid., 232 ibid., 233NLW Minor Deposit 701 op. cit., 11th November 1941. 234 Member of Parliament for Cymmer, Glamorgan, Chair of the County Council Association of England and
Wales and the Federation of Education Committees.
167
“all the Local Authorities in Wales would offer a most strenuous resistance to any proposal to adopt for Wales any plan generally likely to extend and perpetuate the system.”235 It was acknowledged that unless this happened Local Educaiton Authorities would, once again, be unable to reorganise.236
It was very annoyed that it had not been fully consulted about reconstruction, and
this annoyance was intensified by the fact that Bulter had received “favourable
reactions”237 to the new proposals from other organisations.238 When this became
known, Butler’s personal assistant, Sylvia Goodfellow, wrote to Sir Wynn Weldon
and suggested to him, that because of this, and to give “fair dues”239 to the
Federation that Butler should meet them confidentially to explain the revised
contents of the White Paper. Butler met with the Federation privately in Cardiff240
and explained that no compromise on the non-provided sector could be reach
unless there was co-operation between all those with vested interests. He stressed
that the consultations he was undertaking were to try to reach a compromise which
could only be reached through negotiation. He recognised that the problems of the
non-provided sector in Wales was substantially different to those of England
because there were far fewer non-provided schools.241 He went on to point out that
whatever the difficulties, reorganisation was going to take place promptly as there
would be a statutory obligation on local authorities and Managers to ensure that it
did. At the end of the meeting the Federation appeared to be satisfied with the new
proposals for the non-provided sector. This, however, was not a correct assumption
as in a later letter to Butler, the Executive Committee suggested that Wales should
be allowed to find its own solution to the non-provided sector through complete
devolution of power over education.242 This suggestion was completely refuted by
Weldon and he pointed out that the problems of the non-provided sector were
largely historical and any solution must have regard for this.243
It was unfortunate that Sir William Jenkins chose to revealed the contents of
Butler’s private conversation with the Federation in a speech to the Glamorgan
235 NLW Minor Deposit 701 ibid., 28th January 1943. 236 ibid., 15th July, 1941, 237 NA ED 136/237 Letter, 10th October 1942, 238 The Church of England; the Roman Catholic Hierarchy; the Chief Rabbi; the NUT and the Free Churches
for example. 239 NA ED 136/237 Wales - Discussions with Archbishop of Wales, Bishop of St. Asaph, Sir William
Jenkins, and the Central Welsh Board, Letter Sylvia Goodfellow to Sir Wynn Watkins, 10th October 1942. 240 On October 23rd 1942. 241 NA ED 136/237 Minutes of Meeting Discussion on the Dual System, 23rd October 1942, p 1. 242 NA ED 136/237 Letter Federation of Education Committee to Butler, 9th December 1942. 243 ibid., Memorandum Weldon to Butler, 7th December 1942.
168
Education Authority. Sir Wynn Weldon wrote to Jenkins to say that “The President
feels he is entitled to reproach Sir William for referring publically to a private and
confidential communication and in so doing he has, no doubt unwittingly, misled his
Committee.”244 Butler himself met with Sir William and told him that he could not
understand why the contents of his reported speech which he thought were “pretty
hot,”245 differed so much from the conversations they had had in Wales. Jenkins
suggested that he had had to alter the contents of his speech to suit his audience
who wanted the non-provided sector removed completely. Sir William then asked
Butler if, because of the religious difficulties, he would consider leaving Wales out
of the 1944 legisation altogether. Butler was adament that this would not happen
because if it did
“Wales would remain exactly as it was now. I thought they would be far worse off under this arrangement and I thought Sir William had taken a heavy responsibility on himself in sending me so negative reply.”246
It is indicative of the underlying tensions that Butler refused to attend another
meeting in Wales. In January 1943, Butler wrote again to Sir William Jenkins about
the Federation’s ongoing objections to the non-provided sector, especially as
deominational schools could make use of the second alternative suggested in the
White Memorandum. While Butler ackowledged that Federation’s views were of
some importance, he also questioned their attitude to the question of Welsh
education:
“I should be glad to establish clearly the full significance of the plea made in
your letter for special treatment for Wales. I can hardly believe that this
means Wales would contemplate being excluded from the benefits of any
Bill which the Government decide to lay before Parliament in the near future.
I assume that Wales would wish to share in the benefits of any Bill which
may be forthcoming.”247
The Federation was not alone in its pleas for Welsh automony. The Central Welsh
Board was equally determined to put forward its point of view when it became
apparent that it would probably lose its power after reorganisation. It issued a
pamphlet248 in response to letters it had received from the Board of Education, and
its main focus was educational autonomy for Wales. This was not a new proposal
244 NA ED 136/237 op. cit., Draft letter Weldon to Jenkins, 4th December 1942. 245 ibid., Butler Meeting with Jenkins, Minutes, 10th December 1942. 246 ibid. 247 NA ED 136/237 Letter, Butler to Jenkins, 13th January 1943. 248 Education After the War (Central Welsh Board
169
but had been part of the debates in the aftermath of the Education Bill 1902, and
had been much discussed at local authority conferences in the following years. In
1919, a Departmental Committee was set up to examine the organisation of
secondary education in Wales and reported in 1920 in favour of a Council for Wales
which would oversee all forms of education.249 However, by 1942, the Central Welsh
Board was drawing attention to the fact that there was already a separate education
system in Wales and that “therefore no mere appendix to an English scheme can
adequately meet the needs of the Wales of the future.”250 It suggested the next
logical step would be automony for Welsh education which had considerable and
ongoing support.
The Education Bill
During 1942 Board of Education officials began to draft an Education Bill and
a few sentences announcing the presumption of an Education Act were included in
the King’s Speech. This resulted in the White Paper – Educational Reconstruction
and the Education Bill being drawn up simultaneously. In December 1942, Butler
presented a Memorandum251 to the War Cabinet outlining his proposals which
included new proposals for the non-provided sector. He pointed out that the months
of discussion had brought about some agreement and he had substantial support
from religious and educational organisations. After further discussion at the Lord
President’s Committee, Butler began the drafting process. By April 1943, the draft
was ready to be presented to the Prime Minister for his approval. Although Churchill
was not convinced about some aspects, he gave approval. The non-provided sector
once again came under the spotlight but “The Prime Minister felt that the Roman
Catholics were well treated already: ’it was a case of Rome on the rates and
Romeon the taxes’.”252 There was an agreement that Butler could publish the White
Paper for debate in the House of Commons. The acceptance of this “marked the
point at which the wartime coalition government publically adopted what was
probably its most comprehensive single piece of post-war social policy.”253 The Bill
249 Board of Education. Report of the Departmental Committee on the Organisation of Secondary Education
in Wales, 1920 (Cmd. 967), p. 86-87. 250 NA 136/237 ibid., p. 4. 251BodL CPA RAB 2/6 Confidential Papers Secret Memorandum to the War Cabinet. Lord President’s
Committee, December 1942. 252 P.H.J.H. Gosden, (1976), op. cit., p. 313. 253 ibid., p. 313.
170
was drawn up in consultation with other Government Departments as their
agreement was necessary if the Board of Education was to assume control of all
children’s services. Central to these changes was the Exchequer, because as a
Memorandum pointed out, any changes in education provision would bring
accompanying increases in costs, in addition to the rise in the cost of living that
would inevitably follow the end of the war. The cost of the reorganisation of
education in England and Wales would be considerable and currently estimated at
approximately £123 million, with the cost of school meals and milk adding a further
£15 million.254
In May 1944, Butler introduced the Bill255 to the House of Commons with an
explanatory memorandum about the changes that had been made to the White
Paper.256 It was divided into five sections which would come into legislation at
different times. The first, the establishment of the Ministry of Education and the
creation of the post of Minister, would take place immediately. The other most
contentious clause, the raising of the school leaving age, was to be implemented by
1st April 1945. The imprecise legislation of the Education Act of 1918 was removed
and it is clear that local authorities and other organisations would be compelled, not
only to observe the new legislation, but had statutory responsibilities for its
implementation. The Bill257 caused considerable dissention. The Conservative and
Liberal parties objected because of the cost which might lose them the support of
landowners, who were the major tax payers, and non-conformists objected to state
funds being used to support the non-provided sector. Despite these objections the
Education Act 1944 successfully passed through the House of Lords and, in August
1944, received Royal Assent.
254 BodL CPA RAB 2/2 Education Reconstruction. The Financial Implications of the Proposals
Memorandum. There was estimated to be about a 30 percent rise from the costs in 1939 in spite of the
considerable Government subsidies 255 HC Deb 12 May 1944 vol 399 col 2193-267. 256 Board of Education. Education Bill explanatory memorandum by the president of the Board of Education.
1943-44 (Cmd. 6492). 257 Education. A bill to reform the law relating to education in England and Wales 1943-1944 (4).
171
Conclusions
The Education Act 1944 was the only piece of major social legislation that
passed onto the statute book during the Second World War, a fact which perhaps
marks its importance in the planning for reconstruction. However, new legislation
was long overdue and the circumstances of war, particularly during evacuation, had
revealed an education system that was not fit for purpose. There had been ongoing
demands for education reform throughout the interwar period and the Act was an
attempt to draw together the recommendations of the Consultative Committees of
the Board of Education and to re-establish much of the failed education legislation
of 1918 Education Act. It contained few new ideas and was a missed opportunity to
establish a fair and egalitarian education system in England and Wales. Instead, it
continued to promote the existing, class dominated provision that had been in place
since before the start of the nineteenth century. It also retained the dual system of
provided and non-provided schools which proved so problematic in earlier plans for
reorganisation.
While there is a view that the Education Act 1944 was “construed and
constructed in an atmosphere of consensus and conciliation”258 synonymous with a
shared vision for better education in England and Wales, this was clearly not the
case. The objections to its terms marked the divisions in society; socially, politically
and most obviously with continuing denominational rancour. This latter, in many
ways, emphasised the ongoing political and social divide and the strong links
between The Church of England and the Conservative Party and the Labour Party
and non-conformity. Conversely, while Roman Catholicism had roots in both political
parties it had an absolute determination not to abrogate its religious beliefs for the
sake of education reform. Negotiations with these groups were intense and the role
played by the President of the Board of Education, R.A. Butler, in taking the Act to
the statute book should not be overlooked.
The pressure from the Church of England and the Conservative Party
dominated events. Although James Chuter Ede, was instrumental in advising on
policy, there is little of the fundamental philosophy of the Labour Party in its final
258 R. Aldrich, Lessons from History of Education: The Selected Works of Richard Aldrich (Routledge:
London, 2005) p. 69.
172
form, and certainly its much vaunted aims for equality appear to have been lost in
the process. It has been pointed out that Labour, had it chosen to do so, could have
finally have removed “the snobbishness built into the system”259 by abolishing the
public school sector. This, at that time, was in a very poor position and would have
“expected little mercy at the hands of a Labour Government.”260 However, it is also
recognised that many Labour politicians, who themselves had attended
independent and endowed schools, were reluctant to maximise on the opportunity
to make significant change which could have guaranteed equality of provision.
The religious tensions during the discussions overshadowed the most
fundamental issue, the shape of secondary education after reconstruction. During
the interwar years there had been a move towards the concept of common
secondary provision which would offer parity, as well as solve some organisational
difficulties, especially in rural areas. The Conservative Party, however was
determined to retain grammar schools, and their control over events, especially in
the House of Lords, ensured this. There was a considerable amount of manipulation
by Board of Education officials to influence opinion in this direction. The
recommendations of the Norwood Report, in particular, and the later Fleming Report
suited this purpose very well.
By 1944, secondary education in Wales was already well advanced and most
local authorities provided a high ratio of free places in the Intermediate sector. The
few grammar schools, were of little account in the general scheme of things. The
main objection to reconstruction in non-conformist Wales remained the non-
provided sector. This had caused animosity and tension since the Education Act
1902 and there was a determination that it should be completely removed from
Welsh provision. A major, and long standing aim was to achieve devolved powers
for education but this was, once again, unsuccessful in 1944. In spite of the efforts
of some politicians, educationalists and public figures, the secondary sector that
emerged from reconstruction was still associated with social class and dominated
by religious influences. It remained tripartite and highly selective and despite the
259 B. Simon, The 1944 Education Act: A Conservative measure? History of Education, Volume 15, Issue 1:
(1986) 31-43, p. 42. 260 ibid., p. 42.
173
fact that after 1944, there was ‘secondary education for all, it was “the old order in
a new disguise.”261
261 B. Simon, (1986) op. cit., p. 41.
174
Chapter 6: Implementation
“In the youth of the nation we have our greatest asset. Even on the basis of mere expediency, we cannot afford not to develop this asset to the greatest advantage.”1
This Chapter examines the reconstruction of education in the years following
the Education Act 1944. It reviews how Labour Party policy on education changed
when it was in Government from 1945 to 1951 and how it abandoned the idea of
parity through multilateralism in order to retain the socially stratified tripartite system.
The LEAs in south and south west Wales responded to planning for change after
1944 in different ways. Some accepted the tripartite system with equanimity, while
others did their best to maintain the philosophy of equality by planning for
comprehensive schools. The battle between the Ministry of Education and the local
authorities was long and complex, made more so by the involvement of the non-
provided sector and its continuing attempts to retain denominational authority over
education.
Overview
For education the five years from 1939 to 1944 were complex and often
difficult. They encompassed the evacuation scheme which resulted in severe
disruption to provision; the three major reports from the Consultative Committee for
Education2 that signposted the way forward; and a Green Book, which was the
preamble to the Education Act 1944.3 This latter, was the only major piece of social
legislation to go on to the statute book during the Second World War, and its
passage through Parliament accompanied some of the most important events of the
war, its second reading, for example, accompanied the D-Day landings.4 The
Education Act 1944 made significant changes to the organisation and administration
of education in England and Wales. The all-age elementary sector was replaced by
primary and secondary schools and the school leaving age raised to fifteen. It gave
1Education Reconstruction 1942-42 XI (Cmd 6458), p. 3ff in A Marwick, A Century of Total War: War
Peace and Social Change 1900 -1967, Penguin Harmondsworth. 1968. p. 318. 2 Curriculum and Examinations in Secondary Schools (HMSO: 1943) (The Norwood Report); Teachers and
Youth Leaders (HMSO: 1944) (The McNair Report); The Public Schools and the General Educational
System (HMSO: 1944) (The Fleming Report). 3 Education Act 1944 7 & 8 Geo 6 Ch 31. 4 G. McCulloch, Education Reconstruction: The 1944 Education Act and the Twenty First Century (Woburn
Press: Essex, 1994).
175
the newly established Ministry of Education new powers which enabled it to force
Local Education Authorities to plan for, and to implement reorganisation. The
structure at a local level also changed. The Part III authorities were removed and all
educational matters passed to the County and County Borough Councils. This
streamlined system was intended to make re-organisation much more
straightforward. The plan for the secondary sector, although not included in
legislation but implicit in discussion, and the Reports of Consultative Committee,
was that this should be on tripartite lines: grammar, modern or technical based on
pupils’ ability. In fact, the Education Act 1944 “had nothing to say”5 about the
structure of secondary education and this appears to have been a decision made
solely at the Ministry of Education.
Politics and the Education Act 1944
In 1945 the Labour Party swept to power, but the reality of the situation in
post war Britain made implementation of the war time plans for reconstruction and
the Party’s manifesto pledges very difficult. Its commitments were enormous: to
nationalisation, implementation of the Beveridge Report, the establishment of a
National Health Service as well as educational reform through the Education Act
1944. Major problems faced Government, not least the post war economic
problems, internal Party disagreements,6 and these combined, made reconstruction
problematic. For education, despite the almost unanimous war time calls for reform,
there was an immediate loss of impetus and, as had been the case after First World
War, it once again faced marginalisation.
Education had not initially been a focus for the war-time Labour Party but by
1941 there was a consensus that “We have to plan for a new world.”7 There had
been widespread discussion in the educational press and Herbert Morrison8 agreed
that an Advisory Committee9 should review and advise on the reform of education
5 D. Crook, Local Authorities and Comprehensivisation in England and Wales 1944-1974. Oxford Review of
Education, Vol 28, No 2/3: (2002) p. 247. 6 K. O. Morgan, Labour in Power 1945-51 (Clarendon Press: Oxford, 1984) Chapter 2, The Framework of
Politics 1945-1951, in particular. 7 Labour in the Government: A Record of Social Legislation in War-Time. Speech by Clement Atlee at
Tonypandy, 16th February 1941, (Labour Party), p. 5 in R. Barker, Education and Politics 1900-1951 A Study
of the Labour Party (Clarendon Press: Oxford, 1972), p. 75. 8 Member of Parliament for Hackney and Home Secretary in the war-time coalition government. 9 The Committee included Barbara Drake, George Tomlinson and R. H. Tawney.
176
after the war. The discussions were as inconclusive and confused as Labour policy
on education had always been. The Committee was quite interested in the idea of
the common school or multilateralism, but there was no clarity of interpretation of
this provision.10 Between 1943 and 1945, the views within the Labour Party had
become polarised. A small number of left of centre members proposed that common
schools both advanced the traditional values of the Party and were a viable
alternative to the tripartite system. Others wanted to maintain the grammar school
sector and expanding access to them. The main focus, however, was raising the
school leaving age and this commitment was embedded in the document ‘Let Us
Face the Future’ which became part of Labour’s 1945 election manifesto.11
In contrast to the Labour Party’s somewhat fragmented philosophy, the
Conservative Party’s ideas were clear. After Herwald Ramsbottom’s12 early ideas
that envisaged “nothing more than a generous restoration of the status quo ante”13
came under pressure, from the Workers Education Association for example, the
appointment of R.A. Butler led to only slightly more progressive views. The views
on the non-provided and the endowed grammar school sectors remained almost
unchanged. The tripartite system of secondary education anticipated in Circular
1350 of 192514 and the later Consultative Committee report The Education of the
Adolescent remained the model of choice.
Two issues exacerbated the reorganisation of education after 1944. Firstly,
the composition of the Labour Party in the House of Commons changed and was
substantially different from its pre-war structure. In 1945 there were two hundred
and forty four new Labour Members of Parliament,15 a massive majority16 which
would assist in carrying out reconstruction. However, the pre-war working class
profile of the Party changed to one which included large numbers of Members who
had attended public or grammar schools and had had a university education.17 This
10 R. Barker, op.cit. p. 77. 11 Let Us Face the Future (Labour Party: 1945) in R. Barker, ibid., p. 80. 12 Conservative Member of Parliament for Lancaster, President of the Board of Education in Chamberlain’s
government. 13 R. Barker, ibid., p. 75. 14 Jones, G. E., Controls and Conflicts in Welsh Secondary Education 1889-1994 (UWP: 1982), p. 115. 15 J. F .S. Ross, Elections and Electors: Studies in Democratic Representation (Eyre & Spottiswood: London,
1955), Table 53 p. 375. 16 Labour 399; Conservative 215; others 14 in J. F .S. Ross, ibid., p. 375. 17 85 percent Conservatives as compared to 23 percent Labour. Overall 44 percent of Members of Parliament
had attended schools that belongs to the Headteachers’ Conference. This meant that 44.5 percent of the
Members had attended public school. J. F .S. Ross, ibid, Table 67 and Table 71 p. 405, 407.
177
changed the Party’s perspective on education, and particularly what secondary
education should be like. The interwar ideal of ‘secondary education for all,’
interpreted as grammar school education for all, was slowly replaced by a structured
differentiated model with grammar schools the preserve of only a very small
percentage of children. The remainder would have access to updated elementary
provision: in modern schools or if they had aptitude, to a technical school. In essence
the changes to the Labour Party meant that it was generally less “susceptible to the
romantic Socialism of the 1920s.”18
Secondly, the appointment of Ellen Wilkinson19 as Minister of Education
presented added difficulties. Although Wilkinson was an experienced Member of
Parliament and had been a Junior Minister in the Coalition Government, she knew
nothing of education or the politics that had surrounded the drawing up of the
Education Act 1944. Most crucially, she was grammar school educated and has
been said to embody “Labour’s instinctive faith in the grammar schools, the bright
working class child’s alternative to Eton and Winchester.”20 Her early political beliefs
were decidedly radical but, during the war years, these had been largely abandoned
and she had moved towards the centre of Labour Party philosophy. As a close friend
of Herbert Morrison, Wilkinson had developed a more circumspect view on domestic
policies. There was no mistaking her intentions to implement the terms of the Act
and make changes to education provision21 but unfortunately her political
background had not equipped her with an understanding about how this should be
done. She had not been involved in any of the early discussions about the shape of
secondary education at the Labour National Executive Council nor with any of the
pressure group such as the National Union of Labour Teachers or the National
Union of Teachers. She had, however, been chair of the Labour Party in 1945 when
Conference accepted Harold Clay’s 1942 proposals that “that newly built secondary
schools were to be multilateral wherever possible.”22
It was inevitable that Wilkinson would come under criticism for her
management of education, and there was a perception amongst some Members of
Parliament that progress was unnecessarily slow. This was despite the fact that it
18 J. Morgan, The Backbench Diaries of Richard Crossman, p. 270 in K. O. Morgan, (1984) op. cit., p. 174. 19 Member of Parliament for Jarrow. 20 K. O. Morgan, (1984) ibid., p. 174. 21 B. D. Vernon, Ellen Wilkinson 1891-1947 (Croom Helm: London, 1982), p. 204. 22 B. D. Vernon ibid., p. 203.
178
was clear that she, and the officials at the Ministry had developed a three year plan
which had “two main priorities”23 both related to raising the school leaving age and
to secondary education for all. These, the supply of teachers and school buildings
as well as the expansion of the supply of school meals, were seen as critical to
reorganisation.24 The main bone of contention, however, was the Ministry of
Education pamphlet, The Nation’s Schools: Their Plan and Purpose25 which clearly
identified tripartite secondary education as the ideal scheme for reorganisation.
There is some uncertainty about the origins of this document but Simon suggests
that it was written when R. A. Butler and Chuter Ede were responsible for education,
and published on May 6th 1945.26
It suggested that while the reorganisation of primary schools was reasonably
straight forward, the organisation of the secondary sector was far more complicated.
Although there would be common goals the curriculum would be provided in three
types of secondary schools. There would be no increase in the number of grammar
school places as it was considered doubtful whether many more children could
benefit from an academic education.27 The majority of pupils would attend a modern
school intended for children “whose future employment will not demand any
measure of technical skill or knowledge.28” Technical schools were intended to fall
somewhere between grammar and modern schools and generally intended for
training boys in skills for different trades. There would be different types of technical
schools; trade; commercial, nautical and art which would cater for the regional
needs of the future employment of pupils. This was an echo of the recommendations
of the Norwood Report29 and appeared to be the preferred option of Ministry of
Education officials and Members of Parliament. However, the adoption of the
tripartite system was by no means a foregone conclusion and there had been
considerable pressure from organisations such as the National Union of Teachers
that multilateral secondary schools should be the preferred option. The pamphlet,
The Nation’s Schools, offered the advice that in sparsely populated areas there
23 PP. Hansard House of Commons 1st July 1946, Vol. 424, Col. 1806. 24 It was envisaged that by September, 1948 there would 390,000 extra children in education and they would
require 13,000 more teaching staff, ibid. 25 The Nation’s Schools, Their Plan and Purpose, Ministry of Education Pamphlet No. 1, (HMSO: 1945). 26 B. Simon, Education and Social Order 1940-1990 (Lawrence & Wishart, London, 1991.) p. 104 27 The Nation’s Schools, ibid., p. 16. 28 ibid., p. 17. 29 The Report of the Committee of the Secondary Schools Examination Council on Curriculum and
Examinations in Secondary Schools (HMSO: London, 1943).
179
might be the “judicious experiment”30 of combining the three types of schools in one
building but this need not necessarily be “The extreme measure … of the multilateral
school.”31 While the pamphlet expressed the view that this type of school had some
appeal as it allowed children to be selected for the different sectors later in their
school life it also had a number of disadvantages. The “parity of esteem”32 that the
multilateral school promised would require considerable change in the attitudes from
both educationalists and society before it could be properly accepted. It was also
pointed out that this type of school would need to be large and as a result would
lose the traditional intimacy provided in the grammar schools which engendered
leadership skills amongst pupils. Wilkinson’s views and those included in the
pamphlet were, however, hotly contested. Parity of esteem became the watch word
of reorganisation.
Technical education was perceived as the most difficult sector to be included
in any secondary school reorganisation. In March 1946 during a debate in
Parliament, Leah Manning33 pointed out that it was it was wrong to think that
intelligent children would not be interested in technical education and, to meet their
needs this would be most appropriately taught in a common or multilateral school.34
This argument was contradicted by Benn Levy35 who suggested that technical
education could never replace the humanities, and that while it might improve the
skills of manual workers it would not develop “fuller and more perceptive human
beings.”36 George Thomas37 retaliated to this comment by pointing out that this old
fashioned point of view was one that had prevented the development of technical
education in the past. This debate on technical education ranged back and forth
until stopped by William Cove38 who launched a ferocious attach on the recent
publication of The Nation’s Schools and suggested that it should be withdrawn
immediately as it was:
30 The Nation’s Schools, op. cit., p. 23. 31 ibid., p. 23. 32 ibid., p. 23. 33 Member of Parliament for Epping. Manning was also instrumental in the evacuation of Basque children to
Britain during the Spanish Civil War. 34 Hansard HC Sitting, 22nd, March 1946, Vol. 420, Col. 2155-436. 35 Member of Parliament for Eton and Slough 36 Hansard HC Sitting 22nd March, ibid. 37 Member of Parliament for Cardiff. 38 Member of Parliament for Aberavon.
180
“a profoundly reactionary document. There we have the three tiers, the stratification, of our children laid down as the official policy of the Ministry (and) I want the Minister of Education to take it and burn it, and start afresh.”39
Cove questioned whether it was right that a socialist Minister of Education should
be promoting the idea of grammar schools in spite of the fact that Party policy was
parity and class free education.
The arguments over The Nation’s Schools continued, directed mostly by the
representatives of the teacher unions and its contents came under fierce attack in
the education press,40 At the Labour Party Conference41 Ellen Wilkinson was
confronted “violently by W. G. Cove”42 about her part in drawing up the document
and he managed to get a resolution passed demanding that it was withdrawn. The
disagreement continued in the House of Commons.43 Wilkinson denied that she had
been involved in the writing of The Nation’s Schools, and Cove and others, Leah
Manning44 and Margaret Herbison45 for example, asked why she would not withdraw
it. It was clear, according to Cove, that Wilkinson believed in the contents of the
pamphlet as HMI were visiting schools in south Wales to suggest that tripartite
secondary provision was the preferred model. These proposals, he suggested, were
completely out of step with earlier Labour Party decisions on education. Wilkinson
pointed out that she had never thought that one type of school was suitable for all
children and different schools were needed to meet all different needs. She refused
to withdraw The Nation’s Schools but it was never reissued.46
The first part of the Act to be implemented was raising the school leaving
age. Wilkinson began to raise this matter in Cabinet in 1945. She pointed out that
the legislation of the Education Act 1944 provided for the school leaving age to be
raised to fifteen on 1st April 1945 unless the Minister considered that there was an
insufficient supply of teachers or accommodation. If this was the case “he was
39 Hansard HC Sitting 22nd March, op. cit. 40 G.C.T. Giles, Secondary Education for All. Times Educational Supplement; H. Dent, Times Educational
Supplement, 15th July 1945 in B. Simon, (1991) op. cit., p. 105. 41 Labour Party Conference Report, (1946), 189-95 in B. Simon, (1991) ibid., p. 105. 42 K. O. Morgan, (1984) op. cit., p. 176. 43 HC Debate 1st July 1946, Vol. 424, Cols. 1759-1922. 44 Labour Member of Parliament for Epping. 45 Labour Member of Parliament for North Lanarkshire. 46 B. Simon, (1991), p. 105.
181
empowered to defer the order … to a date not later than 1st April 1947.”47 Wilkinson
determined after examining the levels of school accommodation and staffing that
there would be no possibility of raising the school leaving age before 1947.48 She
pointed out that a decision had to be made quickly as the Local Education
Authorities could not plan until they had been given a definite decision, and this
needed to be made in Cabinet in conjunction with the Man-Power Committee.
Chuter Ede, then Secretary of State at the Home Office, “argued that postponement
would dishearten progressive LEAs, and convince the less adventurous that
ROSLA49 could be postponed indefinitely.”50 In August 1945, Cabinet agreed that
the school leaving age would be raised on the 1st April 1947, and in September a
memorandum from the Lord President of the Council, Herbert Morrison, indicated
that this proposal should be upheld as it:
“will be generally regarded as a test of the Government’s sincerity and that for political reasons we must stick to the date provided in the Education Act 1944 if it is humanly possible to do it.”51
He further indicated that if the Ministry of Education was prepared to accept lower
standards of accommodation, labour could be released to complete a building
programme although some materials, such as asbestos, might be in short supply.
The other main concern he expressed was how to manage the anticipated
shortages of staff52 and suggested that the Minister appealed to older and women
teachers to remain in service until the Emergency Training Scheme was producing
sufficient teachers.53
In spite of Morrison’s apparently firm decision, there were further calls for
postponement because of the poor economic conditions and the shortages of
teachers and equipment.54 Stafford Cripps, Chancellor of the Exchequer, had
already voiced his concerns about the cost of the scheme but the most serious
attack came in January 1947 from the Ministerial Committee on Economic Planning.
The Economic Survey for 1947 had revealed the grave financial situation facing
47 NA CAB 129/1/17 16th August 1945. 48 NA CAB 129/1/17 op. cit.. 49 ROSLA - an abbreviation for Raising of the School Leaving Age. 50 B. D. Vernon, (1986) op.cit., p. 207. 51 NA CAB 129/1/17, Raising the School Leaving Age Memorandum by the Lord President of the Council. 52 These had already been identified in The McNair Report in 1944 and some preliminary planning for
expansion of teacher training had already begun. 53 NA CAB 129/1/17 Raising the School Leaving Age: Memorandum by the Lord President of the Council. 54 R. Aldrich, Lessons from History of Education, The Selected Works of Richard Aldrich (Routledge:
London, 2005), p. 69.
182
Great Britain. There was large and increasing gap between the needs of the country
and production, and there was growing realization that some projects would need
to be postponed.55 Raising the school leaving age fell into this category. The
arguments put forward by the Committee were persuasive. Stafford Cripps
recommended to Cabinet that raising of the school-leaving age should be delayed.
The reasons given for this were two fold. Firstly it would mean that more children
would be available for employment, and secondly a postponement of five months
would allow accommodation and other preparations for be much further ahead.56
Wilkinson argued against this as it “would produce great social and educational
hardship for very little economic advantage.”57 She pointed out that the loss of a
year’s education for a large number of children could also have long term economic
disadvantages as employers were looking for a skilled workforce58 and many were
already refusing to employ children of less than sixteen years of age. Consideration
also had to be given to the fact that public pledges had been given and should not
be broken. In Wilkinson’s opinion delaying raising the school leaving age could not
be justified on education grounds as it would “deprive 150,000 children of a whole
year's education, and the children to suffer would be precisely those whose
education had been most seriously interrupted by the war.”59 She assured Cabinet
that by April 1947 sufficient teachers would be trained and accommodation ready.
By then the local authorities would also have completed their initial planning
especially as there was a belief that the school leaving age would be raised on 1st
April. If the Government changed its mind, there was a possibility that the education
authorities would also delay their planning for reform. After lengthy discussions the
Chancellor of the Exchequer agreed not to press for postponement, mainly because
of Wilkinson’s strong views on the matter. This was almost the last battle Wilkinson
had over the implementation of the Education Act 1944. She died in February of
1947 and was succeeded as Minister for Education by George Tomlinson.
At a local level the Education Authorities had begun to draw up Development
Plans. This enormous task was complicated by the fact that they had been given
55 NA CAB 129/16/25 Economic Survey for 1947, Report from the Ministerial Committee on Economic
Planning 10th January, 1947, p. 1. 56 ibid., p. 4 57 NA CAB 128/9/8 Conclusions of a Meeting of the Cabinet 10th January 1947, p 50. 58 NA CAB 128/9/8 Conclusions of a Meeting of the Cabinet 16th January 1947. 59 ibid.
183
some very mixed messages about the preferred shape of secondary education.
There was a clear intention in the phrasing of the Act that there should be some
freedom in the way local authorities planned for reorganisation but it was also
apparent from the early discussions at the Ministry of Education and in the
recommendations of the Norwood Report60 that a tripartite system of secondary
education was most favoured. The political view in this matter also appeared to have
changed and the interwar Labour Party’s demands for progressivism and equality
appears to have been modified by the terms of the new Education Act. It has been
suggested that “the 1945 Labour Government was failing to act as a socialist party,
which might be expected to have acted at this time in history.”61
There had been considerable support for the ideas of a common school
during the interwar years from the various teacher and trade unions as well as from
educationalists. The National Association of Labour Teachers had totally opposed
the Education Act 1944 as “reactionary and doctrinaire”62 and together with the
Labour Party had lobbied R.A. Butler to omit the prescription of the type of
secondary in the legislation. In much the same way, the Labour Party Conferences
of 1943 and 1945 had supported the idea of multilateral education but once it had
been elected to Government, the attitude of the party, in this respect, appears to
have changed. The main source of opposition came from Transport House and
Herbert Morrison who supported grammar schools, and not the idea of multilateral
education.63 It has been suggested that Ellen Wilkinson also supported this view.64
However, tripartite secondary education did not appear to be an attractive option at
local level and Fabian Society research, published in 1945, indicated that out of the
fifty four LEA Development Plans that had already been submitted, only eighteen
had decided on a tripartite system of education. The remainder had put forward a
variety of schemes most of which included at least ten percent of multilateral
schools.65 However, Wilkinson discarded these and the early Labour Party support
for multilateralism, “Instead she led the troops in an entirely different direction,
60 The Report of the Committee of the Secondary Schools Examination Council on Curriculum and
Examinations in Secondary Schools (HMSO: 1943). 61 C. Benn, Comprehensive School Reform and the 1945 Labour Government. History Workshop, 10: (1980),
197-204, p. 197. 62 Editorial Modern Education, October 1946 in C. Benn, ibid., p. 199. 63 J.D. Burgevin, Politics and Education: A case study of a pressure group, the national association of Labour
Teachers 1927-1951, PhD Dissertation, Syracuse University, (1969) in C. Benn, ibid. 64 D. Rubenstein, Ellen Wilkinson Re-Considered. History Workshop, No. 7: (1979), 161-169, p. 1979. 65 Unreferenced in D. Rubenstein, ibid., p. 165.
184
insisting it would be ‘folly to injure’ the grammar schools, which were the
‘outstanding achievement’ of the state educational system.”66
Planning for Change in south and south west Wales
In his presidential address to the Welsh Federation of Education Committees,
Sir William Jenkins remarked that the Education Act 1944 “would change the
complexion of Wales. It was a great step forward and a completely new set up.”67
The Welsh Education Committees were well aware of the terms of the Act and the
apparent latitude it allowed them in terms of curriculum and organisation and, as a
consequence, they made interesting, and often very different decisions about
reconstruction. Their decision-making and planning was, however, hampered by a
number of issues. They had to make difficult choices about the shape of the
secondary sector and there was continuing, but less extensive, organisational
difficulties caused by the non-provided schools. Added to these problems, was the
fact that in some local authority areas no reorganisation had taken place during the
interwar years, and as a consequence total reform would be very expensive and
demanding. There was often insufficient accommodation to reorganise into primary
and secondary schools and many authorities were still trying to get possession of
school buildings that had been requisitioned by the military authorities during the
war. Accommodating the planned extra year of provision without any other
reorganisation would be problematic but head teachers, “those who would have
most influence in carrying it out,”68 were convinced that it could be done.
The ideas and philosophy laid out in The Nation’s Schools: Their Plan and
Purpose came rather too late for some LEAs who had already begun to put
sophisticated Development Plans in place which generally included some element
of multilateral schools. The Plans were a requirement under the terms of the
Education Act 1944 and had to contain details of reorganisation for primary and
secondary sectors, including provision for non-provided schools and for children
with .special educational needs. In south and south west Wales the two largest
authorities Carmarthenshire and Glamorgan County Councils produced very similar
66 Education, November 9th: (1945) in D. Rubenstein, op. cit., p. 165. 67 GA BMT/E/7/4 Merthyr Tydfil Education Committee Minutes 1944-1945, Report of the Annual Meeting
of the Welsh Federation of Education Committees. 68 G. E. Jones, Controls and Conflicts in Welsh Secondary Education 1889-1994 (UWP: 1982),p. 193.
185
plans which were a mixture of tripartite and multilateral schools. Swansea Borough
Council’s Development Plan focused entirely on the establishment of six new
multilateral schools and the abandonment of all existing education provision. The
two remaining Borough Councils, Cardiff and Merthyr Tydfil planned a complete
reliance on the tripartite system. It is impossible to establish whether there was any
cross fertilization of ideas between the authorities but there does appear to be some
elements of this in the resulting plans.
Cardiff Borough Council
Before the start of World War Two there were one hundred and twenty five
elementary schools, with 30,070 pupils and ten High Schools with 3,816 pupils in
the Cardiff.69 During the war many schools had been bombed, damaged or
destroyed and children had been evacuated. The task of reorganisation was
therefore considerable and the Development Plan that was drawn up followed
simple logical principles.70 It does not contain any explanation of its rationale but is
reasonably detailed and includes proposals for the primary and secondary sectors
as well as special education and nursery provision. Although not required, it includes
a scheme for the feeding of school children as this was considered “an integral part
of the Authority’s proposals.”71 In spite of its simplicity and adherence to the
recommended tripartite system, City of Cardiff’s proposals were not received with
any enthusiasm by the Welsh Department of the Ministry of Education. The main
cause for concern appears to have been both an underestimation of pupil numbers
and the actual organisation of schools. The Welsh Department comments point out
that:
69 The figures for the elementary schools, based on statistics from January 1943, were presented in April
1945 to a sub-committee considering the reorganisation of the City’s schools following the 1944 Education
Act. The secondary figures are based on returns for January 1943. CCL Cardiff, Education 45, (Re-
organisation of Schools) Sub-Committee, 18th April 1945, pp. 164 -170 and CCL Cardiff, Education 1942-
43, Higher Education Committee, 12th February 1943, p. 87. The exact number of elementary schools cannot
be given with certainty as my research has revealed that the numbers given in the report of April 1945 are in
some cases inaccurate. For example, all eight Roman Catholic elementary schools are listed as having Boys’,
Girls’ and Infant Departments and yet six of them only had Mixed and Infant schools. See K. Strange,
Cardiff Schools and The Age of the Second World War – The Log Books: A documentary history. Undated
unpublished pdf document, p. 4. resources.hwb.wales.gov.uk/VTC/ngfl/history/cardiff_schools/ 70 GA Lib/C/198 City of Cardiff Education Committee: reorganisation scheme for Elementary Council,
Church in Wales and Roman Catholic schools 71 NA BD 7/14 City of Cardiff Education Committee Development Plan Report on the Development and re-
organisation of Education within the Terms of Section 11 of the Education Act 1944.
186
“In many cases the total accommodation of individual Departments bears little or no relation to the requirements of the Building Regulations … and it is not clear how the Authority contemplates that the Departments in question could be organised with due regard to both efficiency and reasonable economy.”72
There were also comments about the proposed siting of some primary schools and
the inadequacy of play grounds and fields. Thirteen single-sex senior schools were
planned in the catchment areas of existing elementary schools and would, wherever
possible, be situated away from the city centre. This arrangement, unfortunately,
meant that there would often have to be considerable movement of pupils over quite
long distances. Primary reorganisation was equally problematic and complex. As an
example, three elementary schools, Gladstone Road, Crwys and Allensbrooks were
situated in neighbouring areas of the city but on different sides of the River Taf. Six
hundred children over eleven were to be transferred to Gladstone Road School.
Children from seven to eleven would attend Crwys School and Infant children would
be based at Crwys and Allensbrooks. Similar arrangements were made for other
areas with the most suitable school for an age groups converted for use.
The scheme was to include Church in Wales and Roman Catholic schools.
There were lengthy discussions with Managers who asked for the maximum benefits
in terms of financial aid and staffing.73 The Church in Wales plan, because of the fall
in pupil numbers in some parishes, was to concentrate senior pupils in two Central
schools near the city centre. The Managers agreed that they would be able to meet
their portion of building costs and have all accommodation ready for occupation by
31st August 1949. The Roman Catholic sector plan intended building four new senior
schools and convert a fifth elementary school for secondary use. The LEA agreed
to the demands of the non-provided sector so that reorganisation would be able to
take place although it advised that it was in the Ministry of Education’s gift to agree
with the establishment of any new schools.
Many aspects of the City of Cardiff plan, including that for the non-
provided sector, came under intense scrutiny from the Ministry of Education. There
were thirteen Church in Wales schools in the city but their pupil population was
small. Four schools had less that fifty children on roll, and the Ministry of Education
72 NA BD 7/14 Letter H.E. Weston to Cardiff Education Authority, 10th January 1948. 73 GA Lib/C/198, op.cit.
187
questioned whether these were appropriate “in terms of efficiency” and why the
authority had not had discussions with the Mangers about possible closure. The
small number of pupils over eleven years of age were insufficient to warrant a
separate senior school, but despite this, the Church in Wales planned for two single
sex grammar schools in the Llandaff area of Cardiff to accommodate pupils from
across the City. In contrast the Roman Catholic sector had eight schools in Cardiff
with a substantial child population of almost three thousand with about a third of
these being over eleven years of age. It planned to establish two single sex senior
schools and expand its primary sector although the exact plan was not completed
because there were some difficulties in finding suitable sites.
The Minister also had reservations about the planning for local authority
secondary schools and it was suggested that there was insufficient surplus
accommodation in modern schools for any rises in birth rate or population
movement. Conversely, grammar school provision was too generous: “This would
enable rather more than 25 per cent of the children to proceed to the grammar
schools. Such provision would appear to be too liberal.”74 The Development Plan
for Cardiff LEA was finally approved in 1952. Unfortunately, little is known about the
details of the process of implementation or any protests that surrounded it as the file
of proceedings remains closed until 2043.75
Carmarthenshire County Council
In 1939 there were one hundred and sixty six elementary schools in
Carmarthenshire76 and of these, one hundred and twenty two had less than forty
children on roll.77 There were also a number of small non-provided Church in Wales
schools78 and two Roman Catholic schools, one in Carmarthen and one at Llanelly.
There were also two Part III authorities; Carmarthen Borough Council and Llanelly
Urban District Council, which would need to be assimilated before reorganisation
could begin. Carmarthen Borough Council, had few schools and a very small child
74 NA BD 7/14 Letter, op. cit. 75 NA ED 216/434 Welsh County Boroughs, Cardiff, General papers and correspondence. 76 There were also four Central Schools, four Junior Instruction Centres, eleven County/Secondary and Art
Schools, two Mining Institutes and a number of Grammar Schools. 77 See NA BD/7/5, p. 3. There were 78 schools with less than 78 pupils; 59 with less than 30; 28 with less
than 20 and 17 schools with l less than 15 on roll. 78 NLW SD/ED/7-10 Church in Wales Representative Body of the Church in Wales, Diocese of St Davids.
The number of non-provided schools is difficult to assess but it is thought there were about forty in all.
188
population and by September 1944 had been included in the Carmarthenshire
Scheme as a Divisional Executive.79 However Llanelly Urban District Council, raised
strong objections to becoming assimilated. It applied to the Ministry of Education for
exempted status as “the Council were of the opinion that Llanelly could by itself
function economically as an excepted district.”80 This was immediately turned down
on population grounds and it became a Divisional Executive of Carmarthenshire
LEA.
The problems facing Carmarthenshire were complex. The primary sector
proved particularly difficult to reorganise and it was impossible to plan a strategy for
secondary education before decisions were made about this. It was recognised
early in the discussions that in order for primary provision to be efficient a number
of small schools, provided and non-provided, would have to be closed.81 There was
a commitment to incorporating community facilities into both primary and secondary
schools and where village schools were closed, and the buildings suitable, they
would be converted for community use. During the autumn of 1944 the Director of
Education convened a Reorganisation Sub-Committee, and begun negotiations with
the Managers of non-provided schools. The position of Church in Wales schools in
the area had already been discussed at length at meetings of the Governing Body
of the Church in Wales but out of the six diocese, only St Davids had refused to
consider handing any of its schools over to the local authority.82 Many Church in
Wales schools in Carmarthenshire were very small, some were Blacklisted,83 and
inspection reports had indicated that many were in poor condition.84 Very few useful
Diocesan Education Committee Minutes remain, but it is apparent that there was a
national determination on the part of the Church in Wales to retain as many of their
schools as possible. However, circumstances in Carmarthenshire were quite
different to other areas, Cardiff for example, and it became obvious that a number
79 CAS CC/ED/1/1/31 Carmarthen County Council Education Committee Minutes. 80 CAS CC/ED/1/1/33 County Education Committee Minutes, October 18th 1944. 81 CAS ED/BK/188 Carmarthen Education Committee Education Act 1944 Development Plan Carmarthen
Borough. 82 CinWA Representative Body and Governing Body of the Church in Wales, Minute Book, October 1942-
September 1945; Minutes of the Meeting of the Provincial Education Committee, 27th January, 1944. 83 NLW Carmarthenshire County Council Report on Reorganisation of Schools, September 1929. These were
at Felinfoel; Tycroes, Cwmamman, Llandebie, Llanstephan, Capel Cynfab, Myddfai, St Clears, Laugharne
Parish, Llangunnor and Llangunnock. The position of these schools had not changed substantially during the
intervening years although Llangunnock Vaughn’s Charity School had been substantially used for large
parties of evacuees. 84 For example Inspection Reports: Llanedy NP School and Vaughn’s Charity School at Llangunnock. NLW
SD/ED 7-10 Diocesan Education Minutes.
189
of small schools would have to be closed. In spite of its early resolve to retain all its
schools the Diocesan Education Committee appears to have agreed to retain only
those which were viable and give up the rest. In spite of the generally good
relationships between the Church and the Education Committee misunderstandings
did occur. At Cilycwm for example, the local authority decided that the non-provided
school was inadequate and would need to be rebuilt on a new site. The Managers,
however, wanted it to retain it but did not understand that they would be responsible
for rebuilding costs which amounted to approximately £5,600. Eventually, because
of the Managers inability to pay, Carmarthenshire Education Committee took over
the running of the school.85 There were lengthy discussions about school closures
and it was agreed that schools in remote areas, where there was no community
would be closed, as would non-provided schools in a community which was served
by two schools. However “No hard and fast rules have been applied; each case has
been carefully considered on its merits.”86 Carmarthenshire County Council closed
sixty three schools, of which eight were non-provided. In addition a number of
Church in Wales were handed over to the local authority during the years that
followed when further reorganisation took place.87
The circumstances in Carmarthenshire made the reconstruction of
secondary education very difficult. The Development Plan indicates that a great deal
of thought had been put into reorganisation, and consideration given to geographical
and social conditions as well as the character of the existing secondary schools.88
The result was a mixture of tripartite, bilateral and multilateral secondary schools
based on their suitability for different geographical areas of the County. It is evident
from the notes in a memorandum to the Education Committee89 that their aim was
two-fold: to retain the existing grammar schools and to establish a high level
technical sector throughout the county. This was not new as agricultural education
had always been a key priority.90 Although there would be one very large agricultural
technical school,91 technical education would be provided mostly in a bilateral
85 NA ED 216/164 Carmarthenshire Development Plan Protests. Letter to Welsh Department of Ministry of
Education from Carmarthen County Council, July 31st 1947. 86 NA BD 7/5 Carmarthenshire Education Authority Education Act Section II Development Plan (Section I)
(Primary and Secondary Education), December 1946, p. 3. 87 See CA ED/BK 188 for example at Llandefeilog and Llanstephan. 88 CAS ED/BK 188 Carmarthen Education Committee Secondary Education 89 CAS ED/BK 188 ibid. 90 CAS CC/ED/1/1/8 Education Committee Minutes 1919-1921, June 13th 1919. For example, boys
attending Llandilo County School studied chemistry to prepare them for agricultural degrees at Aberystwyth 91 CAS ED/BK 188 ibid., p. 2.
190
system attached to either the grammar or modern schools. It was stressed that there
should be opportunities for pupils to study agricultural technology at a high level,
which would best provided at a grammar school. Industrial technology was also a
focus, and engineering and building, because of the smaller numbers involved,
might need to be concentrated in the industrial areas of the county, Llanelly and
Ammanford for example.92 However, in areas where the catchment was small,
multilateral schools would be established.
The Authority divided the county into a number of Divisional Executives and
based their plans for reorganisation around these although “it was difficult to devise
a completely satisfactory scheme of secondary education”93 in the large and thinly
populated areas. At Llandilo, for example, there were insufficient pupil numbers to
be able to have a secondary school “sufficiently large to be efficiently and
economically staffed and well equipped.”94 It would be necessary to draw pupils in
from the surrounding areas which would mean either long travelling distances or the
provision of boarding accommodation. The Llandysul area would share facilities with
Cardiganshire with three mixed Modern Grammar Schools: at Llandysul, Newcastle
Emlyn and Lampeter. In the Amman Valley two multilateral schools were envisaged,
but this needed the co-operation of Glamorgan County Council because of the large
numbers of cross border children. The grammar schools in Carmarthen would be
retained, but with a technical stream in both boys’ and girls’ schools. In addition,
there would be a three form entry mixed modern technical school and a mixed rural
modern school near the town. There was an initial plan to convert the Pibwrlwyd
Farm Institute for this purpose but it was decided that it would be too large and the
Committee asked for a costing on the rent for Golden Grove Mansion.95 In the
Gwendraeth Valley there would be one Grammar Technical School and two Modern
Technical Schools. In the Llandilo and Llandovery area two multilateral schools were
planned with an additional rural modern mixed school at Llansawel. Llanelly retained
its existing school system of two single sex grammar schools and six modern
technical schools. Whitland retained its grammar school and a new rural modern
school would be built at St Clears.
92 CAS CC/ED/1/1/8, ibid., May 8th 1919. 93 CAS ED/BK/188 Carmarthenshire Education Committee Education Act 1944 Secondary Education, p. 1. 94 CAS ED/BK/188 ibid, p. 1 95 CAS CC ED/1/1/32 Wales Circular 2, December 21st 1944, Education Act 1944, The Welsh Intermediate
Schools.
191
The position of the Intermediate schools and grant aided grammar schools
added to the difficulties of reorganisation and the funding of these schools had to be
taken into consideration. Intermediate schools were funded by the Central Welsh
Office and aided by the various Local Education Authorities on a deficiency basis
but would not automatically become non-provided schools. The Governing Bodies
of each school had to decide whether it would become either a Controlled or Aided
school add apply to the Ministry of Education for permission. Carmarthenshire
County Council advised these schools to delay their submission until the
Development Plan had been finalised and the full proposals became evident. In the
interim period, intermediate schools could be supported by the local authority with
the permission of the Minister of Education. The schools that chose to become
controlled would be known as County schools under Section 9(2) of the Education
Act 1944. The remainder which were managed by school Governing Body and as
such would become aided schools. This latter group could be transferred to the local
authority if the Governing Body agreed but after 1st April 1945 they would not be
eligible to any funds from the local authority.96 All the intermediate schools in
Carmarthenshire became controlled schools. The position of grant aided grammar
schools was equally complex. Grammar schools maintained by the local authority
would automatically become county schools but grant aided grammar schools would
not automatically become voluntary schools.
Despite the intelligent way in which Carmarthenshire County Council planned
to use its existing provision and resources to develop secondary education the
Ministry raised strong objections. The response to the Development Plan was very
negative, and although the Minister apparently understood the many difficulties in
reorganisation the County faced he felt that the authority should reconsider its
proposals.97 It was suggested that some subjects must be treated technically rather
than academically, and that in selective secondary schools this could only be
justified in areas where there were large numbers of pupils because otherwise the
cost of providing facilities would be too great. It was suggested that the technical
element should be dropped and secondary schools should be all be classified as
either grammar or modern. The idea of multilateral schools was regarded as
unsatisfactory because some would be too small to offer sufficient curriculum
96 CAS CC ED/1/1/32 op. cit. 97 NA BD 7/5 Letter from H.E. Weston to Carmarthenshire County Council, June 2nd 1948.
192
options. Other alternatives should be considered such as a new grammar school at
Llangattock to serve the Llandilo and Llandovery districts and modern schools
established in the two towns. The general consideration was that if the authority
preferred to retain the multilateral option it would need to transfer children over
larger areas to make bigger and more viable schools. There was some concern over
cross border provision with Pembrokeshire and Cardiganshire. It was suggested
that children who required a grammar school education in the Llandysul area should
attend a shared school and similarly in the Whitland district the Narbeth Secondary
School should become a modern school and Whitland Grammar School retained
with cross border co-operation.98
There were a number of objections to the Development Plan. Some were
relatively straightforward. The Town Clerk of Kidwelly Borough Council wrote to the
Ministry of Education requesting that a secondary school was built in the Borough
as he felt that the decisions made by Carmarthenshire County Council was “not in
the interest of the children or the Ratepayers.”99 Other objections from the two non-
provided sectors: the Church in Wales and the Roman Catholics, were far more
serious as it was felt that the Development Plan proposals for the sector was
inadequate. The largest Roman Catholic community was in Llanelly and the Roman
Catholic Diocesan Education Committee of Menevia pointed out that there had been
lengthy discussions over the future of the all age elementary school there, which
was to become a primary school. This would leave the town with no Roman Catholic
school for secondary age pupils. As a result, the Dioceses asked that the Minister
approve the establishment of a secondary school to serve the needs of Llanelly and
the surrounding area. It had recently purchased the Richard Thomas Institute and
considered it might be suitable to be converted into a secondary school.100 In 1952
the Minister instructed Carmarthen County Council that: “A one form entry Roman
Catholic Secondary Modern School at Llanelly should be included in the
Development Plan.”101 The position of the secondary Church in Wales sector is
unclear, but it does appear that by 1950 a Diocesan high school had been
established in Carmarthen.102 There is also evidence that in the 1960s the Church
98 NA BD 7/5 op. cit. 99 NA ED 216/164 Letter Town Clerk Kidwelly Borough Council to Minister of Education, March 4th 1947. 100 NA ED 216/164 Letter Menevia Diocesan Education Authority to Minister of Education, 12th August
1950. 101 NA BD 7/5 Carmarthenshire LEA: Special Educational Treatment; Development Plan, Letter D. E. Lloyd
Jones Welsh Department to Carmarthen County Council, 8th April, 1952. 102 NLW SA /ED 7-10 1/1 Church in Wales Diocesan Education Minutes.
193
in Wales and the Roman Catholic Church planned to build a joint faith secondary
school at Haverford West but nothing came of this.103
The main focus of the Development Plan104 was to devise a scheme which
would create sufficient primary and secondary schools based on better catchment
areas. This in turn would produce more efficient schools with fewer large mixed age
classes. In all, Carmarthenshire LEA planned to retain two hundred and nineteen
primary school departments in buildings which would either have to be adapted or
rebuilt in order to meet the requirements and specifications of the Education Act
1944.105 The restructuring of education in Carmarthenshire provided modern and
technical education alongside the traditional grammar schools with a high level of
Welsh medium education.
Glamorgan County Council
Glamorgan County Council made an early start drawing up a Development
Plan106 but before it could make much progress it had deal with the assimilation of
the Part III local authorities107 as after 1st April 1945 they would cease to have any
responsibility for education. A number of these108 applied for exemption under the
terms of the Education Act 1944, but the Clerk to Glamorgan County Council pointed
out that it very difficult “to set up a convenient administration for the County as a
whole”109 if this would happen. The application from Aberdare Urban District
Council, for example, did not “afford the slightest evidence of any special
circumstances to support the Council’s claim to be an exempted district.”110 Barry
Municipal Borough Council put forward a very strong case for exempted status citing
its excellent record in education development.111 However, in January 1945 the
103 NLW SD/ED 22-30 Church in Wales Diocesan Education Minutes. 104 NA BD 7/5 Carmarthenshire Education Authority Education Act Section II Development Plan, (Section I)
(Primary and Secondary Education), December, 1946. 105 For example in Carmarthen Borough the “existing Pentrepoeth site ((0. 93 acres) is according to the
Building Regulations, not quite adequate for a three class school (46-75 children). At the moment the
Pentrepoeth premises houses just over 600 children.” CAS ED BK 188 Carmarthen Education Committee
Education Act 1944 Development Plan – Carmarthen Borough. 106 Framing Glamorgan’s Education Scheme, Western Mail & South Wales News, 15th September 1944 107 See Appendix 1 108 Aberdare Urban District Council, Barry Municipal Borough Council, Pontypridd Urban District Council
and Mountain Ash Urban District Council. Barry’s Education Claim Fails. Barry Daily News, 26th January
1945. 109 GA GD/E/1/107 Outgoing letters, mainly from the Clerk of Glamorgan County Council to the Board, later
Ministry of Education. 110 ibid. 111 GA BB/E/1/44.
194
Barry Daily News printed a letter from R.A. Butler to Cyril Larkin112 which pointed
out that in order to avoid assimilation, Part III local authorities would have to put
forward a very strong case.113 Butler wrote that the four claims that he received from
the Part III authorities in the area were insufficiient and would not be considered.114
The letter pointed out that Barry was not as large as other areas seeking exemption
and although it was quite isolated geographically, did not have any special attributes
that would qualify it to be an exempted authority. Butler hoped that Glamorgan
County Council would be able to devise a suitable arrangement for divisional
administration and that if there were any concerns in this direction, that Barry or any
other Part III authority, would have the right of appeal to the Ministry.
One of the remaining Part III authorities, Rhondda Urban District Council,
held a unique position as when it was established it had been given devolved
statutory powers for both elementary and secondary education.115 It had
reorganised after the 1918 Education Act, with the exception of a few ‘difficult’
spots”116 and offered a considerable range of educational facilities including
intermediate, municipal and higher elementary secondary education. In November
1943, Rhondda Urban District Council received a letter from the Federation of Part
III Authorities which voiced concerns over the proposals in the White Paper and
urging all members to “urgently express their opposition”117 to the planned changes.
By January 1944, a subcommittee had been set up and authorised to take all
possible steps to bring: “to the attention of the Board the unique position of Rhondda
and its progressive record as an LEA administering both Elementary and Higher
education.”118
The two local Members of Parliament, W. H. Mainwaring119 and Will John,120
met with the Permanent Secretary of the Ministry of Education121 to discuss
Rhondda’s educational importance and urged him to exempt it from assimilation.
112 Member of Parliament for Barry. 113 Barry’s Education Claim Fails, Barry Daily News, 26th January 1945. 114 Barry’s Education Claim Fails, ibid., 1945. 115 TRL R (370) RHO Rhondda Urban District Council Education Act 1918 Scheme of the Rhondda LEA. 116 GA UDR E/ 45/1/ Report Director of Education to The Chairman and Members of the Committee
appointed to consider the Rhondda Development Plan, November, 1946. Only five all are elementary schools
remained in the Borough in 1945. 117 TRL Rhondda Urban District Council Minutes 1943-1944, November 1943, p. 600. 118 TRL ibid., p. 1203. 119 Labour Member of Parliament for Rhondda East. 120 Labour Member of Parliament for Rhondda West. 121 Maurice Holmes.
195
This application was refused and a letter from the Ministry indicated that: “In the
view of the County Council the position of Rhondda is no different to that of other
Divisional Executive Committees in the County.”122 The objections continued and in
May 1945, the Sub-Committee again wrote to Maurice Holmes querying its position
as a Divisional Executive under the terms of the Government Act 1933. Rhondda’s
objections ultimately paid off and, after long arguments, the Ministry agreed to it not
being assimilated.123 Although it retained autonomy its position was still ambiguous.
It was able to draw up its own Development Plan but this needed to be approved by
Glamorgan Education Authority which led to long delays.
Rhondda had been a very generous local authority, but this had caused it a
number of problems.124 In 1946, the Director wrote that the number of pupils
attending secondary schools was over thirty five percent which far exceeded the
percentage recommended in the Ministry of Education Circular 73. He admitted that
this was “particularly generous”125 and the four grammar and two intermediate
schools were now all overcrowded. He also had reservations that the quality of some
pupils “are educationally not really suitable to pursue a Grammar school course
leading to a School Certificate, and the proper place for these pupils would be in a
modern school.”126 Despite this the Director suggested that it would be inappropriate
to drastically reduce the annual intake and a more suitable alternative would be to
offer a less demanding course at the grammar schools so that the nature of the
existing schools would change to “grammar/modern schools under the 1944 Act.”127
The intake into technical schools was very low and he suggested reducing the
numbers in grammar schools education by selecting about eighty boys each year to
attend technical schools. By November 1946, the Director had drawn up a number
of proposals for the Education Committee to discuss, including the position of the
one non-provided Roman Catholic school in the authority area. He noted that the
condition of the later was not up to the standard and in terms of secondary provision
“notice had already been given by the Arch-Diocesan Schools Committee for the
Roman Catholic Arch-Diocese of Cardiff to provide (inter alia) a modern school.”128
122 TRL Rhondda Urban District Council Minutes 1944-1945, 2nd May 1945, p. 79. 123 Rhondda Local Education Authority became the only exempted authority in Wales 124 GA UDR E/ 45/1/ Report Director of Education 125 ibid., Report of the Director of Education, 17th July, 1947. 126 ibid., 17th July 1947. 127 GA UDR E/ 45/1/ Report Director of Education, 17th July 1947. 128 GA UDR E /45/1 Director’s Memorandum to the Rhondda Urban District Education Authority,
November 1946.
196
In March 1947 he put forward suggestions for reorganisation of the whole secondary
sector. He suggested that he had no educational objections to multilateral schools
but felt that geographically they would be difficult to organise and would mean
leaving relatively new existing buildings empty.129 After lengthy discussion the
Education Committee decided on a tripartite system utilizing as far as possible
existing secondary schools. The completed the Development Plan was eventually
approved by Glamorgan County Council but the Ministry of Education was less
accommodating, and it was heavily criticised. A Minute Sheet from the Ministry of
Education to HMI pointed out a number of failings. This included an objection to the
high level of nursery provision130 and the Ministry official pointed out that “I don’t
think that we need to do more than to say that we think the provision proposed is on
the generous side … Agree?”131 The second main cause for concern was the
apparent lack of understanding of planning for the secondary sector. There was
apparently “muddled thinking”132 over catchments and the numbers of pupils that
were in each. The child population133 of the area had declined sharply and that
meant that too many secondary schools were being planned with too much surplus
accommodation. The hybrid schools that were being planned, for example a modern
school with a technical stream, had no substance. and some schools were badly
placed and that would involve high transport costs.134
Glamorgan County Council was by far the largest provider of education in
south and west Wales and regardless of the economic downturn of the interwar
period was the most prosperous135 and highly populated.136 Despite this, the
changes in its responsibilities, including the assimilation of the Part III authorities,
placed it under considerable financial pressure. The proposed reconstruction of
education would be expensive, and in 1945 the County Council reluctantly approved
129 GA UDR E /45/1 op. cit., Director’s Memorandum to the Rhondda Urban District Education Authority,
17th March 1947. 130 Rhondda UDC had provided a very high level of nursery education especially during the war years. GRO.
URE/ 45/1/, Report Director of Education. 131 NA ED 216/291 Minute Sheet BS to HMI E.G. Lewis, 23rd December 1953, p. 1. 132 NA ED 216/291 ibid., p. 2. 133 The child population figures referred to in Development Plan were those of 1945 which was 22,952. In the
years that followed it had dropped by 14 per cent to 19,958. NA ED 216/291 Undated Minute Sheet to Mr
Toomey. 134 NA ED 216/291 ibid. 135 Total income into Glamorgan in 1937 was £4,457,375 as compared to that of Carmarthenshire
£1,154,503. J. Williams, Digest of Welsh Historical Statistics Volume 2 (The Welsh Office Cardiff: 1985) p.
183. 136 Population of Glamorgan in 1937 was 1,159,400. J. Williams, ibid., Vol. 1, p. 51.
197
a £4 million education scheme.137 The County rate rose quite considerably, mainly
due to increases in salaries but also to a large increase to the education budget
because of the assimilation of the Part III authorities.138 Glamorgan had begun to
reorganise during the interwar years and although this was still incomplete, of all the
local authorities it was probably in the best position to restructure provision. Its
Development Plan appears to have been a balance between tradition and
innovation. It retained grammar schools but also introduced the idea of multilateral
schools in areas where there were a number of senior schools and their combination
would be more efficient and cost effective. There was considerable opposition to
this especially from the assimilated Part III local authorities. In Aberdare for
example, the head teachers of the intermediate schools and their joint teaching
staffs wrote to the Minister for Education,139 about the planned secondary school
reorganisation. Their main complaint was that if multilateral schools were
established, children would be allocated to them on a catchment and geographical
basis, rather than on ability. This, they considered, was contrary to the terms of the
Education Act 1944 and recent Guidance140 the placement of children “should be
related to the abilities and aptitudes of the pupils.”141 In addition, the proposal that
all pupils follow a common curriculum until thirteen years of age would make it
impossible for head teachers to plan courses of five or six years duration. The
Glamorgan Plan, in their opinion, was not flexible enough and conflicted with the
idea that “all local authorities must have arrangements which make it possible
without difficulty to transfer them (the misfits) at any stage … from one type of
secondary education to another.”142 There was concern that there had been no
consultation with either parents or teaching staff over reorganisation. While there
was no educational opposition to multilateral schools in theory, they were untried,
and until more was known about them the tripartite system should be maintained.
The Glamorgan Development Plan was organised around Divisional
Executives. Before any final approval was given by the Ministry of Education a
critical overview was made of each area by HMI; recommendations were passed to
the Local Education Authority for revision and the planning process would start
137 Framing Glamorgan’s Education Scheme. Western Mail & South Wales News, 15th September 1945. 138 Glamorgan County Rate up by 2/11. Western Mail, 7th March 1945. 139 George Tomlinson. 140 The New Secondary Education, (Ministry of Education: 1947). 141 NA ED 216/292, County development plan: protests 1946-1957. Letter to George Tomlinson, Minister of
Education from Aberdare group of heads, 25th June 1947. 142 NA ED 216/292, op. cit., Letter
198
again. This was a lengthy and time consuming, made more complicated by the fact
that different HMI were responsible for different aspects of the plan.143 The Plan had
already been altered substantially since it was first submitted but the matter of
comprehensive education was continually being revisited. The time lapse between
submission and a change in Government administration appears to have lessened
the opposition to some proposals. Despite this, it was clear that Ministry officials
were keen not to indicate that there had been any change in policy “propounded by
our predecessors … to start offering criticisms now which conflict with our previously
expressed views may well irritate the Authority.”144 Despite this, Glamorgan
Education Authority planned to convert, over time, all their existing secondary school
provision to a comprehensive school system.145 There were concerns about this and
while “clearly the principle of such schools cannot be challenged, our letter to the
Authority will ask them to remember that these schools are by way of being an
experiment.”146 There was also concern about bilateral schools, although they had
become common all over Wales, especially in the Roman Catholic sector “and we
do not wish to discriminate.”147 There were a number of objections to the Glamorgan
Plan from teacher’s groups148 who were concerned about two matters: the
reorganisation of catchment areas and the possibility of the establishment of
multilateral schools. The question of an almost complete absence of single sex
provision also came under scrutiny but there was a general consensus that this
might be an unnecessary concern.
As in Carmarthenshire, the reorganisation of primary education in Glamorgan
was a major problem. Mr A.G. Pryse Jones HMI, who was attached to Pontypridd
and Llantrisant Divisional Executive pointed out that no reforms of primary education
could be undertaken until Glamorgan’s secondary school reorganisation had been
approved. There was an added concern that the authority appeared to be over
concerned about erecting new buildings without need which meant that there was
143 For example for the Primary sector and the Special Education 144 NA ED 216/289 County development plan, with plans. 1946-1959, Minute Sheet. 145 It must be noted that this different terminology denoted a significant difference in terms of curriculum.
The multilateral school was intended to provide a common curriculum for the first two years after which
pupils would be allotted to different streams according to intelligence or in the case of the technical stream on
preference. In the comprehensive school the decision on placement was generally done before entry and the
curriculum was specific to the ability of pupils. 146 NA ED 216/289 op. cit., Minute Sheet. 147 ibid. 148 For example The Association of Assistant Teachers; Incorporated Association of Assistant Masters of
Secondary Schools; and individual schools i.e. Gowerton Girls County School. See NA ED 216/289.
199
an uneven distribution of primary schools. In Neath, for example, there was “an
unwarranted overprovision for primary pupils”149 but in the west of the county the
reverse was true and a number of isolated schools were planned for closure.150
The matter of Church in Wales schools in Glamorgan was no less difficult
than in other local authorities even though there were substantially fewer. In 1947,
the Llandaff Diocesan School Association launched a fierce attack on the
Glamorgan Plan. In a letter to the Welsh Department it suggested that the Authority
had not honoured either the legislation or the spirit of the Act, especially Section 11
(3).151 The Church in Wales’ main concern focused on the fact that the Development
Plan discriminated against the non-provided sector as there was a plan to close or
amalgamate a number of small village schools and replace them with larger Council
schools.152 Two meetings were held between representatives of the Association and
Glamorgan LEA to discuss the Development Plan proposals. At the first,
representatives were given the opportunity to make their own suggestions but at the
second meeting, “they were informed that the Authority was not prepared to change
their proposals.”153 The Association had not been allowed to see the completed Plan
and they were told that Education Authority was “under no legal obligation “154 to
disclose it. The most difficult problem encountered was the position of the Roman
Catholic schools. There had been a number of objections by the Catholic Education
Council to the proposals for their schools in the Glamorgan Development Plan.
There were also objections from the local authority to the demands of the Roman
Catholic authorities. These were discussed in an internal memorandum at the
Ministry of Education and were twofold. It was apparent that there was an:
“implacable dislike on the grounds of religion and principle to the concept of denominational schools in general and R. C. schools in particular. However strongly this view is held there is no validity in it (and) the Second an argument may be that the Authority is wedded to large comprehensive schools.”155
149 NA ED 216/289, Minute Sheet D. E. Lloyd Jones 10th August 1950. 150 NA ED 216/289, op. cit., Minute Sheet. Closures at Rhiwfawr and Oxwich for example. 151 Education Act 1944 7 & 8 Geo 6 Ch. 31 Part 11 (3. Subject to any directions given by a local education
authority under the foregoing provisions of this section and to the requirements of any enactment other than
this Act or the regulations made thereunder, the occupation and use of the school premises of any voluntary
school shall be under the control of the managers or governors thereof. 152 NA ED 216/292 ibid., p. 2. 153 NA ED 216/292 County Development Plans Protests. Glamorgan Letter Llandaff Diocesan Schools
Association to the Permanent Secretary Welsh Department Board of Education, 15th July 1947, p. 1. 154 NA ED 216/292 Letter, ibid., p. 2. 155 NA ED 216/289 Minute Sheet, 18th September, 1950.
200
The Roman Catholic authorities had two main complaints. Firstly, that although it
accepted, in the main, the proposals for primary education, it found that the Authority
had consistently underestimated the number of pupils who wanted to attend these
schools. The question of pupil numbers was a constant during the negotiations
between the Roman Catholic Church and all local authorities. It appears that there
was always an overestimation in demand to ensure the provision of a school in a
particular area. The second complaint was over secondary education, again with
pupil numbers were the major concern. The Archdiocesan Education Committee
originally proposed five Roman Catholic modern-technical secondary schools,
which was later revised on the advice that all pupils wishing to follow a technical
curriculum would have to attend a County Secondary school because of the
provision of suitable facilities. The numbers put forward for each school came into
question and the Ministry asked for new, accurate figures. The lack of consultation
between the two groups was an ongoing problem, and in 1950 the Archdiocesan
Education Committee wrote to the Welsh Department complaining that they were
still waiting for a decision from Glamorgan County Council on their proposals for five
schools. It had been discovered that the local authority had already acquired a site
for a senior Roman Catholic school in Port Talbot area without any consultation with
the Archdiocese.156 It asked the Welsh Department to intercede with the local
authority on their behalf as it was impossible that the local authority should “proceed
with their own plans to the eventual exclusion of our proposals.”157
By 1947, the Development Plan received tacit approval from the Minister but
this was subject to a detailed review. There was some agreement that multilateral
schools could be established in new housing areas as long as grammar schools
were retained elsewhere. The only major concern that remained was the position of
the non-provided sector and over the protests that had been received from
Managers. After a promising start, reorganisation progress in Glamorgan was
extremely slow and by 1954 plans had still not been ratified by the Ministry. The
comments made at a meeting between Ministry officials and the Glamorgan
Education Committee indicated the irritation felt by both sides. The main objection
to the proposal was against the establishment of comprehensive schools in areas
156 NA ED 216/289 Letter, Archdiocesan Education Committee to Welsh Department Ministry of Education,
2nd May, 1952. 157 NA ED 216/289, op. cit., Letter.
201
where there were established grammar schools. Alderman Llewellyn Heycock158
voiced his surprise at the continuing objections as the Development Plan had
already been revisited after discussion with the Ministry, and the present proposals
were based on the agreement reached with the Ministry in September 1948.159 He
also pointed out that the intention of the Development Plan was to establish eight
comprehensive schools to work alongside the eighty eight existing grammar schools
in the area and that the Ministry should allow this level of experimentation.
Merthyr Tydfil Borough Council
The interwar years had affected the population of Merthyr Tydfil considerably.
The loss of its industrial base and unemployment meant that there had been high
rates of outward migration with a consequential drop in the child population which
had resulted in unstable education provision. The Borough had been heavily used
as a reception area for evacuees during World War Two and the comments from
visitors and HMI about the conditions in schools, and the attitude of the LEA raised
a number of questions. The local authority was financially poor and there was a
great deal to be done nor only in terms of educational reorganisation but also in
slum clearance and rebuilding.160 This meant that long term strategic planning would
be needed if reconstruction was to be adequate and successful. This was
recognised by the LEA in the preface to its Development Plan and indicated that two
new housing estates were to be built in the Borough.161 It was estimated that, in
view of these plans, the secondary sector would need to accommodate
approximately four thousand pupils. The most significant problem was in finding
suitable sites for new schools in an area substantially ‘undermined’ and because of
the large number of slag and coal tips.
The Merthyr Tydfil Development Plan rejected the ideas of both tripartite and
multilateral reorganisation and planned a scheme based on bilateral secondary
schools: grammar and modern combined. The structure of the Plan was based on
two principles. Firstly was the fact that children could be successfully divided into
two groups at the age of eleven on the grounds of “general intelligence, educational
158 Later Llewellyn, Lord Heycock of Taibach. http://wbo.llgc.org.uk/en/s7-HEYC-LLE-1905.html. 159 NA ED 216/289 op.cit. Notes of meeting with Glamorgan, 11th October 1954. 160 NA BD 7/15 County Borough of Merthyr Tydfil Education Committee Development Plan for Secondary
Schools Approved by the Education Committee, 28th August, 1947, p. 1 161 NA BD 7/15, op. cit., p. 1.
202
attainments and certain aspects of character”162 and placed in either grammar or
modern streams. The second principle was that all children “should be educated in
the same general environment.”163 The LEA made the decision to provide grammar
schools for about twenty five per cent of the school population with the remainder
attending modern schools but both types of school would provide an element of
technical education post thirteen years of age. It was anticipated that within ten
years the school leaving age would be raised to sixteen for children attending
modern schools and to eighteen for grammar school pupils and as a consequence,
the local authority began to plan on this basis. It already had a high level of
secondary grammar school places;164 a small technical sector of two hundred and
thirteen pupils, with the remainder of pupils in unreorganised elementary schools.
The ten-year plan the Borough produced was to accommodate secondary pupils in
two grammar and four modern schools which would be strategically placed across
the Borough. There was an intention to move some of the existing grammar
provision to more appropriate locations and using the redundant buildings for
modern schools. These would have a five form entry while grammar schools would
have two. The Committee decided that the grammar schools would be run on
traditional lines, although there was a suggestion that the curriculum could be
extended to include some commercial and technical aspects. The curriculum of the
modern schools would be planned “to provide progressively differentiated courses,
planned to provide each child with an opportunity of discovering and revealing his
interests and aptitudes in his own time.”165 The annual intake of about nine hundred
children would be divided so that about twenty to twenty five per cent would attend
the two small grammar schools
The large number of surplus school places166 made the reorganisation of the
primary sector reasonably straightforward. Thirteen schools would be discontinued
and the remainder organised into twenty one infant and junior primary departments.
The Plan included proposals for the Roman Catholic community and there was an
intention to close two small infant schools and centralise provision in one maintained
Roman Catholic mixed Infant and Junior school at Dowlais. There was a demand
162 NA BD 7/15 ibid., p. 1. 163 ibid., p. 1. 164 GA BMT 1/53 Merthyr Tydfil had 21.6 secondary school places per thousand – higher than both Rhondda
and Cardiff. 165 NA BD 7/15 ibid., p. 1. 166 GA /BMT/1 /49 Merthyr Tydfil Schools 193. Total on elementary roll – 9382; accommodation available -
16,664.
203
for a Roman Catholic secondary modern school in the area but there were
insufficient pupil numbers for one. It was not until 1959 that a realistic proposal was
put forward and the Dioceses of Cardiff Education Committee asked the Merthyr
Tydfil Education Committee if it would consider including a six form entry bilateral
school in its Development Plan It was clear from this communication that the
majority of Roman Catholic children were still attending all age elementary schools
as it pointed out that
“there are at the present time 451 secondary modern type children from the parishes of Merthyr Tydfil, Dowlais, Tredegar, Ebbw Vale and Rhumney attending Catholic all-age schools in the area, while 60 children from the same parishes passed the eleven-plus examination last year.”167 These figures did not include the ninety children from Mountain Ash who were
attending all age elementary schools there or the twenty who had passed the eleven
plus.
Swansea Borough Council
The discussions about the reorganisation of secondary in Swansea were
lengthy and not without controversy. Previously, there had been a marked
unwillingness to reorganise, and grammar schools had been the only form of
secondary education in the Borough. It was therefore unsurprisingly that in 1945 the
Education Committee agreed to introduce modern schools and “recognise two types
of secondary schools … the courses adjusted to a different emphasis on academic
and practical interests.”168 After this initial decision was taken it appears that other
influences came into play and the Committee members examined the proposed
Development Plan of London County Council.169 As a result, by December 1946,
the Education Committee had begun to plan for a drastically different scheme of
secondary education. The Swansea Development Plan was completely re-written;
accepted by the Borough Council and sent to the Ministry for approval.
The preface to the Plan stated that there was an intention to ensure that “the
development of primary and secondary education in the town will not be haphazard
167 NA BD 7/15 op. cit. Letter, Dioceses of Cardiff Education Committee to Merthyr Tydfil Borough
Council, 19th May, 1959. 168 WGAS E/SB 71/2/68. 169 A copy London County Council Reorganisation of Post-Primary in the Development Plan is amongst the
documents in WGRO. E/Dyn Sec 27/8.
204
or higgledy-piggledy but in accordance with a master design.”170 The Development
Plan was ambitious and included a proposal to build twenty four nursery schools
with the possibility of additional nursery places in some infant schools.171 Primary
education would be accommodated, as far as possible by adapting existing
elementary schools buildings, although it was recognised that considerable
alterations would be needed in order to meet the requirements of the Education Act
1944. The arrangements for secondary education were more complicated. The
Development Plan described the options open to the Borough as well the guidance
included in the pamphlets issued by Ministry.172 The choices identified in the preface
to the Plan discussed the advantages and disadvantages of a tripartite scheme as
well as of bilateral173 or multilateral schools. The tripartite system was rejected
because it was perceived to rely too heavily on psychological testing at eleven years
of age, and this was felt to provide insufficient evidence for selection. It was also felt
that there was very little parity between grammar, modern and technical schools and
some pupils would be disadvantaged. On the other hand bilateral schools appeared
to have some advantages as the separation of children into two groups “on the basis
of degree of intelligence”174 at eleven years of age was seen as reasonably
straightforward and also allow a certain latitude in selection. This system could
evolve naturally from the existing pattern of schools in the Borough and “there would
be no revolutionary change and no lowering of the present standards.”175 The
Education Committee initially decided on a bilateral system but:
“Much controversy ensued after this decision had been reached and ultimately the whole question of secondary school organisation was discussed again from first principles (and) the previous policy was abandoned in favour of multilateral schools.”176
This decision was based on a number of factors. It would offer of parity of provision
and remove examinations which might have led to the wrong classification of pupils
at eleven year of age. The Committee also decided that local circumstances allowed
170 WGAS Dyn Sec 27/8 County Borough of Swansea The Development Plan for Primary and Secondary
Education. N.B. There were a number of slightly different editions of the Swansea Development Plan. 171 ibid., Development Plan, p. 5. 172 The Nation’s Schools: Their Plan and Purpose Ministry of Education Pamphlet No 1 (HMSO: London,
1945):A Guide to the Educational System of England and Wales Pamphlet No 2 (HMSO: 1945): WGAS
ES/31/4/5 Welsh Office Circular 73, December 1945. 173 WGAS Dyn Sec 27/8, op. cit., “This contemplates two types of secondary school both offering general
education for life, one appropriate to a higher and the other to a lower range of intelligence.” p. 9. 174 The Nation’s Schools, ibid., p. 10. 175 ibid., p. 10. 176 WGAS Dyn Sec 27/8 ibid., p. 10.
205
them to take this option both in view of the damage to schools and housing and the
semi-rural nature of the Borough.177 The calculation that followed revealed that
accommodation would be needed for approximately sixteen thousand children. The
Development Sub-Committee planned a temporary scheme that included the
establishment of some modern schools as a stop gap measure but ultimately it
would build six single sex multilateral schools accommodating approximately fifteen
hundred pupils in each, as well as a number of separate schools providing for
children with special education needs. The total cost of the Swansea Borough
Development Plan would be in excess of £3 million over a fifteen year period.
There was a substantial delay in the completion of the Development Plan
because of both the prolonged negotiations with the non-provided sector and the
internal disagreements within the Authority. It was sent to the Ministry of Education
for approval in February 1947 accompanied by a detailed Explanatory Memorandum
outlining the proposals, the rationale behind the adoption of “wholesale of the
multilateral form of Secondary School organisation,”178 and a letter from the Director
of Education. This explained the reasons for the delays in submission of the plan
especially the protracted and fruitless discussion with the non-provided sector. The
Director also drew attention to the Memorandum which outlined the main features
of the plan but not the
“ding-dong nature of the discussion which took place at certain points … Since, however, the issues involved are controversial matters, it is right for the Ministry to know that much divergence of opinion was expressed before the final decision was reached on the majority vote.”179
The planning process had been complicated by a number of factors.
Certainly, there was little co-operation from the either of the two Directors of
Education who were in post during the period. The second, Mr Elfed Thomas, was
totally opposed to multilateral schools. He wrote privately to an elected member of
the Council to explain that although he had recommended a policy of tripartite
secondary schools it was “not acceptable to certain elements on the Council.”180 As
a consequence the Development Sub-Committee had adopted a policy of
177 NA ED 136/677 Education in Wales Miscellaneous. In Swansea 9 Council, 3 Non-provided and 1 Roman
Catholic schools was deemed incapable of improvement and 42 were built pre 1900. 178 NA BD 7/17 County Borough of Swansea Development Plan Explanatory Memorandum, p. 3. 179 ibid., Letter from the Director of Education County Borough of Swansea to the Ministry of Education,
17th February, 1947. 180 WGAS E/S 31/4/5 Letter from Director of Education to Cllr W.J. Davies, 7th December 1945.
206
multilateral schools. He was aware of the discussions that had been taking place as
he had spoken to the Labour Group on the Council about the whole matter of
secondary education, and “I hope I may say … that I would regard it as unfortunate
if Swansea were, at this stage, to embark on any large scale experiment.”181 In
January 1946, the Director presented a Memorandum to the Reorganisation
Committee which outlined the many problems involved. He had assessed the yearly
pupil intake and pointed out that if the Committee decided on a multilateral school
system there would need to be six new schools, each with a ten form intake. These
would be very large schools and quite out of step with Ministry of Education
guidelines as they would eliminate the existing grammar schools. He pointed to
Welsh Office Circular 73 which stated that the Minister might approve multilateral
schools if these did not prejudice the existence of grammar schools and it was clear
that if reorganisation in Swansea was to be on multilateral lines this would be the
case.182 The Director made no effort to hide the fact that he was fundamentally
opposed to the removal of the grammar schools which, he felt, had had a positive
effect on education in the town. He also inquired what proposals were being made
for senior Roman Catholic children as their numbers would not be sufficient to
warrant a separate multilateral school; He reminded elected members that
information on provision for the non-provided sector must be included in the
Development Plan. He suggested that the Education Committee should ask the
Ministry whether it could submit a Plan in stages to avoid further delay. In this way
a plan for one multilateral school could be completed and submitted before the entire
structure was put in place.
It is clear from the Memorandum written by the Director of Education that
there was no clarity of understanding of multilateral. He suggested that the Sub-
Committee develop a wide ranging plan and put curriculum matters in place when
more information emerged: “it is unwise, in my view, for the attack upon problems
of the future to be too clear cut, since flexibility and not rigidity is essential to
multilateral schools.”183 He suggested that there would need to be in-depth
discussions with educational professionals in order that curriculum and organisation
could be decided. He pointed out that there were several schools of thought on
181 WGAS E/S 31/4/5, Letter, op. cit. 182 WGAS E/S 71/2/68 Memorandum for the Consideration of the Development Committee, 23rd Jan. 1946. 183 WGAS Dyn Sec 27/8 Swansea Education Committee Development Plan. Multilateral Organisation Report
from the Director, 5th July 1946.
207
selection and the ability of children had to be taken into account when curricula were
being designed. Although research in the United States of America had discounted
this argument, the Director quoted the views of the Principal of Kirkcaldy High
School who had had considerable experience of multilateral education and who
thought was that “differentiation was needed from the outset.”184
During 1946 a series of meetings were held between the Development
Committee and representatives of the non-provided schools to try to reach an
agreement over their status in the Development Plan. The Local Education Authority
had decided that only one of the six Church in Wales schools would be retained as
a primary school because pupil numbers were so low. The Church in Wales
authorities strongly disagreed with this proposal and suggested that it should be
given the two new primary schools proposed for the west of the city185 in place of
this one remaining school. It also planned to establish a denominational secondary
school. The Development Sub-Committee decided that the primary proposal would
be considered and the Church in Wales could apply to the Ministry of Education to
build a new secondary school if there were sufficient numbers to warrant it. It would,
however, have to do so without any assistance from the Local Education Authority
as there would be sufficient surplus secondary places available in the proposed
multilateral schools.186
The relationship between the managers of the Roman Catholic sector and
the Development Sub Committee was somewhat mixed. There was agreement that
the three existing Roman Catholic elementary schools would be modified and
become ‘aided’ primary schools. The managers felt that in addition to these three
schools there was a need for another denominational school in the growing housing
estate at Townhill but this was refused as there were already sufficient school places
available in the area. This request for further Roman Catholic primary
accommodation reappeared from time to time during the next few years but the
projected pupil numbers never warranted another school. The real disagreement
between the Swansea Education Committee and the Catholic Education Council
was over the provision of denominational secondary education. The Education
Council wanted to build two multilateral schools in the west of the city; one for girls
184 WGAS Dyn Sec 27/8 op. cit. 185 At West Cross. 186 WGAS E/S 71/2/68 Development Sub-committee Meeting, 26th June 1946.
208
and one for boys. They would need to be segregated as the majority of staff would
come from Teaching Orders which would preclude a mixed school.187 The Local
Education Authority were not in favour of this, pointing out that there was sufficient
capacity built into the Development Plan to accommodate all Swansea children. It
also pointed out that the number of Roman Catholic children living in the area would
not be sufficient to provide two viable multilateral schools.188 The Ministry of
Education countered this claim by telling Swansea that if this was the case they
would need to provide evidence. The local authority estimated the number of pupils
attending the three existing Roman Catholic elementary schools in the Borough at
approximately half the numbers provided by the Managers, and was suspicious that
the they would allow children from neighbouring local authorities to use the schools.
All suggestions for non-provided secondary schools were rejected by Swansea
Borough Council. A decision was taken that the six multilateral schools include in
the Development Plan would be the only providers of secondary education in the
Borough but “As both the Roman Catholic and Church in Wales Authorities appear
to be dissatisfied with the outcome of the negotiations it is probable that the matter
will be re-opened at a later stage at the insistence of the Minister of Education.”189
It is clear that the Swansea proposals for the non-provided sector gave the
Ministry of Education cause for concern. An undated memorandum pointed out that
all Diocesan authorities had a right under the Education Act 1944 legislation to have
their views heard before the finalisation of any Development Plan, especially when
it as felt that the local authority was being unreasonable. It suggested that
“If the Minister is satisfied that a new voluntary school is justified in order to make appropriate provision for the area, is he not also entitled, in fact, bound, to modify the plan to such an extent as to make this possible?”190
If there was no way of safeguarding the non-provided sector in this way it would
mean that “any LEA could block any school for displaced pupils from appearing in
the development plan.”191 The advice from the Legal Branch of the Ministry was of
the opinion that this was not the case, and it as not within the Minister’s jurisdiction
to order that a new voluntary school was established or even to “require it to be
187 WGAS E/S 71/2/68 Development Sub-committee Meeting, 5th July 1946. 188 NA ED 216/491 Swansea Development Plan Protests. A projection showed that there were 616 boys and
568 girls between the ages of 11 and 16. 189 WGAS Dyn Sec 27/8 Development Plan, p. 14. 190 NA ED 216 /491 ibid., undated Ministry of Education Memorandum, p. 1. 191 ibid., p. 2.
209
included in the development plan”192 unless there was a very substantial reason to
do so. There were substantial objections from Roman Catholic parents and school
Managers in Swansea which led the Minister to reconsider the demands for Roman
Catholic secondary education. In 1948, the Minister of Education wrote to approve
“in principle for separate Secondary provision for Roman Catholic pupils.”193
However, In a letter to the Catholic Education Council he noted that, based on the
numbers that had been provided, it appeared that it would be too small to provide
an adequate curriculum especially for the three streams, grammar, technical and
modern, that had been planned. The news that approval had been given was
announced in the South Wales Evening Post and started an immediate protest.194
The Member of Parliament for Swansea West wrote to the Minister:
“You have set the gorse on fire in Swansea and West Wales by agreeing to the Catholic community having a separate school contrary to the advice of the local Education Authority.”195
The Ministry of Education was inundated with letters of complaint from the non-
conformist section of the Swansea community: the Cyngor Eglwysi Efengylaidd
Cymraeg;196 and the Morriston and District Baptist Churches expressing their
displeasure.197
The unrest about Roman Catholic secondary education was only one small
part of the general protests about Swansea Borough Council’s Development Plan.
The Swansea Secondary Schools Staff wrote objecting to the proposals, especially
as it had not been allowed to put forward any “alternative to the rigid policy of
multilateralism and regionalism aid down by the Council of 1945/6.”198 While its
members agreed in principle with the recommendations of the Spens Report “that
the multilateral idea should permeate the system of education”199 it did not believe
that the conditions in Swansea were favourable to it being the only kind of secondary
education provided across the Borough. The Secondary School Staff pointed out
that the siting of the six schools was inappropriate as it effectively split the city in
192 NA ED 216 /491 op. cit., Minute Sheet 24th March 1947 193 NA ED 216 /491 Swansea Development Plan Protests. Letter to Swansea Borough Council from Ministry
of Education, 28th June, 1948. 194 ibid., Separate Roman Catholic School. South Wales Evening Post, 14th July 1948 195 ibid., Letter Percy Morris to George Tomlinson, 13th July, 1948. 196 Council of Welsh Evangelical Churches. 197 NA ED 216/491 Letter from Morriston and District Baptist Churches, 14th July, 1948. 198 ibid., Letter from Secondary School Staffs to Minister of Education, January 1947. 199 ibid., Letter
210
half, and would cause enormous transport problems. It suggested as there were no
multilateral schools in Wales to learn from, the Development Plan should be altered
to retain the existing grammar schools; establish some modern schools and include
an element of multilateralism as an experiment. In this way education provision
“should be capable of modification to suit changing conditions."200 This letter of
protest was followed by one from the Welsh Secondary Schools Joint National
Committee which agreed with all the points that had been brought up by the
Secondary Staff. It deplored any suggestion that the four existing grammar schools
should be closed and that multilateral schools would be the only secondary
education available to parents. The ongoing and wide spread objections to the
Swansea Development Plan were of concern at the Ministry of Education. The size
of the proposed multilateral schools and the streaming arrangements, in particular,
did not meet the various recommendations of Ministry officials. However it was the
Development Sub-Committee’s defence of their plan on purely educational grounds
which was most disturbing. A memorandum to Sir Ben Bowen Thomas201 suggested
that these were “very thin and fail to mask the doctrinaire approach that we have
suspected.”202 The Ministry applauded the fact that Swansea were so keen to
develop the secondary sector but were perturbed that they “seek to justify the
development of a multilateral organisation because of the Cinderella-like reputation
hitherto enjoyed by the secondary technical schools.”203 Overall the Ministry found
the attitudes of Swansea Borough Council to be defenceless as:
“they have been less concerned with true educational considerations than they have been to find out what they think will be the totalitarian answers to any parent who may express a wish to be educated at any particular school.”204
In 1948, the Ministry of Education requested that Swansea Education
Authority reconsider their Development Plan as it was “not sufficiently ambitious, not
sufficiently practical and not sufficiently in accord with the Authority’s ambition for
the town.”205 G.E. Jones suggests that there was collusion between the local HMI
and the Director of Education who decided “to say and do as little as possible
because there were ‘clear signs that many members of the LEA are purposed to
200 NA ED 216/491, op. cit., Letter. 201 Permanent Secretary to the Welsh Department of the Ministry of Education. 202 NA ED 216/491 Memorandum to Sir Ben Bowen Thomas from AEW, undated. 203 ibid. 204 ibid. 205 NA. BD 7/17, Swansea Education Committee Revised Development Plan, 1953, p. 2.
211
think again’.”206 The revised Plan divided Swansea into community areas and
identified the education needs of each in terms of primary and secondary education.
Secondary provision included the retention of the existing grammar schools and
established some secondary modern schools as well. The idea of multilateral
education was not abandoned completely and two single sex schools were planned
in new housing developments to the north of the town. There was further delay while
the Welsh Department considered the new proposals. Objections to the planned
multilateral schools were being overridden by the fact that they were already being
established in English Local Authorities but in October 1949, the Plan was again
sent back for revision. Some parts had been agreed, but with a number of provisos,
as it was still considered amongst Ministry of Education officials that multilateral
schools could not possibly be successful. The Ministry allowed the Local Education
Authority to begin building work but they could only proceed with the express
permission of the Welsh Department. In 1950 the primary section of Development
Plan was completed and included one Welsh medium primary school although the
extensive plans for nursery education were abandoned. The non-provided sector
remained unchanged as un-reorganised elementary schools. It was not until 1953
that the whole Development Plan was finally approved. The Authority considered
that the new plan was “more practical and more in accordance with the general
development of the town. It constitutes a long term plan and not an interim
measure.”207
It was not until 1956 that there was some kind of education settlement in
Swansea. Two new single sex comprehensive schools were opened in the north of
the city, and these mainly served a new, and very large housing estate which was
built to replace unfit housing in the borough. The four existing grammar schools were
retained and two modern schools were built to take the remaining pupils in the south
of the city. There have been suggestions that this substantial retreat by the local
authority from its earlier position indicates its weakness, and in common with other
authorities, was forced to agree to the views of the Ministry of Education.208 The
final outcome of the Swansea plan, like those in other local authorities in south and
south west Wales, was not as actually intended, and was a poor outcome to the
original anticipation that accompanied the Education Act of 1944.
206 Unreferenced in G.E. Jones, 1944 and all that. History of Education,’ (1990), 235-250, p. 240. 207 NA. BD 7/17, op. cit., p. 4. 208 G. E. Jones, (1990) ibid., p 249.
212
Conclusions
The implementation of the legislation of the Education Act 1944 in south and
south west Wales was complicated, difficult and expensive. The Development
Plans, although substantially different in detail, fell into two types: the traditional and
the innovative. It is noticeable that the Development Plans which followed the advice
of The Nation’s Schools: Their Plan and Purpose and earlier Reports from the
Consultative Committee attracted far less objections, especially from teaching staff,
than did those from the Education Authorities which put forward plans that included
aspects of multilateral education. It becomes obvious that the tripartite model was
the only one to be accepted by the Ministry of Education. This was despite the fact
that there had been growing demands throughout the interwar years from some
teacher and Labour organisations for more parity through a common school. It was
unfortunate for the local authorities in south and south west Wales that once the
Labour party assumed power in 1945 all thoughts of equality disappeared. Simon
points out that the demands for a common code of secondary education was a
critical assumption which would have brought the elementary sector into “the
mainstream of restructured education.”209 He suggests that the fact that so many
local authorities framed their development plans around multilateral schools and the
fact that they were summarily dismissed by the Ministry “indicates both a lack of
trust in the intentions of the local authorities, and the strength of feeling and indeed
unanimity on this issue.”210 It is apparent that a Development Plan based on a
tripartite system was more readily accepted by the Ministry of Education. In south
and south west Wales the Plans of Cardiff and Merthyr Tydfil’s were accepted with
far fewer sanctions and revisions that others. Although some alterations were
needed the Plans generally met the criteria expected by the Ministry. Conversely,
the Development Plans of Carmarthenshire, Swansea and Glamorgan and, to a
lesser extent Rhondda were all heavily criticised. The Ministry of Education placed
many obstacles in the way of implementation because they all included some
element of common school, either bilateral or comprehensive. Carmarthenshire had
considered this type of system since 1926, after the recommendations of the Hadow
Report, mainly to try to solve the organisational problems there and the Plan that
emerged after 1944, again took account of these difficulties. While a decision was
209 B, Simon, The 1944 Education Act: A Conservative Measure? History of Education, Volume 15, Issue 1:
(1986), 31-43, p. 35. 210 ibid., p. 35
213
made to retain the grammar schools, there was a clear determination to try to meet
the many needs of children in this very rural county. Despite this, the innovative plan
was rejected, in he same way as earlier Carmarthenshire plans for organisation had
been. Similarly, in Glamorganshire the suggestions to include some comprehensive
schools in the Development Plan were summarily rejected. It was not until the late
1950s that the Glamorgan Development Plan was finally accepted and
comprehensive schools were introduced across the county.
The problems caused by non-provided sectors continued unabated despite
the concerted efforts of local authorities in Wales to remove them. This was,
however, not an exclusively Welsh demand. There had been “a strong move for its
abolition”211 across England, brought about mainly by the Churches’ inability to
reform after the Hadow Report. This failure left the non-provided sector in a weak
position but it had very strong support from church authorities and across the
political spectrum which allowed it to maintain its position. This is also clear that
during implementation of the Education Act 1944 the Ministry of Education gave it
considerable support and protection. In south and south west Wales the large
numbers of small non-provided schools remained as neither the Church in Wales
nor Roman Catholics had sufficient pupil numbers to be able to put forward cogent
Development Plans212 and there is evidence that the Roman Catholics in particular,
manipulated these to try to gain funding.
It becomes clear that the Ministry of Education used its new extended powers
to force Education Authorities to implement the Act in a way it regarded as most
appropriate. It used delaying tactics to remove opposition and elementary education
was still the order of the day until the end of the 1950s. The spirit of excitement and
promise of the Education Act 1944 was almost completely lost, as it had been so
often in the past, by the delaying tactics of Ministry of Education officials. Although
the promised ‘secondary education for all’ was eventually put in place, the emerging
secondary modern and grammar school system was merely an imitation of the caste
system that had been the norm in England and Wales since the early nineteenth
century.
211 B. Simon, (1986) op. cit. p. 36. 212 NLW CinWA SD/ED 22-30, Diocesan Education Minutes
214
Chapter 7 – Conclusions
“The politics of the of the war years are unintelligible without constant reference to the absolute priority accorded by Labour between the wars to the goal of bettering the material conditions of the working class (and) absence of educational opportunity, these were the roots of the Labour passion for amelioration.” 1
This thesis primarily examines education in south and south west Wales
during the interwar period and until after the planning for the implementation of the
Education Act 1944. It sets out to answer a number of questions which interrogate
the circumstances and influences of the development of education during the
decades between 1918 and 1944. Although the original intention was to examine
only this period it proved impossible not to take into account the earlier process of
education formation and the influences on its development. It became clear that in
Wales the establishment of charitable schools, and the effects of the Reports of the
Commissioners of Inquiry into the State of Education in Wales2 were very significant
in the history of Wales. These events altered the perceptions and attitudes of the
Welsh people substantially, and as a result, were central to the subsequent
development of education.
There has been little substantive academic research into this particular period
of education history and McCulloch points out that the history of education written
during the first half of the twentieth century generally lacked “historical rigour.”3 It
relied on biographies of educational leaders, politicians and Acts and Facts rather
than placing education within the wider parameters of society, and the influences
that had shaped it. He suggests that it was not until the 1930s when Mannheim and
Clarke began to approach the history of education in a different way that things
began to change substantially. However, an examination of secondary sources do
reveal that a number of historians and educationalists had begun to contribute to
the historiography. Birchenough,4 Michael Sadler,5 and Percy Nunn, for example,6
began this process. Clarke appears to have overlooked this small body of work
when he suggested in 1943 there was a dearth of history of education in England
1 P. Addison The Road to 1944: British Politics and the Second World War. Pimlico London. 1994) p 16. 2 1847 (870) (871) (872.) Reports of the Commissioners of Inquiry into the State of Education in Wales 3 G. McCulloch, The Struggle for the History of Education (Routledge: London, 2011).p. 11. 4 C. Birchenough, History of Elementary Education in England and Wales from 1800 to the Present Day
(University Tutorial Press: London, 1920 5 M. E. Sadler, Our Public Elementary Schools, (Thomas Butterworth, London, 1926 6 Nunn, T. Percy, Education : its data and first principles (1920).
215
written from a social and cultural perspective.7 Nevertheless it is clear that in
contrast to other periods of education history, the interwar years was subject to very
little review apart from the contributions from Simon8 and Barker.9 Similarly there is
little historiography which focuses solely on education in Wales during the period. It
has been suggested that is may have been because there was no “markedly
divergent national story of education in Wales.”10 This has proved to be the case as
Welsh education is rarely discussed in any context as part the history of education
in Great Britain. G.E. Jones suggests that this lack of focus was because Welsh
writers did not have the confidence to write about “ the nature of educational
distinctiveness”11 in Wales. It becomes evident from this thesis that this
distinctiveness cannot be overlooked.
From the start of this research it became evident that the education system
that emerged in Wales was very different from that in England despite the fact that
there was shared legislation. This was caused principally by fact that there were
fundamental disparities in beliefs, opinions and attitudes between the two countries.
This disparity is similarly apparent across the United Kingdom as different education
systems emerged in both Scotland and Ireland. Smelser has pointed out that “For a
student of comparisons, Wales holds a special fascination as one of those ‘near
cases’ – near to, even an integral part of England in many cultural and social
respects, but different in others.”12 This is partly due to the fact that there was never
a central model of education in Great Britain and this is reflected in “the tension
between ‘English and ‘British’”13 which has never entirely been resolved. It also
becomes clear that during the period under review Wales wanted far looser
administrative and legislative ties; was vocal in asking for greater devolution of
powers over education and, to some extent, complete independence from England.
This theme is a low key and elusive influence throughout the interwar period.
7 G. McCulloch, (2011) op. cit., p. 33. 8 B. Simon, The Politics of Educational Reform 1920-1940, (Lawrence & Wishart, London, 1974). 9 R. Barker, Education and Politics 1900-1951 A Study of the Labour Party, (Clarendon Press, Oxford,
1972.) 10 G.E. Jones, Education and Nationhood in Wales: An Historiographical Analysis, Journal of Educational
Administration and History, 38: 3. p. 265. 11 G.E. Jones, ibid, p. 266 12N.J. Smelser, Social Paralysis and Social Change: British Working Class Education in the Nineteenth
Century, (University of California Press, Berkley, 1991.) p. 147. 13 M. Vlaeminke, The English Higher Grade Schools. A Lost Opportunity, (Routledge, London, 2000.) p. 2
216
This thesis reveals that subtle but significant differences emerged between
the education systems of England and Wales which resulted from distinctive
political, religious and social influences. While each played important roles, it was
unquestionably differences in religious beliefs that emerged as the most significant
factor. Although it would be wrong to generalise, Wales was overwhelmingly a non-
conformist country, and had been since the mid seventeenth century. It has been
suggested that these deeply held beliefs “probably exercised a greater influence on
the lives of the people of Wales during the last century than was the case in England
or in any other Protestant country.”14 This factor alone played a significant role in
the way in which education developed and was also a contributory factor in ensuring
that Anglicanism lost much of its influence in Wales. Non-conformity “became
gradually interwoven into the Welsh national consciousness.”15 This was particularly
the case for education where progress and change was directed principally by the
long standing hostility between non-conformists and the Church of England.
Religious matters became paramount to the way Welsh education developed.
It becomes clear from this research that it was principally the events before
the 1918 that shaped education in south and south west Wales, and the interwar
years merely marked its struggle for survival. Undoubtedly it was the Reports of the
Commissioners of Inquiry into the State of Education in Wales especially its
criticisms of Welsh society, which became the defining moment for Welsh education.
These cemented the existing animosity between non-conformists and Anglicans into
a force for change which resulted, in the long term, to a wholly secular system of
education. It led to the establishment of a secular university college at Aberystwyth
and, after 1889, to a system of secular secondary education through the Welsh
Intermediate Education Act. In addition, the elementary sector in Wales became
less dominated by denominational schools after the Education Act 1870, and
became much more in tune with the needs of non-conformist Wales.
The Welsh Intermediate Education Act 1889 has generally been thought to
have been of extreme importance in Welsh social history and brought about
significant differences between secondary education in England and Wales. First,
14 C. R. Williams, ‘The Welsh religious revival, 1904-5’, British Journal of Sociology, III/3 (1952 in R. Pope,
Building Jerusalem: non-conformity, Labour and the social question in Wales, 1906-1939, (2nd Edition,
UWP, Cardiff, 1998.) p. 1. 15 R. C. Allen, D. C. Jones, & T. O. Hughes (Eds) The Religious History of Wales, (Welsh Academic Press,
2014).
217
and perhaps most importantly, it established a wholly secular secondary sector and
its legislation set out to provide an advanced curriculum suitable for both the working
class and the growing middle class in Wales. Despite this intention intermediate
schools soon acquired quasi-grammar school status when a classical curriculum
was introduced in order to meet the requirements of university entrance
examinations. Secondly, although intermediate schools were selective the majority
of Welsh local authorities made them free for all pupils and as a result there were
more non fee paying secondary schools in south and south west Wales during the
1920s than in the whole of England. This was “something of a Welsh dimension”16
and offered a tremendous opportunity to children whose parents might not otherwise
have been able to meet the cost of a secondary education.
However, Welsh secondary education came under enormous pressures both
before and during the interwar period. The legislation of the Education Act 1902
intended removing the secular status of the sector in Wales to bring it into line with
English endowed grammar schools. This was an obvious cause for concern and
combined with the fact that there was an intention to force local authorities to support
non-provided schools led to widespread non-conformist rebellion against the Act.
This was particularly the case in Wales and led to the Carmarthen Revolt which
lasted for a number of years. The policy of providing high levels of free secondary
education in Wales also came under scrutiny during the interwar years and the
recommendations of the Ray Committee Report and Circular 1421 were a
devastating blow to the intermediate sector. Welsh LEAs strongly resisted all
attempts to charge fees throughout the period and were severely censured by the
Board of Education. The differences between secondary provision in England and
Wales once again came under scrutiny and it has been suggested that “Wales had
to pay once again for being administered as an adjunct of England.”17 Jones quotes
the Women’s Liberal Association who said: ”We feel it hard that Wales and Scotland
should be held back by the more backward English.”18
The events after the Education Act of 1902 and throughout the interwar
period confirmed the belief that not only should Welsh education should be wholly
16 G.E. Jones (1990) ibid., p. 26. 17 G.E. Jones, (1982) op. cit., p. 144. 18 B. Simon, (1974), p. 346 in G.E. Jones, (1982), ibid., p. 145.
218
secular but Welsh education should also be removed from English legislation. These
demands began in earnest in the early 1920s19 and continued unabated throughout
the period as the calls for devolution of powers over Welsh education grew. These
were supported by Members of Parliament, Morgan Jones and William Cove in
particular; the very influential Federation of Education Committees, which
represented LEAs in Wales, and the Central Welsh Board. Scrutiny of the primary
resources reveals a determination to remove Welsh education completely from
English legislation and this became part of the Federation’s demands during the
negotiations over the Education Act 1944 and proved to be very controversial.
Secularisation of Welsh education was the primary aim during the period and this
can be seen as making it significantly different from English education where the
non provided sector, and the influences of religious organisations, the Church of
England in particular, remained very important.
Much of the changing structure of education during the interwar period in
Wales can be attributed not only to religion but also to politics. By the end of the
First World War both society and the political landscape had changed considerably
particularly in south and south west Wales. The earlier domination of the Liberal
Party had been replaced by Labour, and many local authorities became Labour
controlled. This changed the dynamics within the education service and attitudes
changed considerably at a national level. While Conservative views education
philosophy remained intact favouring the old ‘sub sets’ of education, the Labour
Party turned towards the idea of common schools and greater parity in provision.
Although these ideas were not universally accepted even within Labour they caused
a step-change which began a process of reform. Conservative opinion of education
was united and supported by much of the Church of England and the Board of
Education which proved problematic when any changes were proposed. This
dichotomy of views remained a prominent factor throughout the period and largely
dictated the way in which the Education Act 1944 was eventually implemented
across England and Wales.
19 Conference on Devolution. Letter from Mr Speaker to the Prime Minister (HMSO, London, 1919); A.
Evans, Four Nations and a constitution: the Conference on Devolution 1919-1920 Unpublished pdf doc.
219
The Education Act 1918 had signalled change but because its legislation was
not mandatory, local authorities were able to implement it in way that suited local
needs. This was frequently reflected the views of the political party in power.
Research shows that, in general, Labour led local councils in south and south west
Wales, such as Glamorgan and Rhondda Urban District Council offered quite
expansive plans for development whereas Conservative led councils, Cardiff for
example, were very reluctant to make any changes whatsoever. The reorganisation
in some LEAs were affected by a number of other complex reasons.
Carmarthenshire, for example, found itself in an difficult organisational position
because of geographical factors and small pupil numbers, and the fact that there
were many non-provided schools in the area.
The unsatisfactory implementation of the Education Act 1918 legislation was
compounded by the enforced austerity of the interwar period which effectively halted
reorganisation in most LEAs. In addition to the cuts to education finance there was
the dramatic fall in rateable income in local authorities in south and south west
Wales caused both by unemployment and a demographic shift in population. This
had a profound effect on education. In Merthyr Tydfil, for example, the number of
pupils on roll almost halved during the 1930s and, while this was extreme example
of out-migration, other local authorities suffered similarly. Despite these major
financial difficulties, the Education Minutes of the local authorities show that some
Labour led councils, such as Merthyr Tydfil and Rhondda, went further than could
have been expected under the circumstances to provide not only the best possible
education service they could, but also increased welfare provision at school in the
form of free medical attention, meals and milk. This was very beneficial to
unemployed parents and as a result many children stayed on at school much longer
than they normally would have.
Research reveals that despite some attempts to improve the circumstances
of children, it is fair to say that elementary provision in the region was generally poor.
HMI Reports for the period show extremes of impoverished and unhygienic schools,
many of which were on the Board of Education Blacklist. Attendance was also low,
especially in rural areas during the winter months, and there were frequent school
closures due to epidemics of childhood diseases and influenza. Teaching and
learning was often compromised in small all-age schools as many teachers were
220
unqualified and frequently non Welsh speaking in monoglot Welsh areas. It was also
significant that the drive towards intermediate education damaged the prospects for
elementary school children as few central schools were set up and many children
remained in all-age elementary schools. This is in contrast to the situation in
England where central schools were the norm in many LEAs and children were
generally offered a better curriculum and had more opportunity to remain at school
if they chose to do so.
In many ways Chapter 4 – Evacuation is pivotal to this research. Although it
might be considered to be generally misplaced within this topic it can also be
considered to be central to it. The circumstances of the evacuation period starkly
highlighted the many problems and inadequacies of the elementary sector and the
deep divide, in educational and social terms, between it and the prestigious
grammar school sector in England. The social distinctions between the secondary
and elementary sectors emerged as a significant factor in this research. The
difference in attitudes and perceptions towards the two sectors was surprising even
though attention had been drawn to it in secondary sources. The prestige attached
to secondary schools is a constant throughout the research and became even more
apparent during evacuation. Grammar school evacuees from London and the south
east of England were treated in quite a different and superior way, almost as if the
prestige of the sector became attached to the children themselves. They were
regarded by HMI as a better class of child, much easier to billet and very clean. The
opposite was true of elementary school children, and although there is no evidence
that they were treated badly, they were treated differently. This applied particularly
in terms of education and the contrast was marked.
A large number of grammar schools were evacuated from London and Kent
to south and south west Wales to share secondary school provision. Pupils were
retained as school groups and continued to follow examination timetables even to
the extent that many remained evacuated after the end of the war to complete their
courses. Schools brought their own staff and equipment and very few secondary
school pupils returned home early. It became clear that these children’s education
was highly valued. In contrast, elementary school children, were evacuated
haphazardly in large mixed groups to anywhere there was billeting. No thought was
given to their education or religious needs and children were placed in already
221
overcrowded and often poor, all-age elementary schools. Research shows that
elementary school children were the most likely to be early returners and in most
cases returning to their home areas where all education provision had been
abandoned. There are many recorded instances where children were unable to sit
secondary entrance examinations, and even if they were able to and were
successful, they were frequently unable to find a suitable school place in the
immediate area. As the war progressed evacuated elementary children became
more isolated as their teachers were recalled to their home areas. In addition, many
children had to remain in reception areas after the end of the war because of difficult
home circumstances. There is clear evidence that this was damaging, in the long
term, to their education.
During the evacuation period it also became apparent that teachers from
different local authorities regarded each other with scepticism. This was especially
the case in some valley communities, Aberdare for instance, where there was
considerable resentment towards evacuated teachers who in turn regarded their
local colleagues with contempt. The reports of Kent local inspectors are good
examples of this and are scathing in their comments about some provision in south
and south west Wales. One of major issues was the quality of local secondary
school entrance examinations and it was common that evacuated teachers thought
that these were set at too low a level in Wales and would be consequentially
injurious to the educational future of their pupils. The overall impression of
evacuation to south and south west Wales was that it was both damaging to
children’s education and to the education service in general.
The end of the Second World War and the Education Act 1944 proposed a
significant new dimension to education and this was reflected in the way its
implementation was planned in south and south west Wales. The intention of the
Act was to reform the elementary school sector and there was an underlying
suggestion of latitude on how this should be done. Although here had been
discussion over a common system of secondary education during the interwar
years, the Hadow, Spens and the Norwood Reports had all showed a distinct
leaning towards a tripartite system. Certainly the Board of Education favoured this,
although James Chuter Ede later commented that he didn’t know why people had
had this opinion as there was no suggestion of it in the legislation. This in essence
222
summed up the confusion over the future of secondary education in south and south
west Wales.
This research has shown that the educational views of the interwar Labour
party were philosophically biased towards the common school, and because of this
it could be assumed that this would have been central in their implementation of the
Education Act 1944. However, it was clear from the start of the Labour
administration in 1945 that this would not be the case. Added to this was the fact
that the old philosophies of Board of Education officials remained when it became a
Ministry, and the concept that grammar schools should be preserved at all costs
remained paramount. More importantly, perhaps, the Labour Party’s education
philosophy was substantially altered by the fact that the composition of its Members
of Parliament changed from a pre-war working class profile to one where many new
members had attended public or grammar schools and had had a university
education. This changed the Labour Party’s ideal of ‘secondary education for all’ to
grammar schools for a very few, as many new Members were not so “susceptible
to the romantic Socialism of the 1920s.”20 The appointment of Ellen Wilkinson, as
Minister of Education strengthened this as she held grammar schools in very high
esteem. As a result the Labour Party in Government dismissed its interwar agenda
for education and decided that a tripartite system would be most appropriate for post
war England and Wales. This cause disquiet amongst some Labour Members of
Parliament who felt that Wilkinson had reneged on the pre-war Labour promise of
increased educational equality.
The ambiguity of the wording of the Education Act 1944, like that of the 1918 Act
meant that it became a matter of interpretation, and LEAs in England and Wales
moved to interpret it as they saw fit. It was also very apparent that there was a
distinct lack of understanding on their part that the Ministry was now in charge and
had substantial new powers. The evidence from primary sources in south and south
west Wales showed an approach to the reconstruction of elementary education
which has proved to be extremely interesting. The fact that the Act did not establish
any clear guidelines for its implementation led many LEAs to consider this as a
means of overcoming the problems that had delayed reorganisation during the
interwar period. It was clear that multilateral or bilateral schools would be an ideal
20 J. Morgan, The Backbench Diaries of Richard Crossman, p. 270 in K. O. Morgan, (1984) op. cit., p. 174.
223
solution. This was a common trend across England and Wales and research
published in 1945 revealed that only a small proportion of LEAs intended to provide
a wholly tripartite scheme.
A variety of models emerged across south and south west Wales and it appears
that at least some of the pre-war Labour socialist education policy had dissipated at
local level in the same way as it had nationally. While it was not unexpected that the
largely Conservative led Cardiff City Council would choose a tripartite model, it was
very surprising that the Labour stronghold of Merthyr Tydfil would do the same.
Perhaps the most unforeseen and controversial implementation plan came from
Swansea Borough Council. This LEA had steadfastly refused to make any changes
to either elementary or secondary education during the interwar period but after
1944, the elected members of the local authority decided to plan a wholly multilateral
system. The thinking behind this is unclear but a number of factors could be
considered. It was clear that residential rebuilding on a large scale would be needed
to replace the many war damaged properties. The most appropriate place to build
was a large tract of unoccupied land to the north of the city despite the fact that it
had no infrastructure of any kind. This offered the opportunity to establish a number
of new schools and the LEA proposed making the two planned secondary schools
single sex comprehensives. This surprising departure from any previous education
provision an appears to have been influenced by the London County Council
reorganisation plan. The elected members also planned to remove all grammar
school provision throughout the city and replace this with a comprehensive model
in the face of tremendous opposition from teacher unions, the public and the LEA.
The plan was later modified but all new schools were built as comprehensives.
Carmarthenshire, Rhondda Urban District and Glamorgan LEAs all planned
a mixture of secondary provision and there was an intention to retain grammar
schools, alongside new modern and multilateral schools. This arrangement would
have suited their particular geography and circumstances and was particularly
appropriate in the case of Carmarthenshire, where the rural areas had a very small
child population and many unviable or non-provided schools. The difficulties of
reorganising the elementary sector had proved impossible after the 1918 and the
problems remained the same. As a consequence, the LEA planned to develop
comprehensive education in areas with low child population and offer a particular
224
curricula bias to individual schools. A mix of secondary provision also suited
Glamorgan LEA because as well as the highly populated industrial areas it also
contained a high proportion of rural areas with commensurately small population.
Comprehensive education would have been appropriate in many areas but the first
comprehensive school was actually built in the urban Port Talbot to serve the needs
of newly built social housing. The absorption of Part III local authorities in both
Carmarthenshire and Glamorgan had caused dissention and the matter of
reorganisation was a very sensitive issue. Only Rhondda Urban District Council
managed to retain its educational status after 1944 and a protracted battle with the
Ministry of Education. However, reorganisation there was also difficult as there were
many geographic restraints. Although it was a forward looking LEA in many ways, it
planned to retain all its grammar schools and build mostly modern schools as part
of its post elementary school provision.
There were ongoing objections from the Ministry of Education to the
development plans of Swansea, Glamorgan and Carmarthen, and to a lesser extent,
Rhondda. This was not only due to the fact that multilateral schools were included
in the plans but also to the fact that the non-provided sector, and in particular Roman
Catholic schools, had not been sufficiently taken into account. The next five years
were absorbed in negotiations between the local authorities, the non-provided
sector and the Ministry to try to resolve these difficulties and little progress was
made. The antagonism of largely non-conformist south and south west Wales came
into play and there was a serious determination to prevent, as far as possible, the
expansion of Church in Wales schools. The position of Roman Catholic schools was
less contentious as they were far fewer in number and, because of their religious
stance, would remain as separate organisations although partly maintained by the
local authorities. However, there were some difficulties, in Swansea for example,
when the Roman Catholics wanted to open a new school in an area where the LEA
considered that there were already sufficient school places. In general and in most
LEAs, Roman Catholic reorganisation was problematic both because there were
large catchment areas and pupil numbers were small. There are instances, in
Swansea and Carmarthenshire for example, where very dubious pupil numbers
were put forward in an attempt to get permission from the Ministry of Education to
establish secondary schools. These were all unsuccessful, and by the mid-1950s
Roman Catholic children were still being educated in all-age elementary schools.
225
In south and south west Wales the process of reconstruction was very slow and as
late as 1954 local authorities in south and south Wales were still in discussion with
the Ministry of Education over their plans for reconstruction. In general terms by the
time these were accepted, opposition to multilateralism had diminished
considerably. Even though the perception before the Education Act 1944 was that
reconstruction was urgent it actually took many years, mostly due to the fact that
LEAs resisted attempts by the Ministry of Education to force them to install a
tripartite system. The intransigence of the Ministry and the consequential lost
opportunity to completely restructure education in England and Wales proved
damaging. It was unfortunate that the outdated educational doctrines of the first half
of the twentieth century were so deeply entrenched and it took many years for the
local authorities “to break out of the grip of tripartism”21 and inject a measure of
equality into education.
It becomes very clear from this research that religion was the most important
causal factor that influenced the development of education in the early twentieth
century. This was at two levels. Firstly, the influence of the Church of England is
apparent from the nineteenth century onwards when it assumed a major role in the
development of voluntary education. Over time it becomes clear that it was very
reluctant to renounce the control it had over the education system, particularly in
terms of denominational schools. In this it was protected by a powerful lobby in both
the House of Lords and Commons, and Williams’ assumption of the relationship
between the Church of England and the Conservative party appears to have
validity.22 It would, of course, be wrong to suggest that all members of the
Conservative party were also members of the Church of England but the alliance
between the two was very clear during the early 1940s when R A Butler was
negotiating the legislation for the Education Act 1944. The opposition to some
proposals included in the Act came from all quarters, including the National Society,
and had it not been for the support of the Archbishop of Canterbury and some other
churchmen, the Act might have had a completely different reception in Parliament.
Secondly, the substantial non-conformist presence in Wales was critical to
the way education developed. The decision to make all provision secular is evident
21 B. Simon (1974) op. it., p. 331. 22 C. Williams, Labour and the Challenge of Local Government, 1919-1939 in D. Tanner, C. Williams & D.
Hopkins, The Labour Party in Wales 1900 – 2000, (UWP, Cardiff, 2000). p. 145.
226
from the 1840s onwards and was a key factor throughout the period. The founding
of a secular university at Aberystwyth and the Intermediate Education Act in 1889
created a different kind of education system in Wales. It put down a marker for the
future that implied that non-provided denominational provision was not welcome.
This was reinforced by the attitudes of politicians at both national and local levels,
especially after the 1920s when the Labour party gained influence in industrial
areas. These political changes became embedded in local authorities in south and
south west Wales and were supported by the powerful lobby of he Executive
Committee of the Federation of Education Committees. As a consequence local
authorities throughout the area were quite individualistic in their approach to
education and had it not been for the consequences of severe austerity and
unemployment it can be seen that there was a potential for much earlier expansion
and change. Certainly, many of the proposals for reconstruction after 1944 were
very surprising and although these were first defeated by the Ministry of Education,
they eventually led to a wholly comprehensive system which went some way to
achieve the socialist ideal of parity in education. The underlying pressure for a
secular system of education continued and as a result few non-provided schools
remained after reconstruction.
Throughout this thesis the influence of Brad y Llyfrau Gleision23 can be seen
as the defining moment in the development of Welsh education. It came to represent
the underlying non-conformist demands for secular education and “marked a period
of great advance.”24 Of course, this religious trend was not the only influential factor:
socio-economics and politics played an important role. The burgeoning influence of
the Labour party introduced a new philosophy which sometimes, but not always,
leant towards equality of opportunity and changed the nature of decision making at
a local level. As a result Welsh education developed a distinctiveness which
continued after 1944. It eventually led to a mainly secular comprehensive secondary
sector that offered much of the parity demanded by the Labour party during the
interwar years. This marked a period of “emerging new growth”25 that Clarke
suggested was not always the case at a national level.
23 Translated as The Treachery of the Blue books and refers to the Reports of the Commissioners of Inquiry
into the State of Education in Wales, 1847 (870) (871) (872) 24 K. O. Morgan, Wales In British Politics 1868 -1922, (University Press, Oxford, 1963) p. 20 25 F. Clarke, Educational research in the new setting. British Journal of Educational Psychology, (Vol XIV:
1944), 1-6, p. 1.
227
This research goes some way to offering an understanding of the way in
which the early influences on education influenced its subsequent development in
south and south west Wales. It identifies the way the LEAs responded to the external
pressures brought about by new legislation and makes a causal link between these
and other influences which acted as a counterpoint: religion, politics and the socio-
economics of the period. It makes an important contribution to an understanding of
how Welsh education has developed over time, and particularly during the first half
of the twentieth century It emphasises the role that non-conformity played in
advancing a secular structure for state education while allowing some
denominational schools to play a different, but equally important function in the life
of Wales. These factors combined have ensured that Welsh education has
developed a distinctiveness which is not always understood or appreciated, and this
despite, until very recently, sharing education legislation with England. A supposition
could be made that the long term distinctiveness of Welsh education has made it
fundamentally fairer than that in England. Although further comparative research
could be made to confirm this, it appears that while much of English education has
clung to the old ‘sub-sets’ which divided provision before the Education Act of 1944,
Wales has moved on to confirm a fairer and more equal secondary sector which
indeed does give an opportunity for secondary education for all.
228
Bibliography
Archdiocesan Archives Westminster
Cardinal Griffin Papers BO 1/189 -190.
Birmingham Reference Library
Schools and Education File 1939-1945.
Bodleian Library
Conservative Party Archive R. A. Butler Personal Files on Education 1-10.
Carmarthen Archive Service
WWH/2/2 Annual Reports of the School Medical Officer 1907 – 1946
Museum 199 Carmarthen Borough Education Committee 1919
CC/ED/1/1/8 Minutes 1919-1921
WWH/2/2 Annual Reports of the School Medical Officer for Carmarthenshire
CC/ED/1/1/9 Education Committee Minutes 1922
CC/ED/1/1/10 Education Committee Minutes 1923
ED/BK 4 HMI Reports for Carmarthenshire 1921-1924
CC/ED/1/1/13 Education Committee Minutes 1925
C/ED/L/4 Llanelly Urban District Education Minutes 1925
CC/ED/1/1/14 Education Committee Minutes 1926
CC/ED/1/1/16 Education Minutes 1929
CC/ED/1/1/18 Education Minutes 12th February 1931
CC/ED/1/1/22 Education Committee 1934
ED/BK 402 HMI Reports 1939
ED/BK/695/2/4 Llangunnick (Llangynog) Vaughn’s Charity School – Log Book
AC 446/34 Llanelly Borough Council Committee Minutes. 1940
ED/BK 400 HMI Reports 1941.
ED BK 566/2 Llanelly Girls Central School Log Book
ED BK 184 Carmarthen County School Governing Body Minute Book 1940
CAS AC 446/34 Llanelly Borough Council Committee Minutes.
ED BK /647/2/5/5 New Castle Emlyn Group of LCC School No. 63845 Pencader Section – Mixed and Infants 1941
ED/BK 48 - Amman Valley County School – Governing Body Minute Book 1941
CC/ED/1/1/29 Education Minutes 1941
ED BK 48 Amman Valley County School Governing Body Minute Book 1942
229
CC/ED/1/1/31 Carmarthen County Council Education Committee Minutes 1942
CC/ED/1/1/31 Education Minute Book August 1944
CC/ED/1/1/33 County Education Committee Minutes 1944
ED/BK/188 Carmarthen Education Committee Education Act 1944 Development Plan Carmarthen Borough
CC/ED/1/1/ 32 Wales Circular 2.
Carmarthen Borough 231 Evacuation Box 1939-1946
Church in Wales Archive
Representative Body of the Church in Wales Governing Body Education Meeting 1942
Representative Body and Governing Body of the Church in Wales Minute Book October 1942-September 1945
Church of England Record Centre
NS/10/5/15 Pamphlets in Education, Vol 15, No 30, ; NS/10/5/15 Pamphlets in Education, Vol. 15, No 28, ‘Evangelism through Education, Opportunities for Advance in Time of War
ALW/2/4 Title Papers relating to the Watching Committee and the education bill, 1943-1944
Glamorgan Archives
BC/E/1/19 Cardiff Borough Council Education Committee 1919
GC/EDEE/4 Glamorgan Education Committee Minutes 1929
BC/E/5/26 Cardiff Education Committee Minutes 1929
BC/E/1/30 Cardiff Borough Council Education Committee Minutes 1929 -1930
UDR/E/1/13 Rhondda Urban District Education Minutes April 1930
BMT/1 /49 Merthyr Tydfil Education Committee Minutes 1932
Lib/C/198 City of Cardiff Education Committee : reorganisation scheme for Elementary Council, Church in Wales and Roman Catholic school 1938.
B/MTE/1/1/11 Merthyr Tydfil Education Committee Minutes 1938-1939.
GC/EDEE/7 Glamorgan Education Committee Minutes 1939.
RDC/6/1/64 Cardiff Rural District Council Minutes 1939.
RDC/C/1/64 Government Evacuation Scheme Committee Minutes 1939-1946.
RDLL/T/38/GES Llantrisant and Llantwit Fardre Rural District Council Billeting Book 1939.
DX 631/1 Cardiff Rural District Council Minutes 1940.
230
E/MT/17/3 Pen Garn Du Council School Log Book 1939.
DX 631/1 Cardiff Rural District Council Minutes 1940.
D/DX 504/19 – 1941 Notes -evacuated Cardiff children to Afan Valley area.
GD/E/16/7 Glamorgan County Council Evacuation Committee. Closing down of Government Evacuation Scheme: correspondence relating to transfer and responsibility for upkeep of children 1945-1953.
BB/C/8/151 The Municipal Review. Education Act 1944. Transfer of education functions to Glamorgan County Council. Aug 1944-May 1968.
BMT/E/7/4 Merthyr Tydfil Education Committee Minutes 1944-1945.
GD/E/1/107 Glamorgan County Council Outgoing letters, mainly from the Clerk of Glamorgan County Council to the Board, later Ministry of Education. 1944-1946.
GD/ PA/20/41 Administration of the Government Evacuation Scheme including sick bay accommodation. 1939-1946.
BB/E/1/44 Barry Education Committee Minutes Education Act 1944. Transfer of education functions to Glamorgan County Council. 1944-1968.
UDR E / 45/1/ Reports of the Director of Education to The Chairman and Members of the Committee appointed to consider the Rhondda Development Plan 1946.
BC/ED/1/1/14 Cardiff Borough Council Education Minutes, 1904-1974.
EA/26/5 HMI Report Aberdare.
Kent Archive Service
C/E/14/7/2 Evacuation Reports 1941-1942.
C/E/14/7/3 Evacuation Reports 1941-1942.
London Metropolitan Archives
LCC/ED/WAR/01/239 Official History of World War Two.
LCC/GE 11132.
LCC/EO /WAR/1/098 Plan IV 2nd Large Scale Evacuation Plan.
LCC/EO/WAR/01/083 – Consultations with teachers’ associations EO/WAR/37, Board of Education, Air Raid Precautions in Schools, Circular 1467, 27th April 1939.
WAR/5/5 List of LCC Evacuated Schools 1939.
ED /EO /WAR/01 238.
LCC/EO/WARJ 1/194 Operation Rivulet.
LCC/EO/WAR/ 01/210 Criticisms of Evacuation General Purposes Sub Committee 1945.
231
National Archives.
NA MINT 20/745 Committee on National Expenditure (Geddes Committee): report, 1922. (Geddes Report).
CAB 37/144/44, Establishment of a Committee to consider and advise on problems that will arise on the conclusion of peace: the Reconstruction Committee, March, 1916.
ED 23/119 Committee on scholarships and free places in secondary schools, 1919-1920 Young Report.
ED 97 Board of Education: Re-organisation of Schools, Local Education Authority Files, 1922.
ED 24/1481 Board of Education Office discussion on programme procedure under Circular 1358. 1925-1926.
ED 60 Local Education Authority staffing files relating to a system of approved establishments of teachers ('staffing quotas') Circular 1360. 1925.
ED 13/13 Circular 1371 [block grants] and administrative memorandum 44 1925.
ED 22/180 Circular 1397. Raising of school leaving age 1930.
CAB 38 (55) Conclusions of a Meeting of the Cabinet 18th July 1935.
ED 136/112 Long term policy: evacuation arrangements. Question of compulsory evacuation, compulsory registration of school children in the special evacuation towns 1939-1941.
ED 136 /112 Long term policy: evacuation arrangements. Question of compulsory evacuation, compulsory registration of school children in the special evacuation towns. Secret Statement – Evacuation Neville Chamberlain 25th August 1939.
ED/134/378 Board of Education and Ministry of Education: Evacuation Branch, Second World War, Miscellaneous General Local Education Authority Registered Files (G, WE and E Series). Wales: County Borough Llanelly 1939.
CAB/24/175 Report of the Sub Committee of the Committee of Imperial Defence 29th Oct, 1925.
ED 22/180, Circular 1397. Circular 1397 programme - raising of school leaving age. 1930.
CAB 1/38 Cabinet Memorandum. Educational Policy Committee 2nd Report. Memorandum by the President of the Board of Education 15th July 1935.
RG 26/76, Evacuation of school children: Ministry of Health schedules of movements by area under the Government evacuation scheme, 1939-1942.
ED 134/372 Board of Education and Ministry of Education: Evacuation Branch, Second World War, Miscellaneous General Local Education Authority Registered Files (G, WE and E Series). Wales Counties Glamorganshire. 1939.
ED 134/368 Board of Education and Ministry of Education: Evacuation Branch, Second World War, Miscellaneous General Local Education Authority Registered Files (G, WE and E Series). Wales Counties Carmarthenshire. 1939.
232
ED 134/199 Board of Education and Ministry of Education: Evacuation Branch, Second World War, Miscellaneous General Local Education Authority Registered Files Carmarthenshire 1940-1944.
ED 134 /201 Board of Education and Ministry of Education: Evacuation Branch, Second World War, Miscellaneous General Local Education Authority Registered Files (G, WE and E Series). Wales Counties Glamorgan. 1939 -1944.
ED 134/202 Board of Education and Ministry of Education: Evacuation Branch, Second World War, Miscellaneous General Local Education Authority Registered Files (G, WE and E Series). Wales Counties Rhondda UD and Mountain Ash UD 1939 -1940.
ED 134/203 Board of Education and Ministry of Education: Evacuation Branch, Second World War, Miscellaneous General Local Education Authority Registered Files (G, WE and E Series) Wales Counties Pontypridd. 1940-1944.
ED 134 /204 Board of Education and Ministry of Education: Evacuation Branch, Second World War, Miscellaneous General Local Education Authority Registered Files (G, WE and E Series) Wales County Boroughs. Rhondda 1939 -1944.
ED 22 / 228 Inspection and reporting on evacuated London County Council Schools, Welsh Department. Circulars and memoranda, Inspection and reporting on evacuated London County council Schools to Inspectors, 1940.
ED 10/252 Board of Education's history of public education system in war-time. Reports on various educational, 1939-1945.
ED 110 Secondary Education Fees and Special Places: Local Education Authority Files 1932-1946.
ED 138/58 Evacuation and the School Health Service. Mr Davidson's file, 1944. Board of Education Administrative Memorandum 205.
ED 134/247 Board of Education and Ministry of Education: Evacuation Branch, Second World War, Miscellaneous General Local Education Authority Registered Files (G, WE and E Series). Wales County Boroughs Cardiff 1941 -1943.
ED 136/212 Private Office: Files and Papers (Series II). Education After the War – Green Book Drafting Papers Preliminary papers Internal Memorandum from Maurice Holmes. Port War Education Reconstruction 1940.
ED 136/212 Board of Education and successors: Private Office: Files and Papers (Series II). Education After the War – Green Book Drafting Papers. Preliminary papers. 1940-1941.
ED 136/271 Board of Education and successors: Private Office: Files and Papers (Series II). Education After the War – Green Book Discussions. Catholic Educational Council.
ED 138/22 Preliminary draft and notes; copy of Green Book "Education after the War" undated.
ED 136/677 Education in Wales Miscellaneous Papers 1941-1943.
ED 136/220 Board of Education and successors: Private Office: Files and Papers (Series II). Education After the War – the Duel System. Miscellaneous correspondence and office notes 1941-1943.
233
ED 136/465 Board of Education and successors: Private Office: Files and Papers (Series II). Education Bill, 1944. Observations on the Bill. National Union of Teachers, 1944.
ED 136/462 Board of Education and successors: Private Office: Files and Papers (Series II). Education Bill, 1944. Observations on the Bill. Church of England representatives. 1943-1944.
ED 136/237 Wales - Wales - Discussions with Archbishop of Wales, Bishop of St. Asaph, Sir William Jenkins, M.P., and the Central Welsh Board, 1942-1943.
ED 136/681 Secondary School Examinations Council. Committee on Curriculum and Examinations (Norwood Committee). Committee papers, minutes of meetings, signed copy of report. Correspondence and papers prior to and arising on the report. 1941-1944.
ED 136/463 Board of Education and successors: Private Office: Files and Papers (Series II). Education Bill, 1944. Observations on the Bill. Association of Directors and Secretaries for Education, 1944.
ED 136/677 Education in Wales – Miscellaneous 1941-1943.
ED 138/58 Evacuation and the School Health Service. Mr Davidson's file. 1944.
ED 60 Board of Education and successors: Elementary Education, Local Education Authority Staffing Files 1944.
CAB 129/1/17 16th August 1945 Memorandum Former Reference: CP (45).
CAB 129/16/25 Economic Survey for 1947. Report from the Ministerial Committee on Economic Planning. Author: Herbert Morrison. 10 January 1947.
CAB 128/9/8 Conclusions of a Meeting of the Cabinet 10th January 1947.
CAB/128/9 Conclusions of a Meeting of the Cabinet 16th January 1947.
BD 7/17 County Borough of Swansea Development Plan Explanatory Memorandum.
ED 216/491 Swansea Development Plan Protests., 1947-1955.
BD 7/17 Swansea Education Committee Revised Development Plan, 1953.
BD 7/15 County Borough of Merthyr Tydfil Education Committee Development Plan, 1947.
BD 7/14 City of Cardiff Education Committee Development Plan, 1948.
ED 216/434 Welsh County Boroughs, Cardiff, General papers and correspondence, 1950-1967.
BD/7/5 Carmarthenshire LEA: Special Educational Treatment; Development Plan, 1947-1952.
ED 216/164 Board of Education and successors: Welsh Department and successors: Registered Files (Various W Prefixes). Welsh Counties. Carmarthenshire. Development plan: protests 1947-1952.
ED 216/291 Board of Education and successors: Welsh Department and successors: Registered Files (Various W Prefixes).Welsh Counties Glamorgan. County development plan: Rhondda district instalment with plans, 1947-1952.
234
ED 216/292 County development plan: protests 1946-1957.
ED 216/289 County development plan, with plans., Glamorgan County Council County Development Plan, 1946-1959.
ED 216/491 Welsh Department and successors. Welsh County Boroughs. Swansea. Development plan: protests 1947-1955.
ED 216/434 Welsh County Boroughs, Cardiff, General papers and correspondence, 1950-1967.
National Library of Wales
Minor Deposit 701 Minutes of the Executive Committee of the Federation of Education Committees (Wales and Monmouthshire, 1927-49.
SD/ED 7-10 Church in Wales Diocesan Education Minutes 1937.
SD/ED 22-30 Minutes of the Education Committee of the Governing Body of the Church in Wales 1940-1945.
Carmarthenshire County Council Report on Reorganisation of Schools, September 1929.
Treorchy Reference Library
Outline Plan of Rhondda UDC Reorganisation Scheme under the 1918 Education Act.
R (370) RHO Rhondda UD Council Education Act 1918 Scheme of the Rhondda LEA.
TRL Rhondda UD Council Minute Book 1920-1921 September 1920
Rhondda UDC Minute Books 1926-1939.
Rhondda Urban District Council Minutes 1943-1944 November 1943.
Rhondda Urban District Council. 1945-1946 Government Evacuation Scheme. School Management Committee.
People’s History Museum. Manchester.
Labour Party Conference Report, Transport House, 1942.
West Glamorgan Archive Service
E/PT 3 1/1 Sandfields Girls Council School Log Book.
E/SB 71/2/43 Swansea Borough Education Sub Committee 1919.
E/S 31/4/5 Swansea Borough, Council Education Committee Minutes.
E/W 25 1/3 Parkmill Mixed and Infants Logbook; 1940.
235
E/S/12/1/1 Manselton Girls Council School Log Book 1940.
E/S/32/1/2 Log book of children evacuated from Manselton to Penypont and Trelech, Carms. Includes list of children evacuated. Oct 1941-Sept 1942.
E/Dyn Sec 27/8 Education Problems. One School for Senior Pupils. Mr Chuter Ede on the Education Bill.
E/Dyn Sec 27/8 London County Council Reorganisation of Post-Primary Education.
E/S/31/4/5 Welsh Office Circular 73 December 1945.
E/SB 71/2/68, Minutes. 1944-1945. Official Documents
Elementary Education Act 1870 (33 and 34 Vict., C. 75).
Welsh Intermediate Schools Act 1889
Elementary Education (School Attendance) Act 1893 8 Edw. 7. c. 49.
Board of Education Act 1899 (Vic 62-63).
Education Act 1902 (2 Edw. VII).
Education (Local Authority Default) Act 1904.
Regulations for Secondary Schools 1904.
Education (Provision of Meals) Acts 1907.
Education (Administrative Provisions) Act 1907.
Welsh Church Act 1914 (1914 Chapter 91 4 and 5 Geo 5).
Education Act, 1918 (8 & 9 GEO. 5. CH. 39).Education Act 1936. 6 Geo (5 & 1 Edw. 8. Ch. 41).
Air Raid Precautions Act 1937.
Civil Defence Act 1939 2 & 3 Geo 6 Ch 31.
Education. A bill to reform the law relating to education in England and Wales 7 & 8 Geo 6, 1943-44, Bill No. 4.
Education Act 1944 7 & 8 Geo 6 Ch 31.
Third Report from the Select Committee on the Education of the Lower Orders, Minutes of Evidence (Charities and Endowed Schools) 1818, (426).
A digest of parochial returns made to the select committee appointed to inquire into the education of the poor: session 1818. Vol. I, (1216).
Minutes of the Committee of Council on Education, with appendices and plans of school houses Part II 1839-40, 1840, (254).
Final Report by Commissioners for consolidating and adjusting Turnpike Trusts in S. Wales, September 1845 Royal Commission of Inquiry into State of Education in Wales. Report 1847, ( 870, 871, 872).
236
Education Commission. Report of the commissioners appointed to inquire into the
state of popular education in England, Volume Page: XXI Pt.I.1, 1861, (Paper
2794-I) (The Newcastle Report).
Report of Her Majesty's commissioners appointed to inquire into the revenues and management of certain colleges and schools, and the studies pursued, and Instruction 1864, (Cd 3288) (The Clarendon Report).
Report of the Royal Commission known as the Schools Inquiry Commission 1867, (Cd 3857) (The Taunton Report).
Report of the Committee appointed to inquire into the condition of Intermediate and Higher Education in Wales 1881, (Cd 3047). (The Aberdare Report).
Royal commission on secondary education, 1895 (Cmd 7862) (Bryce Commission Report).
Board of Education. Welsh Department. List of public elementary schools and certified efficient schools in Wales (including Monmouthshire) on 1st August, 1907-1908, (Cd. 4014).
Royal Commission on the Poor Laws and Relief of Distress. Report of the Royal Commission on the Poor Laws and Relief of Distress Majority and Minority Reports, 1909 (Cd. 4499).
Board of Education. Report of the consultative committee on attendance, compulsory or otherwise, at continuation schools. Vol. I.-Report and appendices, 1909 (Cd. 4757).
Board of Educations. Report of the consultative committee on attendance, compulsory or otherwise, at continuation schools. Vol. II. Summaries of evidence, 1909 (Cd. 4758).
Education. A bill to make further provision with respect to education in England and Wales and for purposes connected therewith, 1917-18 (89).
Final Report of the Departmental Committee on Juvenile Employment after the War Vol 1, 1917-1918, (Cmd 8512) (Lewis Report).
Board of Agriculture and Fisheries. Wages and conditions of employment in agriculture. Vol. II. Reports of investigators 1919 (Cmd. 25).
Board of Education. Report of the Board of Education for the year 1918-1919, 1920 (Cmd. 722).
ED 92/23 Effect of Welsh Church Act, 1914, on Church of England Schools in Wales 1920.
Report of the Consultative Committee of the Board of Education Books in Public Elementary Schools (1928).
Report of the Consultative Committee of the Board of Education. The Primary
School (1931).
Report of the Consultative Committee of the Board of Education. Infant and Nursery Committee on National Expenditure. Report, 1930-31, (Cmd. 3920) (The May Report).
Report of the Committee on Local Expenditure (England and Wales) 1932-33, (Cmd 4200). (The Ray Report).
237
Education in 1935 being the report of the Board of Education and the statistics of
public education for England and Wales, 1935-36 (Cmd. 5290).
Report on Committee of Evacuation with a covering memorandum by the secretary of state for the Home Department, 1937-1938 (Cmd 5837).
Board of Education. Educational reconstruction, 1942-43, (Cmd. 6458).
Board of Education. Education Bill explanatory memorandum by the president of the Board of Education, 1943-44, (Cmd. 6492).
Hansard
HC Sitting 10th March 1846 Vol 85 Col 72-3.
HC Sitting 17th 1870 Vol 203 Col 1792.
HC Sitting 18th July 1879 Vol 247 Col 1185-7.
H C Sitting 18th July 1879 Vol 248 Col 774-815.
H C Sitting 18th July 1916 Vol 84, Col 871.
HC Sitting 14th April and 28th April 1938 Vol 334, col, 1296 and vol 335.
HC Sitting 2nd February 1939 Vol. 343, Col. 335-526.
HC Sitting 25th May 1939 Vol 347 Col 2488-90.
HC Sitting 14th September 1939 Col. 745-886 Vol. 351.
H C Sitting 27th February 1940 Col 1861-2034 Vol. 357.
H C Sitting 5th March 1940 Col. 173-354 Vol. 358.
H C Written Answers 31st July 1941. Col. 1540-1570 Vol. 373.
H C Sitting 29th July 1943 Col. 1753-1928 Vol. 391
HC Sitting 12 May 1944 vol 399 col 2193-267.
HC Sitting, 22nd, March 1946, Vol. 420, Col. 2155-436.
HC Sitting 1st July 1946, Vol. 424, Cols. 1759-1922
238
Published Official Papers
Report of the Consultative Committee on differentiation of the curriculum for boys and girls respectively in secondary schools (HMSO: London, 1923)
Report of the Consultative Committee on Psychological Tests of Educable Capacity and their possible use in the public system of education (HMSO: London, 1924)
The Education of the Adolescent (HMSO: London, 1926).
The New Prospect in Education (Board of Education Pamphlet No 60, HMSO: London, 1928).
System of Education in Wales and Monmouthshire in Relation to the Needs of Rural Areas (HMSO: London, 1930).
Educational Problems of the South Wales Coalfield (Board of Education, Educational Pamphlets No 88, HMSO: London, 1931).
Report of the Consultative Committee on Secondary Education with Special Reference to Grammar Schools and Technical High Schools (HMSO: London, 1938). (Spens Report).
Schooling in an Emergency: Suggestions for the Education of Children Transferred to the Reception Areas (HMSO: Board of Education, London, 1939).
The Report of the Committee of Inquiry into the Anti-Tuberculosis Service in Wales and Monmouthshire (HMSO: London, 1939).
The Report of the Committee of the Secondary Schools Examination Council on Curriculum and Examinations in Secondary Schools (HMSO: London, 1943) (The Norwood Report).
Report of the Committee on Public Schools appointed by the President of the Board of Education (HMSO: London, 1944) (The Fleming Report).
Report of the Committee appointed by the President of the Board of Education to consider the Supply, Recruitment and Training of Teachers and Youth Leaders (HMSO: London, 1944) (The McNair Report).
White Paper: Educational Reconstruction, (HMSO, London, 1943).
The Health of the School Child. Report of the Chief Medical Officer of the Ministry of Education for the years 1939-1945 (HMSO: 1945).
The Nation’s Schools: Their Plan and Purpose (Ministry of Education Pamphlet No 1 HMSO: London, 1945).
The New Secondary Education (Ministry of Education: 1947).
Handbook of Suggestions: for the consideration of teachers and others concerned in the work of public elementary schools, (HMSO: 1905-1950).
Education 1900-1950. The report of the Ministry of Education and the statistics of public education for England and Wales for the year 1950 (Cmd 8244) (HMSO: London, 1951).
Primary Education: Suggestions for the consideration of teachers and others concerned with the work of Primary Schools (HMSO, London, 1959.)
239
The organisation of secondary education (Circular 10/65: DES 1965).
Half Our Future (HMSO: London, 1963).
Children and their Primary Schools (HMSO: London, 1967).
The School Health Service 1908 -1974 (HMSO: London, 1975).
Newspapers Barry Daily News 26th January 1945.
Catholic Herald 31st December 1937.
Catholic Herald 12th August 1938.
Catholic Herald 28th March 1941.
Education 14th June 1935.
Guardian. Tuesday 21st February 1922.
Llanelly Star Saturday, September 9th 1939.
Llanelly Star September 23rd 1939.
Schoolmaster Woman Teacher’s Chronicle. 18th April, 1940.
Schoolmaster & Woman Teacher’s Chronicle 2nd May 1940.
The Spectator, 20th July, 1901.
The Times, 30th December, 1938.
The Times. 4th April 1945.
The Times 25th October 1939.
The Times 21st December 1940.
The Times Feb 19th 1941.
The Times March 17th 1941
The Times Feb 27 1940.
The Times Nov 1st 1943.
Western Mail 1st September 1939.
Western Mail Sept 21st 1944.
Western Mail 18th May 1940.
Western Mail July 21st 1944.
Western Mail July 17th 1944.
Western Mail Sept 21st 1944.
Western Mail July 24th 1944.
Western Mail September 6th 1944.
240
Western Mail & South Wales News 15th September 1944.
Western Mail 6th February 1945.
Western Mail, 12th March 2008.
241
Secondary Sources
Addison, P., The Road to 1944: British Politics and the Second World War (Pimlico: London, 1994).
Akenson, A.H., Patterns of English Educational Change: The Fisher and Butler Act. History of Education Quarterly, Vol. 11, No 2: (1971), 143-156.
Aldcroft, D. H., The Inter-War Economy: Britain 1919-1939 (Batsford: London, 1970).
Aldrich, R., Lessons from History of Education: The Selected Works of Richard Aldrich (Routledge: London, 2005).
Allen, R. C. Jones, D.C. and Hughes, T. O., The Religious History of Wales (Welsh Academic Press: 2014).
Andrews, L., The Education Act 1918 (Routledge and Kegan Paul: London, 1976).
Archer, M., The Social Origins of Education Systems (Sage: London, 1979).
Armytage, W.H.G., Four Hundred years of English Education (Cambridge University Press: Cambridge, 1970).
Bailyn, B., Education in the Forming of American Society (Random House: 1960).
Baker, C., Review G. E. Jones Controls and Conflicts in Welsh Secondary Education 1889-1944. British Educational Research Journal, Vol. 10, No. 2: (1984).
Banks, O., Parity and Prestige in English Secondary Education (Routledge and Kegan Paul: London, 1955). Baber, C. and Williams, L. J. eds, Modern South Wales: Essays in Economic History (UWP: Cardiff, 1986).
Barker, R., Education and Politics 1900-1951 A Study of the Labour Party (Clarendon Press: Oxford, 1972).
Barnard, H. C., History of English Education from 1760 (Hodder & Stoughton: London, 1961).
Barnett House Study Group, London Children in War-Time Oxford (Oxford University Press: London, 1947).
Benn, C., Comprehensive School Reform and the 1945 Labour Government History Workshop, 10: (1980), 197-204.
Bernbaum, G., Social Change and the Schools 1918-1944 (Routledge and Kegan Paul: London, 1967).
Bernert, E. H. & Iklé, F. C., Evacuation and Social Cohesion of Urban Groups. The American Journal of Sociology, Volume 58, No. 2: (1952), 133-138.
Bidder, M-E., The Scotch Cattle in Monmouthshire 1820-1825. Journal of Gwent Local History Council, No. 63: (1987), 3-16.
Birchenough, C., History of Elementary Education in England and Wales from 1800 to the Present Day (University Tutorial Press: London, 1920).
242
Blackstone, T., The Plowden Report. The British Journal of Sociology, Vol. 18: (1967).
Boyd Orr, J., Food Health and Income (Macmillan: London, 1936).
Brennan, T. Cooney, T. Pollins, H., Social Change in South-West Wales (Watts: London, 1954).
Briggs, A., Serious Pursuits: Communications and Education: The Collected Essays of Asa Briggs, Volume 3 (Harvester Wheatsheaf: 1991).
Brosse, T., War Handicapped Children, Report on the European Situation. Publication No 439 of the United Nations Educational, Scientific and Cultural Organization (Paris: 1950).
Buckley, B., The Feeding of School Children (G. Bell and Sons Ltd: 1914).
Cannon, C., The Influence of Religion on Educational Policy, 1902-1944. British Journal of Educational Studies, Vol 12, (May 1964), 143-160.
Caradog Jones, D. ed., The Social Survey of Merseyside, Vol One (University Press of Liverpool Hodder and Stoughton Ltd: London, 1934).
Cavell, A. and Kennett, B., A History of Sir Roger Manwood’s School, Sandwich, 1563-1963 with a life of the founder (Published for the Governors by Cory, Adams and Mackay: 1963).
Chadwick, P. Shifting Alliances: Church and State in English Education (Cassell: London, 1997).
Chitty, C., Education Policy in Britain, second edn (Palgrave: Macmillan, 2009).
Clarke, F., Zenkovsky, W., Munroe, P., Morris, C.R., Smith, J. W. D., Ph. Kohnstamm. ‘X’, Oldham, J. H., Church, Community, and state in Relation to Education, (George Allen & Unwin Ltd: London, 1938).
Clarke, F., Education and Social Change: An English Interpretation (The Sheldon Press: London, 1940).
Clarke, F., Educational research in the new setting. British Journal of Educational Psychology, (Vol XIV: 1944), 1-6
Clifford-Vaughan, M, & Scott Archer, M., Social Conflict and Educational Change in England and France 1789 – 1848 (University Press: Cambridge, 1971).
Cohen, S., Sir Michael Sadler and the Sociopolitical Analysis of Education, History of Education Quarterly, Vol 7, No 3 (1967).
Cole, M., How Evacuation Miscarried Time, 2nd Sept 1940: http://www.time .com
Colley, L., Britons: Forging the Nation 1707-1837, (Vintage Books: London, 1992).
Cohen, S. Sir Michael Sadler and the Sociopolitical Analysis of Education, History of Education Quarterly, Vol 7, No 3 (1967).
Cragoe, M., An Anglican Aristocracy: The Moral Economy of the Landed Estate in Carmarthenshire, 1832-1895 (Clarendon Press: Oxford, 1996).
Cremin, L. A., The Wonderful World of Ellwood Patterson Cubberley: an essay on the historiography of American education (Teachers College: Columbia New York, 1965).
243
Crook, D., Local Authorities and Comprehensivisation in England and Wales,
1944-1974,’ Oxford Review of Education, Vol 28, No 2/3: (2002), 247-260.
Crosby, T. L., The Impact of Civilian Evacuation in the Second World War (Croom Helm: London, 1986).
Cruikshank, M., Church and State in English Education (Macmillan: London, 1964).
Cubberley, E. P., Changing conceptions of education (1909).
Cubberley, E. P., Changing conceptions of education (1909); Public Education in the United States (1919), Public Education in the United States (1919).
Cunningham, P., Educational History and Educational Change: The Past Decade of English Historiography. History of Education Quarterly, Vol. 29, No. 1: (Spring, 1989), pp. 77-94.
Curtis, S. J., History of Education in Great Britain (University Tutorial Press: 1948).
Curtis, S. J. Education in Britain since 1900 (Andrew Dakers Ltd: London, 1952),
Davies, D. H., The Welsh Nationalist Party 1925-1945 A Call to Nationhood (UWP: Cardiff, 1983).
Davies, E. T., Religion and Society in the Nineteenth Century (Christopher Davies: Llandybie, 1981).
Davies, J. A., Education in a Welsh Rural County 1870-1973 (University of Wales Press: Cardiff, 1973).
Davies, J A., History of Wales (Penguin; London, 2007).
Davies, M., Education in the Second World War: The preparation of an official history. Journal of Education Administration and History, Volume 8, Issue 2: (1976).
Davies, R. R. Griffiths, R. A. Jones, I. G. & Morgan K. O., eds, Welsh Society and Nationhood: Historical Essays presented to Glanmor Williams (UWP: Cardiff, 1984).
Dean, D. W. Conservatism and the National Education System 1922-40, Journal of Contemporary History, Vol. 6. No 2 (1974) pp 150-165.
Delamont, S., Reviewed Work: The Education of a Nation by Gareth Elwyn Jones, British Journal of Educational Studies, Vol. 46, No. 1: (1998) pp. 91-94.
Dent, H. C., Education in Transition: A Sociological Study of the impact of war on English Education (Kegan Paul: London, 1944).
Dent, H.C., 1870-1970: Century of Growth in English Education (Longmans: London, 1970).
Dodds, A. E., Education and Social Movement (1919).
Eaglesham, E.J.R., The Centenary of Sir Robert Morant. British Journal of Educational Studies, Vol. 12, No. 1: (1963), 5-18.
Elliott, K., Between two worlds: the Catholic educational dilemma in 1944. History of Education, Vol 33 No 6: (2004), pp. 661-682.
244
Empson, J., The history of the Milk Marketing Board, 1933–1994: British farmers' greatest commercial enterprise. International Journal of Dairy Technology, Vol. 51, Issue 3: (1998), pp 77-85.
Evans, A., Four Nations and a constitution: the Conference on Devolution 1919-1920 Unpublished pdf document https://fournationshistory.wordpress.com/2014/10/27/four-nations-and-a-constitution-the-conference-on-devolution-1919-1920/.
Evans, D. G., A History of Wales 1815-1906 (UWP: Cardiff, 1989).
Evans, G. W. The Aberdare Report and education in Wales. Welsh History Review, Vol 11 No 2: (1987), pp. 150-172.
Evans, L. W., Education in Industrial Wales 1700 -1900 (Avalon Books: Cardiff, 1971).
Evans, L. W., Studies in Welsh Education: Welsh Educational Structure and Administration 1880 – 1925 (UWP: Cardiff, 1974).
Evans, W. G., Education and Female Emancipation: The Welsh Experience 1847-1914 (UWP: Cardiff, 1990).
Evans, W. G., Education Development in a Victorian Community, Centre for Educational Studies, (Faculty of Education: Aberystwyth, 1990).
Ferguson, S. and Fitzgerald, H., Studies in the Social Services (HMSO: London, 1953).
Floud, R and McCloskey, D., The Economic History of Britain since 1700 Volume 2 1860-1939 (Cambridge University Press: Cambridge, 1994).
Fraser, D., The Evolution of the Welfare State (Palgrave: London, 1973).
Freathy, R.J. K.. Ecclesiastical and religious factors which preserved Christian and traditional forms of education for citizenship in English schools, 1934-1944. Oxford Review of Education, 33:3 (2007) pp. 367-377.
Freathy, R. J. K. The Triumph of Religious Education for Citizenship in English Schools, 1935–1949, History of Education, (2007) 37:2, pp. 295–316
Freeden, M., Eugenics and Progressive thought: A study in ideological affinity. The Historical Journal, 22 3: (1979) pp. 645-671.
Gärtner, N., Administrating ‘Operation Pied Piper’ how the London Council prepared for the evacuation of its schoolchildren 1938-1939. Journal of Educational Administration and History, 42, 1: (2010), pp. 17-32.
Gilbert, B. B., British Social Policy 1914-1939 (Cornell University Press: New York,
1970).
Glynn, S. and Oxborrow, J., Interwar Britain: A social and economic history (Allen and Unwin: London, 1976).
Gosden, P.H.J.H., The Board of Education Act 1899. British Journal of Educational Studies, Vol 11, No. 1: (1962), pp. 44-60.
Gosden, P.H.J.H., The Evolution of a Profession (Basil Blackwell: London, 1972).
Gosden, P.H.J.H., Education in the Second World War (Methuen and Co. Ltd: London, 1976).
245
Gosden, P. Putting the Act together History of Education, Vol. 24, No 3: (1995),
pp. 195-207.
Grimshaw F. E., The Story of the Mary Datchelor School 1877-1977 (Hodder and Stoughton Ltd: London, 1977).
Green, A., Education and State Formation: The Rise of Education Systems in England, France and the USA (Macmillan: London, 1990).
Green, S. J. D., The 1944 Education Act: A Church –State Perspective. Parliamentary History, Vol 19, Issue 1: (2000), pp. 148 – 164.
Grigg, R., History of Trinity College Carmarthen 1848-1998 (UWP: Cardiff, 1998).
Halvéy, E., History of the English People in the Nineteenth Century: The Rule of Democracy, Vol. 6 (Ernest Benn Ltd: London, 1968).
Hanley, J., Grey Children (Methuen: London, 1937).
Hans, N., The principles of educational policy, (P.S. King & Son, London, 1929)
Hans, N., Comparative Education, (1949).
Hanson, N., First Blitz (Transworld Publishers: London, 2009).
Harris, B., The Health of the School Child: A history of the school medical service in England and Wales (Open University Press: Buckingham, 1995).
Harris, J., War and Social History: Britain and the Home Front during the Second World War. Contemporary European History, Vol. 1. No. 1: (1992), 17-35.
Harris, J., Private Lives, Public Spirit: Britain 1870-1914 (Penguin: Harmondsworth, 1993).
Holman, B., The Evacuation: A Very British Revolution (Lion: London, 1995).
Hollen Lees, L., The Solidarities of Strangers: The English poor Laws and the People (Cambridge University Press: Cambridge, 1998).
Hopkins, E., Elementary Education in Birmingham during the Second World War. History of Education, Vol 18, Issue 3 (1989), pp. 243-255.
Hopkins, E., Childhood Transformed: Working Class Children in Nineteenth Century England (Manchester University Press: Manchester, 1994).
Hopkins, E., Industrialisation and Society: A Social History 1830-1951 (Routledge:
London, 2000).
Horrabin, J. F. and W., Working-Class Education (1924).
Ku, Hsiao-Yuh, Education for liberal democracy: Fred Clarke and the 1944 Education Act. History of Education, Vol 42, No 5, (2013), pp. 578-597.
Howell, D. W., Land and People in Nineteenth-Century Wales (Routledge and Kegan Paul: London, 1977)
Hughes, T. O., Winds of Change (University of Wales Press: Cardiff, 1999)
Hurt, J., Education in Evolution, Church, State and Popular Education 1800 – 1870 (Hart-Davis: London, 1971).
246
Hutt, A., The Condition of the Working Class in Britain (Martin Lawrence: London, 1933).
Hygiene Committee of the Women’s Group of Public Welfare, Our Towns A Close Up (Oxford University Press: Oxford. 1943)
Hyndman, M., Multilateralism and the Spens Report: Evidence from the Archives. British Journal of Educational Studies, Vol 24: (1976), 242-253.
Hyndman, M., Schools and Schooling in England and Wales: A Documentary History (Harper and Row: London, 1978).
Isaacs, S. ed., The Cambridge Evacuation Survey (Methuen and Co. Ltd: London, 1941).
Jefferys, K. ed., Labour and the Wartime Coalition, From the Diary of James Chuter Ede (The Historians Press: London, 1987).
Jefferys, K., British Politics and Social Policy during the Second World War. The Historical Journal, Vol 30: (1987), pp. 123-144.
Jenkins, R. T., The Development of Nationalism in Wales. The Sociological Review, Volume 27, Issue 2 (1935), pp. 113–243.
Jones, E. K., The Story of Education in a Welsh Border Parish. The Schools of Cefnmawr 1776-1932 (A. Smith: Wrexham, 1933).
Jones, G. E., Controls and Conflicts in Welsh Secondary Education 1889-1994 (UWP: Cardiff, 1982).
Jones, G. E., Which Nation’s Schools? Direction and Devolution in Welsh Education in the Twentieth Century (UWP: Cardiff, 1990).
Jones, G.E., 1944 and all that. History of Education, 19.3: (1990), pp. 235-250.
Jones, G. E. and Roderick, G. W., A History of Education in Wales (UWP: Cardiff, 2003).
Jones, G. E., Perspectives from the brink of extinction: the fate of history of education study in Wales. History of Education Vol 2 Issue 3: (2013). pp. 381-395.
Jones, I. G., Communities: Essays in the Social History of Victorian Wales (Gomer Press: Llandysul, 1987).
Jones, I. G., Mid-Victorian Wales: The Observers and the Observed (UWP: Cardiff, 1992).
Johnes. M., For class and nations: dominant trends in the historiography of twentieth-century Wales. History Compass, 8(11): (2010), pp. 1257-1274.
Johnson, B.S., The Evacuees (Victor Gollancz: London, 1968).
Johnson, P.B., Land Fit For Heroes: The Planning of British Reconstruction 1916-19 (University of Chicago Press: 1969).
Kandel, I. G., Studies in Comparative Education, (Harrap, 1933).
Kang, H-C., Education and Equal Opportunity between the Wars. Oxford Review of Education, Vol 9, No 2: (1983), pp. 91-108.
247
Katz, M., From Bryce to Newson: Assumptions of British Educational Reports 1895 – 1963. International Review of Education Vol 11 No 3: (1965), pp. 287-304.
Katz, M., The Origins of Public Education: A Reassessment. History of Education Quarterly, Vol. 16, No. 4: (1976), pp. 381-407.
Kenrick, G. S., Statistics of the Population in the Parish of Trevethin (Pontypool) and at the Neighbouring Works of Blaenavon in Monmouthshire, Chiefly Employed in the Iron Trade, and Inhabiting Part of the District Recently Distributed. Journal of the Statistical Society of London, Vol 3 No 4: (Jan, 1841), pp, 366 -375.
Ketewich, G.W., The Education Department and After (1920).
Miles, R. and Phizacklea, A. eds Racism in Political Action In Britain (Routledge and Kegan Paul: London, 1979).
Kogan, M., The Plowden Report Twenty Years On. Oxford Review of Education, Vol. 13, No. 1: (1987), pp. 13-21.
Ku, Hsiao-Yuh, Education for liberal democracy: Fred Clarke and the 1944 Education Act. History of Education, Vol 42, No 5, (2013), pp. 578-597.
Kushner, T., Horns and Dilemmas: Jewish Evacuees in Britain during the Second World War. Immigrants and Minorities, Vol. 7, 1988 pp. 273- 29.
Lawn, M. & Grace, G. eds, Teachers: The Culture and Politics of Work (Falmer Press: Sussex, 1987).
Lawson, J. and Silver, H., A Social History of Education in England (Methuen: London, 1976).
Leaton Grey, S., Defining the Future: an interrogation of education and time. British Journal of Sociology of Education, Vol. 25: (2004) pp. 323-340.
Lewis, E. D., The Rhondda Valleys (Phoenix House: London, 1959).
Lin, P. Y., National Identity and Social Mobility. Twentieth Century British History, Vol. 7, Issue 3: (1996), pp. 310-344.
Lowe, R., ed, Education and the Second World War (The Falmer Press: London, 1992).
Lowe, R., ed, History of Education: Major Themes Volume I (Routledge Falmer: London, 2000).
Lowe R., ed, History of Education: Major Themes Volume II (Routledge Falmer: London, 2000).
Lowndes, G.A.N., The Silent Secret Revolution, second edn, (Oxford University Press: London, 1969).
Mannheim, K., Freedom, Power and Democratic Planning (Oxford University Press: New York, 1950).
Maclure, J. S., Educational Documents England and Wales 1816-1968 (Chapman and Hall: London, 1965)
Maclure, J. S., One Hundred Years of London Education 1870-1970 (Allen Lane: London, 1970)
Mansbridge, A., Margaret McMillan, Prophet and Power (1920).
248
Manton, K., The 1902 Education Act. History Today, Vol. 52: (2002).
Marcus, J., Suffrage and the Pankhursts (Routledge Kegan Paul: London, 1987).
Marwick, A., The Labour Party and the Welfare State in Britain, 1900-1948. The American Historical Review, Vol. 73, No. 2: (1967).
Marwick, A., Britain in the Century of Total War. War Peace and Social Change 1900-1967 (Penguin: Harmondsworth, 1970).
Marwick, A., Class, Image and Reality in Britain, France and the USA since 1930 (Collins: 1980).
McCulloch, G., Education Reconstruction: The 1944 Education Act and the Twenty First Century (Woburn Press: Essex, 1994).
McCulloch, G. & Richardson, W., Historical Research in Educational Settings (OUP: Buckingham, 2000)
McCulloch, G., Professorial Lecture. Education, history and social change: the legacy of Brian Simon (Institute of Education: London, 2004).
McCulloch, G., The Struggle for the History of Education (Routledge: London, 2011).
McKibbin, R., Classes and Cultures: England 1918 -1951 (O U P: Oxford, 1998).
Middleton, N and Weitzman, S., A Place for Everyone: A history of education from the eighteenth century to the 1970s (Victor Gollancz: London, 1976).
Milford, H., The Second Industrial Survey of South Wales, Vol II (UWP: Cardiff, 1937).
Miller, P. Education and the State: The uses of Marxist and feminist approaches in the writing of the histories of schooling. Historical Studies in Education, 1. 2: (1989) pp. 283 – 306.
Morgan, D., Cardiff, City at War (Dennis Morgan: Nov. 1998).
Morgan, K. O., Wales In British Politics 1868 -1922 (University Press: Oxford, 1963).
Morgan, K. O. Welsh Nationalism: The Historical Background. Journal of Contemporary History, Vol 6, No 1, (1971) pp 153-159.
Morgan, K. O., Rebirth of a Nation: Wales 1880-1980 (OUP: Oxford, 1981).
Morgan, K. O., Labour in Power 1945-51 (Clarendon Press: Oxford, 1984).
Mowat C. L., Britain Between The Wars (Methuen: London, 1968).
Munson, J. E. B., The Unionist Coalition and Education 1895-1902. The Historical Journal, 20, 3: (1977), pp. 607 – 645.
Murphy, J., Church, state and Schools in Britain, 1800-1970 (Routledge & Kegan Paul; London, 1971).
Nardinelli. C. Child Labor and the Factory Acts The Journal of Economic History Vol 40 No 4 1980 pp 739-755.
Nicholson, H. V., Prisoners of War (Gordon Publishing: London, 2000).
249
Ó Buachalla, S., Education Policy in Twentieth Century Ireland (Wolfhound Press: Dublin, 1988).
O’Keefe, B. Faith, Culture and the Dual System: A Comparative Study of Church and State Schools (The Falmer Press: Lewis 1886).
Padley, R. & Cole, M., Evacuation Survey. A Report to the Fabian Society (Routledge: London, 1940).
Parker, D. H., ‘The Talent at its Command’: The First World War and the Vocational Aspect of Education, 1914-1919. History of Education Quarterly, Vol. 35, No. 3 (1995), 237-59.
Parker, S., Faith on the Home Front: Aspects of Church Life and Popular Religion in Birmingham 1939 – 1945 (Peter Lang: Bern, 2005).
Parker, S., ‘Blessed are the Pacifists’: E. W. Barnes of Birmingham and Pacifism 1914 -45. Midland History, Vol. 34 No 2: (2009), pp. 204-219.
Parker, S. G., Freathy, R. and Doney, J., The professionalisation of non-denominational religious education in England: politics, organisation and knowledge. Journal of Beliefs & Values: Studies in Religion & Education, Volume 37, Issue 2: (2016), pp. 201-238.
Parsons, M. L., ‘I’ll Take That One’ Dispelling the Myths of Civilian Evacuation 1939-1945 (Beckett Karlson: 1998).
Parsons, M., War Child: Children Caught in Conflict (Tempus: Stroud, 2008).
Parsons, M., ed, Children: The Invisible Victims of War. An Interdisciplinary Study (DSM: Peterborough, 2008).
Plumb, J., The New World of Children in Eighteenth Century England. Past and Present, 67 (1): (1975), pp. 64-95.
Pollack, E., Isaac Leon Kandel, 1881 -1965, Prospects, (Paris, UNESCO: International Bureau of Education), vol. 23, no. 3/4, 1993, pp. 775–87.
Pope, R., Building Jerusalem: non-conformity, Labour and the social question in Wales, 1906-1939 second edn, (UWP: Cardiff, 1998)
Powell, D., Pontypridd at War: the Second World War at Home (Merton Priory Press: Cardiff, 1999).
Poynter, J. R., Society and Pauperism: English Ideas on Poor Relief (Routledge and Kegan Paul: London 1969).
Rattansi, A. and Reeder, D., eds, Rethinking Radical Education: Essays in Honour of Brian Simon, (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1992).
Richardson, W., Historians and educationalist: the history of education as a field of study Part 1, 1945-72. History of Education, Vol 28, Issue 1: (1991), pp. 1-30.
Richardson, W., Historians and educationalists: the history of education as a field of study, Part II, 1972-96. History of Education, Vol 28, Issue 2: (1999), pp. 109-141.
Roach, J., Reviewed Work(s): Church and State in English Education, 1870 to the Present Day by Marjorie Cruickshank. The Historical Journal, Vol. 7, No. 1 (1964), pp. 181-182.
250
Roberts, D., Victorian Origins of the British Welfare State (Yale University Press:
New Haven, 1960).
Robinson, W., Historiographical Reflections on the 1902 Education Act. Oxford Review of Education, Vol 28, No. 2/3: (2002), pp. 159-172.
Roderick, G., Technical Instruction Committees in South Wales United Kingdom 1889 -1903 (Part 1). The Vocational Aspect of Education, (45,1: (1993), pp. 59-70.
Roderick, G., Social Class, curriculum and the concept of relevance in secondary education. Welsh History Review, Vol. 19 No. 2: (1998), pp. 289-318.
Roderick, G.W. and Stevens, M. D., Education and Industry in the Nineteenth Century: the English disease? (Longmans: London, 1978).
Ross, J. F .S., Elections and Electors: Studies in Democratic Representation (Eyre and Spottiswoode: London, 1955).
Rubenstein, D., Ellen Wilkinson Re-Considered. History Workshop, No. 7: (1979), 161-169.
Rubenstein, D. and Simon, B., The Evolution of the Comprehensive School 1926-1972 (Routledge and Kegan Paul: 1973).
Sacks, B., The Religious Issue in the State Schools of England and Wales 1902-1914 A Nation’s Quest for Human Dignity (University of New Mexico Press: Albuquerque, 1961).
Sadler, M.E., Our Public Elementary Schools, (Thornton Butterworth Ltd: London 1930).
Samuel, R. and P. Thompson eds, The Myths We Live By, (Routledge: London, 1990).
Sanderson, M., Education and the Factory in Industrial Lancashire 1780-1840. Economic History Review, 2nd Series, Vol XX: (1967), pp. 266 – 276. Samuel, R. and Thompson, P., eds, The Myths We Live By (Routledge: London, 1990).
Sherington, G., English Education, Social Change and War 1911-12. (MUP:
Manchester, 1981).
Silver, H., The Concept of Popular Education: A study of the ideas and social movements of the early nineteenth century (Rowman and Littlefield: London, 1965).
Silver, H., Aspects of Neglect The Strange Case of Victorian Popular Education. Oxford Review of Education, 3. 1, Part Two: (1977), pp. 7-69.
Silver, H., Education, Change and the Policy Process (Falmer Press: Lewis, 1990).
Simon, B., The Two Nations and the Education Structure 1780-1870 (Lawrence Wishart: London, 1960).
Simon, B., Education and the Labour Movement 1870-1920 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1965).
251
Simon, B., The Politics of Educational Reform 1920-1940 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1974).
Simon, B., The History of Education in the 1980s. British Journal of Educational Studies, Vol. 30, No. 1: (1982), pp. 85-96.
Simon, B., The 1944 Education Act: A Conservative Measure? History of Education, Volume 15, Issue 1: (1986), pp. 31-43.
Simon, B., Education and Social Order 1940-1990 (Lawrence and Wishart: London, 1991).
Simon, J., The Shaping of the Spens Report on Secondary Education 1933-38 An Inside View, Part I. British Journal of Educational Studies Vol 25 No 1: (1977), pp. 170-185.
Sloan, D., Historiography and the History of Education. Review of Research in Education, Vol. 1: (1973) pp. 239-269.
Smelser, N. J., Social Paralysis and Social Change: British Working Class Education in the Nineteenth Century (University of California Press: Berkley, 1991).
Smith, R., Schools, Politics and Society: Elementary Education in Wales 1870-1902 (UWP: Cardiff, 1999).
Smith H. L. ed, War and Social Change (MUP: Manchester, 1986).
Snell, K. D. M., The Sunday-School Movement in England and Wales: Child Labour, Denominational Control and Working-Class Culture. Past and Present, No. 164: (1999), pp. 122-168.
Stargardt, N., Witnesses of War: Children’s Lives Under the Nazis, (Jonathan Cape: London, 2005).
Strange, K., Cardiff Schools and the Age of the Second World War: The Log Books and Documentary History. Unpublished pdf document. docslide.us/documents/cardiff-schools-and-the-age-of-the-second-world-war.html
Stead, P., Schools and Society in Glamorgan before 1914. Morgannwg, XIX: (1975).
Stephens, W. B., Recent trends in the history of education in England to 1900. Education Research and Perspectives, 8, 1: (1981) pp. 5-15.
Stephens, W. B., Education in Britain 1750 -1914 (Palgrave: London, 1998).
Stevenson, J., Social Conditions in Britain between the Wars (Penguin: Harmondsworth, 1977).
Stevenson, J., British Society 1914-1945 (Penguin: Harmondsworth, 1984).
Stone, L., Literacy and Education in England 1600 -1900. Past and Present, No 42: (1969), pp. 69-139
Tanner, D., Williams, C. and Hopkins, D., The Labour Party in Wales 1900 – 2000 (UWP: Cardiff, 2000).
Tawney, R. H., Secondary Education for All: A Policy for Labour (The Labour Party: London, 1922).
252
Tawney, R. H., Education, the Socialist Policy (1924).
Titmuss, R. M., Problems of Social Policy (HMSO: London, 1950).
Titmuss, R, M., Essays on the Welfare State (Allen and Unwin: London, 1958).
Thomas, B. ed., The Welsh Economy: Studies in Expansion (UWP: Cardiff, 1962).
Thompson, E.P., The Making of the English Working Class (Penguin: Harmondsworth, 1968).
Thompson, S., Unemployment, Poverty and Health in Interwar Wales (UWP: Cardiff, 2006).
Tröhler, D., History and Historiography of Education: Some remarks on the utility of historical knowledge in the age of efficiency. Encounters in Education Vol. 7: (Fall 2006), pp. 5 – 24.
Van Der Eyken, W. ed., Education, the Child and Society: A Documentary History 1900-1973 (Penguin Education: Harmondsworth, 1973).
Vlaeminke, M., The English Higher Grade Schools: A Lost Opportunity (Routledge: London, 2000).
Vernon, B .D., Ellen Wilkinson 1891-1947 (Croom Helm: London, 1982).
Visser, W. A., Hooft, W. A. and Oldham, J. H. The Church and its Function in Society, (George Allen & Unwin; London, 1937).
Wallace, R.G., The Origins and 283-290 Authorship of the 1944 Education Act. History of Education, Vol 10 No 4: (1981), pp. 283-290.
Wallis, J., A Welcome in the Hillsides? The Merseyside and North Wales experience of Evacuation 1939-1945 (Avid Publications: Merseyside, 2000).
Wang, Z., The First World War, Academic Science, and the "Two Cultures": Educational Reforms at the University of Cambridge. Minerva, 33: (1995) pp. 107-12.
Webster, J. R., The Welsh Intermediate Act of 1889. Welsh History Review, Vol 4 Vol. 4, no. 3: (June 1969), pp. 273-291.
Welshman, J., Evacuation and Social Policy During the Second World War: Myth and Reality. Twentieth Century British History, Vol. 9, Issue 1: (1998) pp. 28-53.
Welshman, J., Evacuation, Hygiene and Social Policy: The Our Towns Report of 1943. The Historical Journal, Vol 42: (1999), pp. 781-807.
Welshman, J., Churchill’s Children: The Evacuee Experience in Wartime Britain (Oxford University Press: Oxford, 2010).
Wicks, B., No Time to Wave Goodbye (Bloomsbury: London, 1988).
Williams, C., Capitalism, Community and Conflict: The South Wales Coalfield 1898-1947 (UWP: Cardiff, 1998).
Williams D., The Rebecca Riots (UWP: Cardiff, 1986).
Williams, G., Religion Language and Nationality in Wales (UWP: Cardiff, 1979).
Williams, J., Digest of Welsh Historical Statistics, Volume 1 and Vol 2 (The Welsh Office: Cardiff, 1985).
253
Williams, J. L. and Hughes, G. R., The History of Education in Wales, Vol. 1
(Christopher Davies: Swansea, 1978).
Williams, S.R., Women Teachers and Gender Issues in Teaching in Wales 1870-1950. The Welsh Journal of Education, 13.2: (2005) pp. 68-83.
Wilson. A., The Infancy of the History of Childhood: An appraisal of Philippe Ariès. History and Theory, Vol. 19, No. 2: (1980), pp.132-153.
Worsley; C., Barbarians and Philistines: Democracy and the Public Schools (Searchlight Books: 1940).
254
Pamphlets Encyclical of Pope Pius XI on Christian Education to the Patriarchs, Primates, Archbishops, and other Ordinaries in Peace and Communion, 31st December 1929. http://w2.vatican.va/content/pius-xi/en/encyclicals/documents/hf_p-xi_enc_31121929_divini-illius-magistri.html
Address (in questo giorno) of Pope Pius XII to the Sacred College of Cardinals on Christmas Eve (The Catholic Truth Society: 1939).
Looking Ahead: Educational Aims (The First Interim Report of the Conservative Sub-Committee on Education. Central Committee on Port War Re-construction Conservative and Unionist Party: 1942).
Memorandum on Education after the War (Trades Union Council, 1942).
The Association of Directors and Secretaries of Education, Education: A Plan for the Future ( OUP: Oxford, 1942).
Education After the War (Central Welsh Board, 1943).
Britain’s Schools Communist Party of Great Britain Undated Unpublished PhD Thesis Hess, S. J. Civilian evacuation to Devon in the Second World War, Unpublished PhD Thesis, University of Exeter, 2006. Websites http://www.iwm.org.uk/collections/item/publication/80002234
http://www.educationengland.org.uk/history
http://www.llandeilo.org/catholic3.php
http://www.guardian.co.uk
http://www.pencader.org.uk/Two
http://www.bbc.co.uk/history/ww2peopleswar
http://yba.llgc.org.uk/en/s-WILL-WIL-1788.html
http://www.time .com
http://archive.spectator.co.uk/article/20th-july-1901/12/the-cockerton-judgment
255
Appendices
256
Appendix 1 – local authorities in south and south west Wales.
Part II authorities
Cardiff Borough Council Carmarthenshire County Council Glamorgan County Council Merthyr Tydfil Borough Council Swansea Borough Council
Part III Authorities Aberdare Urban District Council. Barry Municipal Borough. Mountain Ash Urban District Council. Neath Urban District Council. Pontypridd Urban District Council. Port Talbot Urban District Council. Rhondda Urban District Council. Carmarthen Borough Council. Llanelly Urban District Council.
257
Appendix 2 - Secondary Schools evacuated to Carmarthen and Glamorgan
Carmarthen
Home Schools Evacuated Schools
Alltwalis LCC Group
Amman Valley County
School
Roan Boys School
Road Girls School
Addey and Stanhope School Grammar School
Queen Elizabeth Boys
Grammar School,
Carmarthen
Sir Roger Manwood’s’ School
Model School, Carmarthen Ennersdale School Lewisham
Northbrooke School
St Mary’s RC School,
Carmarthen
Denmark Hill School, Camberwell, London
Priory Street School,
Carmarthen
Brownhill Road School
Trinity College, Carmarthen Denmark Hill School Camberwell, London
Caio Woodmansterne Road School Streatham
Kidwelly Haselrigge Road School –Clapham
Ferryside Rotherhithe Nautical School Bermondsey
Talley Hearnville Road School – Balham
St Mary’s RC School Denmark Hill School
Priory Street School Brownhill Road School
Trinity College, Carmarthen Senior age children
Llangadock Mitchum Lane School Streatham
Llangunnick (Llangynog )
Vaughn’s Charity School
Tower Bridge Junior School,
Grays Essex
Penybont Council School Swansea Unit
258
Penygroes Council School All Saints School, Greenwich.
Blackheath School, Greenwich.
idbrooke School, Greenwich.
Llandilo County School Coloma Convent School, Croydon.
Llanelly County Schools St Edwards College for Boys, Liverpool.
La Sagesse Girls School, Liverpool.
Mary Datchelor School for Girls, Camberwell.
Brockley County School, London.
St John’s Tuebrook C.E. School, Liverpool.
Balham Girls School, London.
Heath Clarke Selective Central School, Croydon.
Llanybythyr/ Pencader Tiber Street School, Liverpool.
Whitland County School Erith County School, Kent.
Dunbarton High School, Swansea.
Seion Vestry, Idole
Evacuated Group.
Church Hall, Abergwilli
Evacuated Group.
Myddfai
Evacuated Group.
Philadelphia Council School
Evacuated Group.
Saron Council School Greek Street Junior School, LCC.
Greek Street Senior School, LCC.
Llangathen Methodist Vestry LCC Group.
Swansea Group.
Nantgaredig Vestry
LCC Group.
Peniel Chapel Vestry
Rotherhide Council School, LCC.
Felingwm Council School
LCC Group
Llangadock:
Providence Vestry
Bethlehem
Gwynfe
Llandeusant
Llansadwrn
Llanwrda
LCC and Swansea Groups with evacuated organising
Swansea head teacher.
Brooke NP School Cadle School, Swansea.
Rhandimwyn.
LCC group.
259
Hendy.
Evacuated Groups.
Penygroes. Blackheath and Kidbrooke Schools, London.
Gwendraeth Secondary
School, Ammanford.
Swansea Secondary Schools.
Llandovery Schools. Evacuated Groups Swansea, LCC. Dagenham.
Glamorgan
Home Schools
Evacuated Schools
Aberdare Boys County School. Ilford County High School, LCC.
Bargoed Technical School
Bargoed Elementary Schools
Sheerness Junior Technical School, Kent.
Caerphilly Secondary School Rochester Junior Technical School, Kent.
Bargoed Council School
Tir Phil Council School
Brithdir Council School
Pontlottyn Council School
Gilfach Council School
Sheerness Central Boys School, Kent.
Sheerness Central Girls School, Kent.
Ystrad Mynach Schools.
Sheerness Broadway Council School, Kent
Hengoed Girls’ Secondary
School.
Sittingbourne Girls’ County School, Kent.
Pengam Lewis Boys’ School
Borden Grammar School, Sittingbourne, Kent.
Hengoed and 16 other schools
north of Caerphilly
Sheerness Blue Town J M School, Kent.
Broadway Council School, LCC.
Clydach Court Group Girls, Rhondda.
Cardiff Rural District Schools. Barford Road Senior Boys, Birmingham.
Barford Road Infants, Birmingham.
Dennis Road Senior Boys, Birmingham.
Dennis Road Junior and Infants, Birmingham.
St Pauls Junior and Infants, Birmingham.
Moseley Road Junior and Infants, Birmingham
Roland Hill School, Tottenham, LCC.
260
Radyr Council School
Eglinton Council School, LCC.
Downhills Council School, Tottenham, LCC
St Fagans Church in Wales
School.
Chatham Schools Group, Kent.
Whitchurch Secondary School Gillingham County School, Kent.
Edmonton County School, Middlesex.
Chatham Day Technical School for Boys, Kent.
Whitchurch Mixed Council
School.
Chatham Junior Technical School, Kent.
Chatham Day Technical School for Girls, Kent.
Downhills Central School, Tottenham, LCC.
Lisvane Council School. Eggerton Road School, Kent.
Greenhill House Open-Air School Boarders Group, Leytonstow.
Lisvane Council School, Cardiff.
Pentyrch, Council School, Cardiff.
Radyr Council School, Cardiff.
Whitchurch Council School,
Cardiff.
North Northolt Group, Ealing Education Committee.
Llanishen Council School,
Cardiff.
Woodend Junior & Senior School, Greenford. LCC.
Pendoylan Council School. Alum Rock Council School, Birmingham.
Radyr Council School, Cardiff Group of 23 - Ealing Education Committee
Downhills Council School, Tottenham, LCC.
Tongywnlais Council School,
Cardiff.
English Martyrs’ R C Mixed and Infants, LCC.
St John’s Church of England Mixed and Infants
School, Sparkhill, Birmingham.
Cherry Wood Road Mixed and Infants School,
Birmingham.
Llysfaen Council School. Birmingham School group.
Whitchurch Boys Council School,
Cardiff.
Birmingham School group.
Llanederyn Council School,
Cardiff.
Dulwich House Hospital School, London.
Furzedown College, London
Ebbw Vale County Grammar
School.
Dover Boys Grammar School, Kent.
Gorseinon Council School. Forest Hill Girls School, London.
261
Cyfartha County School, Merthyr
Tydfil.
Georgetown Elementary School,
Merthyr Tydfil.
Harvey Boys’ Grammar School, Kent.
Quaker’s Yard County Secondary
School, Merthyr Tydfil.
Mining School and Technical
Institute, Merthyr Tydfil.
Fort Pitt Grammar School, Kent.
Folkstone Girls’ Day Technical School, Kent.
Abertaf J M School, Mountain
Ash,
Sheerness Church of England Junior Girls, Kent.
Carnetown Infants School,
Mountain Ash
Abercynon Infants Mountain Ash
Abertaf Infants Mountain Ash
Sheerness Church of England Infants School, Kent.
Caegarw Infants School,
Mountain Ash.
Caegarw Junior School,
Mountain Ash.
Blue Town Infants School, Kent.
Penrhiwcieber Council School,
Mountain Ash.
Mile Town Junior Girls School, Kent.
Dyffryn Council School, Mountain
Ash.
Darranlas Council School,
Mountain Ash.
Penrhiwcieber, Council School,
Mountain Ash.
Marine Town Infants, Kent.
Miskin County School, Mountain
Ash.
Sheerness R C School. Kent.
Caegarw Junior School,
Mountain Ash.
New Town School, Mountain
Ash.
Rose Street School, Sheerness, Kent.
Aberpergwm House Glyneath East Anglian School for Deaf and Blind Children,
Gorleston-on-Sea, Norfolk.
Pontardawe Mining Technical
Institute.
Chatham Junior Technical School, Kent.
262
Pontypridd Boys’ Secondary
School
Sir Joseph Williamson’s Mathematical Institute,
Kent.
Frindsbury Hall School, Kent.
Treforest Girls County School. Sir Joseph Williamson’s Mathematical Institute,
Kent.
Pontypridd Council Schools Groups from
Faversham,
Rainham
Dartford
Bexley
Tilbury
Princes Risborough
Sheerness
Strood
Glenmore Road Infants School, LCC.
Troy Town Infants School, Rochester. Kent.
Holcombe Road Infants School, Rochester.
Highfield Junior Boys School, Rochester.
Christchurch Junior Girls School, Rochester.
Old Park School, London.
Wormholt Park School, Hammersmith.
Westville Road School, Hammersmith.
Whitmore Road Assembly School, Harrow.
Congregational School Rooms,
Porthcawl
Gilgal Baptist Hall, Porthcawl.
Tabernacle Vestry, Porthcawl.
Rochester Girl’s Grammar School, Kent.
Porthcawl Senior School.
Highfields Congregational Hall,
Porthcawl.
Rochester Mathematical School, Kent.
Cwmafan Infants and Boys and
Girls, Port Talbot
Greenwich Park Central School.
Putney Infants School, London.
Nelson Junior Girls, Gt Yarmouth.
Saunders Grow School, Notting Hill.
Ashington Road School, Sussex.
Latimer Endowed School, Hammersmith
Wrotham Road School, Gravesend.
Uckfield and Framfield Schools, Sussex.
Blackboys School, Essex.
Penygraig, Rhondda Oratory Roman Catholic Central Boys School.
Penygraig Rhondda Oratory Roman Catholic Central Girls School,
London.
263
Penygraig Rhondda East London Day Continuation School, LCC.
Treorchy Rhondda Edmonton Junior Technical School for Girls, LCC.
Clydach Court Secondary School
Rhondda.
LCC Girls Group.
Rhymney County School.
Gillingham Boy’s County School, Kent
Killay Council School, Swansea Sandwich Central and Council Schools Juniors and
Infants, Kent.
Three Crosses Council School
Swansea
Sandwich Central and Council Schools
Seniors, Juniors and Infants, Kent
Pennard, Swansea
LCC and Swansea Groups.
Tairgwaith Swansea Spurgeon's Orphanage, a home for Mother or
Fatherless Children, London.
Tonyrefail Council School. Mixed elementary school party from Whitstable,
Kent.